Selected quad for the lemma: law_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
law_n believe_v faith_n justify_v 18,143 5 8.5818 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49184 Remarks on the R. Mr. Goodwins Discourse of the Gospel proving that the Gospel-covenant is a law of grace, answering his objections to the contrary, and rescuing the texts of Holy Scripture, and many passages of ecclesiastical writers both ancient and modern, from the false glosses which he forces upon them / by William Lorimer ... Lorimer, William, d. 1721. 1696 (1696) Wing L3074; ESTC R22582 263,974 188

There are 69 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o be_v corrupt_v but_o to_o dissipate_v the_o darkness_n that_o have_v be_v cast_v upon_o it_o 1●_n 2_o cor._n 2_o 1●_n and_o to_o set_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o in_o a_o clear_a light_n but_o with_o what_o success_n i_o have_v do_v this_o in_o the_o follow_a write_v it_o be_v not_o expedient_a for_o i_o to_o declare_v let_v other_o now_o judge_v of_o that_o matter_n as_o they_o may_v be_v concern_v and_o as_o they_o will_v answer_v to_o god_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n the_o index_n chap._n i._o his_o gross_a mistake_n in_o state_v the_o controversy_n how_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v state_v page_z 1_o 2._o chap._n ii_o what_o only_o be_v infer_v from_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n in_o scripture_n from_o the_o word_n law_n its_o signify_v a_o doctrine_n not_o prove_v that_o it_o signify_v nothing_o but_o a_o speculative_a doctrine_n or_o narrative_n that_o require_v neither_o faith_n nor_o repentance_n the_o contrary_a prove_v from_o isa_n 2.3_o act_n 16.31_o from_o buxtorf_n and_o partly_o from_o his_o own_o concession_n p._n 3_o 4._o from_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n require_v faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o oblige_v to_o duty_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o law_n of_o work_n and_o that_o man_n will_v be_v justify_v by_o work_n his_o argument_n retort_v the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n sense_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n disclaim_v p._n 5_o 6._o chap._n iii_o he_o grant_v that_o no_o great_a weight_n can_v be_v lay_v on_o a_o argument_n from_o a_o etymology_n prove_v not_o to_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o galatian_n that_o they_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n in_o the_o sense_n we_o hold_v it_o so_o to_o be_v p._n 7._o chap._n iu._n that_o he_o mistake_v my_o design_n in_o appeal_n to_o the_o father_n which_o be_v only_o to_o prove_v matter_n of_o fact_n his_o quotation_n out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v impertinent_a and_o partly_o ridiculous_a p._n 8._o to_o 11._o chap._n v._o his_o whole_a five_o chapter_n one_o entire_a impertinency_n p._n 11_o 12_o 13._o chap._n vi_o sect._n 1_o of_o several_a thing_n careful_o to_o be_v attend_v unto_o for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o our_o old_a protestant_a writer_n and_o the_o clear_n up_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o they_o p._n 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o sect._n 2._o mr._n g._n first_o set_v of_o testimony_n clear_o answer_v p._n 17_o to_o 32._o sect._n 3_o his_o second_o set_v of_o testimony_n answer_v also_o p._n 32_o to_o 34._o that_o we_o do_v not_o confound_v the_o notion_n of_o thing_n entire_o distinct_a in_o their_o nature_n and_o idea_n in_o what_o sense_n we_o do_v real_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v duty_n p._n 34_o 35._o that_o the_o gospel_n have_v threaten_n of_o its_o own_o p._n 35_o to_o 38._o psal_n 19.8_o 9_o and_o rom._n 3.27_o clear_v and_o thence_o show_v that_o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n and_o obedience_n p._n 38_o 39_o chap._n vii_o sect._n 1_o his_o gross_a mistake_v show_v the_o ridiculous_a demonstration_n he_o will_v father_n upon_o i_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a figment_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n p._n 39_o 40._o sect._n 2._o how_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v and_o do_v not_o oblige_v to_o all_o manner_n of_o duty_n and_o of_o its_o perfection_n p._n 44_o to_o 46._o that_o the_o same_o duty_n in_o different_a respect_n and_o under_o different_a formal_a notion_n may_v be_v require_v by_o two_o distinct_a law_n p._n 46._o prove_v that_o justify_v faith_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n be_v command_v and_o require_v by_o the_o gospel-law_n p._n 46_o to_o 62._o how_o obedience_n be_v require_v both_o by_o law_n and_o gospel_n and_o that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n have_v precept_n which_o require_v sincere_a obedience_n prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o by_o many_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a divine_n p._n 62_o to_o 94._o sect._n 3_o five_o objection_n answer_v several_a direction_n give_v and_o mistake_v discover_v p._n 94_o to_o 107._o sect._n 4._o gospel-threatning_n further_o prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o consentaneous_a testimony_n of_o many_o protestant_n divine_v and_o objection_n answer_v p._n 107_o to_o 118._o show_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o mediator_n and_o that_o christ_n the_o mediator_n be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v judge_n p._n 112_o 113_o 114_o 115_o 116._o sect._n 5._o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n seven_o objection_n answer_v mr._n bradshaw_n exposition_n of_o 2_o thess_n 1.8_o p._n 119_o to_o 155._o chap._n viii_o sect._n 1_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n rom._n 3.27_o gal._n 6.2_o isa_n 42.4_o luke_n 19.27_o show_v to_o be_v pertinent_o cite_v and_o rom._n 3.27_o more_o large_o vindicate_v prove_v that_o we_o give_v the_o same_o sense_n of_o it_o which_o beza_n give_v p._n 155_o to_o 162._o sect._n 2._o justin_n martyr_n testimony_n clear_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v very_o pertinent_o cite_v and_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n which_o have_v precept_n p._n 162_o to_o 170._o cyprian_a augustine_n and_o salvian_n their_o testimony_n show_v to_o have_v be_v pertinent_o cite_v p._n 170_o to_o 172._o testimony_n of_o modern_a divine_n vindicate_v p._n 172._o to_o 175._o his_o way_n of_o visit_v the_o sick_a p._n 175._o chap._n ix_o the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n opinion_n again_o reject_v p._n 176._o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n not_o include_v in_o our_o hypothesis_n his_o popish_a argument_n answer_v p._n 176_o 177_o 178._o answer_v to_o his_o advice_n p._n 178_o 179._o the_o whole_a conclude_v with_o tertullia_n rule_n of_o faith_n p._n 180._o remark_n on_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o mr._n thomas_n goodwin_n discourse_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o reverend_a brother_n in_o his_o first_o chapter_n pages_z 4_o 5._o state_n the_o controversy_n and_o in_o so_o do_v first_o say_v that_o if_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n be_v mean_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n new_o reveal_v after_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v break_v wherein_o god_n have_v declare_v in_o what_o order_n and_o manner_n he_o will_v save_v guilty_a condemn_a sinner_n it_o be_v present_o grant_v and_o the_o controversy_n be_v at_o end_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o he_o will_v grant_v that_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o only_o declare_v the_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o own_o act_n in_o save_a sinner_n but_o also_o that_o he_o have_v declare_v and_o prescribe_v to_o we_o the_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o our_o act_n in_o subordination_n to_o his_o grace_n for_o obtain_v our_o own_o salvation_n through_o christ_n and_o likewise_o that_o the_o order_n prescribe_v to_o we_o be_v a_o conditional_a order_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n then_o we_o declare_v here_o as_o we_o do_v declare_v before_o in_o our_o apology_n that_o we_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n but_o he_o deny_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v prescribe_v any_o conditional_a order_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o we_o and_o therefore_o say_v second_o what_o be_v deny_v be_v this_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n command_v new_a precept_n as_o condition_n of_o obtain_v its_o blessing_n and_o establish_v with_o a_o sanction_n promise_v life_n and_o happiness_n to_o the_o observance_n of_o they_o and_o threaten_v the_o neglect_n answer_v i_o know_v no_o man_n that_o ever_o affirm_v what_o this_o reverend_a brother_n here_o deny_v a_o law_n command_v new_a precept_n be_v a_o phrase_n peculiar_a to_o mr._n goodwin_n and_o with_o my_o consent_n he_o shall_v have_v the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o first_o inventor_n and_o author_n of_o it_o for_o my_o part_n though_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o law_n command_v new_a duty_n yet_o do_v i_o not_o remember_v that_o i_o have_v hear_v before_o of_o a_o law_n command_v new_a precept_n for_o precept_n and_o commandment_n be_v all_o one_o a_o law_n command_v new_a precept_n be_v a_o law_n command_v new_a commandment_n i_o think_v the_o commandment_n themselves_o have_v not_o be_v the_o object_n or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o commandment_n themselves_o but_o that_o the_o duty_n command_v have_v be_v the_o object_n or_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o commandment_n but_o we_o let_v that_o pass_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o material_a be_v that_o he_o imagine_v his_o adversary_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n law_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o obtain_v its_o blessing_n now_o this_o be_v such_o a_o wild_a fancy_n that_o i_o doubt_v whether_o ever_o it_o come_v into_o a_o man_n head_n that_o
require_v no_o faith_n nor_o practice_n in_o order_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n through_o and_o for_o the_o alone_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n 3._o what_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o schindler_n and_o cocceiut_a their_o lexicon_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n which_o be_v render_v law_n signify_v any_o instruction_n give_v we_o not_o only_o by_o the_o precept_n but_o the_o promise_v of_o god_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a and_o make_v nothing_o against_o i_o for_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v instructive_a both_o by_o precept_n and_o promise_n hence_o i_o say_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 22._o that_o it_o be_v a_o covenant-law_n which_o make_v rich_a offer_n of_o grace_n of_o justify_v and_o glorify_v grace_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o a_o little_a after_o that_o this_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o respect_v the_o way_n of_o god_n dispense_n to_o we_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n such_o as_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n brief_o as_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o it_o be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o prescribe_v to_o we_o the_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v through_o grace_n on_o our_o part_n and_o which_o promise_v we_o pardon_v and_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n alone_o when_o we_o through_o grace_n perform_v the_o condition_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o instructive_a both_o by_o precept_n and_o promise_n 4._o what_o mr._n g._n often_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n signify_v no_o more_o but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n i_o utter_o deny_v it_o in_o his_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n doctrine_n nor_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n its_o be_v derive_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d horah_n prove_v any_o such_o thing_n buxtorf_n who_o understand_v the_o hebrew_n as_o well_o as_o any_o man_n in_o these_o latter_a age_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o lexicon_n pag._n 337._o that_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o law_n quod_fw-la nos_fw-la de_fw-la dei_fw-la voluntate_fw-la erga_fw-la nos_fw-la &_o nostro_fw-la officio_fw-la erga_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o proximum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la doceat_fw-la &_o erudiat_fw-la because_o it_o instruct_v we_o and_o teach_v we_o god_n will_v towards_o we_o and_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n thus_o buxtorf_n now_o if_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v a_o law_n for_o that_o reason_n than_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n which_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v a_o law_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n to_o wit_n because_o it_o teach_v we_o god_n will_v towards_o we_o and_o our_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n according_o it_o be_v free_o grant_v that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n be_v a_o doctrine_n and_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n but_o withal_o it_o be_v to_o be_v always_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o not_o only_o promise_v gracious_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n on_o god_n part_n but_o also_o require_v a_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v and_o term_n to_o be_v comply_v with_o through_o grace_n on_o our_o part_n hence_o the_o evangelical_n prophet_n isa_n 2.3_o say_v he_o the_o lord_n will_n teach_v we_o of_o his_o way_n and_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n and_o prove_v what_o he_o have_v say_v by_o this_o reason_n for_o out_o of_o zion_n shall_v go_v forth_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n mr._n g._n confess_v that_o by_o law_n here_o be_v mean_v the_o gospel_n and_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o reach_v we_o the_o lord_n way_n not_o only_o the_o way_n wherein_o he_o walk_v with_o we_o but_o also_o the_o way_n and_o path_n wherein_o we_o walk_v with_o he_o mr_n g_z will_v have_v the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n teach_v his_o people_n by_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v only_o the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n himself_o walk_v in_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o denote_v only_o the_o order_n which_o god_n have_v constitute_v for_o himself_o to_o observe_v in_o justify_v sinner_n but_o certain_o that_o interpretation_n be_v too_o short_a for_o the_o way_n which_o god_n have_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o to_o walk_v in_o be_v call_v god_n way_n in_o scripture_n gen._n 18.19_o and_o he_o be_v also_o say_v to_o teach_v they_o his_o people_n psal_n 86.11_o and_o 119._o ver_fw-la 32_o 33_o etc._n etc._n john_n 6.45_o and_o particular_o he_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n unto_o the_o father_n so_o faith_n be_v the_o way_n unto_o christ_n this_o the_o gospel_n law_n the_o law_n of_o faith_n teach_v we_o this_o faith_n it_o prescribe_v to_o we_o and_o require_v of_o we_o act_n 16.31_o and_o consequent_o the_o gospel_n in_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o law_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o teach_v we_o the_o way_n we_o be_v to_o walk_v in_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o prescribe_v to_o we_o some_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v and_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o borough_n grace_n that_o we_o may_v through_o christ_n his_o righteousness_n and_o intercession_n obtain_v the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n and_o this_o my_o reverend_a brother_n sometime_o have_v light_n to_o discern_v and_o freedom_n to_o confess_v in_o part_n as_o in_o pag._n 15._o where_o he_o say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o usual_a language_n of_o god_n word_n to_o walk_v in_o god_n way_n be_v to_o observe_v his_o order_n and_o appointment_n the_o expression_n here_o may_v denote_v no_o more_o than_o that_o they_o will_v punctual_o keep_v to_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n mark_v out_o by_o he_o and_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v no_o otherwise_o than_o by_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n as_o the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v thus_o he_o now_o 1_o concern_v this_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n only_o which_o the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v i_o demand_v of_o mr._n goodwin_n whether_o it_o be_v something_o or_o nothing_o if_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o then_o 1._o the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v to_o we_o seek_v that_o be_v it_o prescribe_v nothing_o and_o that_o be_v a_o odd_a way_n of_o prescribe_v to_o prescribe_v and_o yet_o to_o prescribe_v nothing_o 2_o it_o be_v as_o odd_a a_o way_n of_o seek_v for_o to_o seek_v by_o do_v nothing_o but_o if_o to_o avoid_v this_o absurdity_n he_o say_v that_o seek_n be_v something_o then_o i_o affirm_v that_o that_o something_o must_v be_v some_o work_n or_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o if_o so_o than_o we_o have_v what_o we_o desire_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v seek_v and_o seek_v be_v some_o work_n or_o act_n therefore_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v some_o work_n or_o act._n and_o what_o it_o prescribe_v to_o we_o unto_o that_o it_o oblige_v we_o and_o so_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n it_o be_v a_o law_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o work_n and_o act_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o seek_v justification_n by_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n only_o 2ly_n it_o be_v further_a to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o seek_v which_o the_o gospel_n law_n prescribe_v be_v very_o comprehensive_a as_o the_o word_n seek_v be_v use_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o word_n that_o signify_v the_o diligent_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v for_o obtain_v the_o thing_n seek_v but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o apology_n the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v faith_n and_o repentance_n to_o be_v mean_n to_o be_v use_v on_o our_o part_n for_o obtain_v justification_n by_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n only_o repentance_n be_v the_o mean_n or_o condition_n dispositive_a of_o the_o subject_a man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v pardon_v and_o justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n only_o and_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n instrumental_a or_o condition_n receptive_a and_o applicative_a of_o the_o object_n christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o object_n alone_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v and_o therefore_o the_o gospel-law_n by_o prescribe_v the_o foresay_a seek_v which_o signify_v the_o diligent_a use_n of_o all_o appoint_a mean_n
i_o conclude_v but_o with_o no_o certainty_n from_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o work_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o i_o conclude_v or_o endeavour_v to_o conclude_v that_o from_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n he_o can_v to_o etornity_n prove_v this_o from_o any_o word_n of_o i_o in_o the_o apology_n all_o that_o i_o conclude_v from_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n either_o in_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n be_v that_o our_o brethren_n shall_v not_o be_v offend_v with_o we_o for_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n since_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o by_o that_o name_n apol._n p_o 22._o next_o against_o some_o body_n who_o from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o law_n have_v infer_v that_o by_o it_o be_v signify_v a_o rule_n of_o duty_n enact_v with_o a_o sanction_n of_o penalty_n or_o recompense_n he_o say_v that_o he_o know_v no_o great_a weight_n can_v be_v lay_v on_o argument_n draw_v from_o a_o etymology_n and_o if_o he_o know_v this_o why_o do_v he_o against_o his_o knowledge_n lie_v great_a weight_n on_o the_o etymology_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n and_o in_o his_o second_o chapter_n from_o the_o derivation_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d horah_n which_o signify_v he_o teach_v conclude_v with_o confidence_n that_o torah_n law_n when_o use_v for_o the_o gospel_n signify_v nothing_o but_o a_o doctrine_n which_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o 2_o why_o do_v he_o here_o again_o in_o his_o three_o chapter_n p._n 17._o conclude_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o the_o gospel_n be_v name_v by_o it_o signify_v no_o more_o but_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o aforesaid_a because_o the_o septuagint_n render_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o most_o fit_v to_o express_v such_o a_o sense_n be_v not_o this_o argument_n ground_v upon_o the_o etymology_n of_o torah_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o uncertainty_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o same_o way_n of_o argue_v which_o be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o our_o brethren_n must_v be_v esteem_v to_o be_v of_o great_a force_n against_o we_o because_o so_o be_v the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o reverend_a brother_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v take_v up_o in_o give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n of_o his_o sense_n of_o gal._n 2.19_o which_o he_o have_v from_o luther_n and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v before_o we_o have_v do_v that_o as_o luther_n hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n so_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel-law_n require_v of_o we_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o both_o jerome_n and_o primasius_n two_o ancient_a father_n who_o in_o their_o commentary_n on_o gal._n 2_o 19_o do_v that_o way_n interpret_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n i_o through_o the_o law_n be_o dead_a to_o the_o law_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o through_o the_o evangelical_n law_n be_o dead_a to_o the_o old_a law_n i_o say_v i_o be_o sure_a that_o both_o of_o they_o by_o the_o evangelical_n law_n understand_v such_o a_o gospel-law_n as_o have_v not_o only_a promise_n but_o also_o have_v its_o own_o precept_n and_o threaten_n as_o manifest_o appear_v by_o what_o they_o write_v in_o their_o commentary_n on_o gal._n 3.13_o and_o have_v brief_o hint_v this_o that_o i_o primasius_n and_o luther_n who_o all_o three_o go_v one_o way_n and_o there_o think_v to_o have_v find_v the_o evangelical_n law_n yet_o do_v not_o by_o the_o evangelical_n law_n understand_v a_o mere_a speculative_a doctrine_n or_o narrative_n that_o require_v nothing_o at_o all_o neither_o faith_n nor_o repentance_n i_o may_v very_o well_o pass_v over_o mr._n g's_o fine_a flourish_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o not_o worth_a my_o take_v any_o further_a notice_n of_o have_v not_o he_o drop_v several_a gross_a falsehood_n in_o give_v his_o sense_n of_o that_o text._n asdruball_n 1._o that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o galathian_o against_o which_o paul_n write_v be_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n 18._o disc_n p._n 18._o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o so_o to_o be_v this_o i_o say_v be_v a_o gross_a falsehood_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o those_o galathian_o be_v judaize_v christian_n who_o error_n be_v that_o man_n can_v be_v justify_v and_o save_v unless_o over_o and_o beside_o their_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n they_o be_v circumcise_a and_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n see_v act_n 15.1_o compare_v with_o gal._n 2.4_o gal._n 4._o ver_fw-la 9_o 10_o 21._o and_o 5_o ver_fw-la 1.2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o if_o then_o those_o erroneous_a galathian_o have_v any_o true_a and_o right_a notion_n at_o all_o of_o justification_n by_o christ_n impute_v righteousness_n yet_o it_o be_v plain_a they_o think_v that_o christ_n impute_v righteousness_n receive_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o alone_o sufficient_a for_o justification_n but_o tha●_n man_n mu●●_n join_v to_o it_o their_o own_o moysaicall_a ceremonial_a and_o moral_a righteousness_n as_o a_o part_n of_o their_o justify_v righteousness_n before_o god_n now_o can_v our_o reverend_n brother_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n say_v that_o i_o or_o any_o of_o my_o brethren_n be_v for_o such_o a_o way_n of_o justification_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o moses_n his_o law_n join_v with_o the_o impute_v righteousness_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o live_v 2._o in_o page_n 19_o 20_o 21_o he_o all_o along_o insinuate_v plain_o that_o we_o hold_v we_o be_v justify_v in_o part_n by_o our_o own_o work_n do_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o new_a gospel_n law_n and_o that_o the_o defect_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v make_v up_o by_o the_o super-addition_n of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n to_o he_o so_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n tribunal_n not_o only_o by_o christ_n impute_v righteousness_n but_o also_o in_o part_n by_o and_o for_o our_o own_o work_n and_o righteousness_n this_o be_v another_o falsehood_n so_o gross_a that_o i_o wonder_v my_o reverend_a brother_n shall_v ever_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o if_o he_o have_v read_v and_o understand_v our_o apology_n pag_n 38_o 39_o 40_o 45_o 80_o 89_o 90_o 91_o 193_o 196_o 200_o 201._o this_o opinion_n which_o he_o will_v father_n upon_o we_o we_o have_v in_o our_o apology_n reject_v and_o do_v now_o here_o again_o reject_v it_o with_o abhorrency_n and_o therefore_o it_o any_o do_v hereafter_o persist_v to_o charge_v we_o with_o this_o error_n which_o we_o abhor_v let_v they_o look_v to_o it_o that_o they_o do_v not_o force_v we_o in_o our_o own_o just_a defence_n to_o proclaim_v they_o to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v man_n possess'_v with_o a_o caluminate_n lie_a spirit_n but_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v force_v upon_o the_o do_n of_o that_o which_o be_v so_o much_o against_o my_o christian_a temper_n which_o incline_v i_o rather_o to_o conceal_v and_o cover_v the_o fail_n of_o brethren_n than_o to_o discover_v they_o and_o proclaim_v they_o to_o the_o world_n i_o do_v sincere_o desire_v and_o through_o grace_n shall_v endeavour_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o i_o to_o live_v peaceable_o with_o all_o man_n rom._n 12.18_o and_o to_o live_v love_o too_o with_o my_o reverend_a brethren_n give_v they_o all_o due_a respect_n and_o be_v ever_o ready_a to_o serve_v they_o in_o the_o lord_n remark_n on_o the_o four_o chapter_n in_o this_o chapter_n at_o the_o very_a beginning_n he_o mistake_v my_o purpose_n and_o design_n in_o appeal_n to_o the_o father_n in_o this_o controversy_n which_o be_v not_o by_o they_o as_o judge_n to_o prove_v any_o matter_n of_o right_n as_o he_o pretend_v but_o only_o by_o they_o as_o witness_n to_o prove_v matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n 24._o see_v apol._n p._n 24._o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n as_o our_o accuser_n have_v affirm_v it_o to_o be_v and_o do_v mr._n g._n refute_v this_o no_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o refute_v it_o that_o he_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o say_v and_o with_o i_o prove_v the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n to_o have_v assert_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o the_o face_n of_o a_o learned_a age._n then_o he_o quote_v
our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o sense_n it_o comprehend_v the_o absolute_a and_o conditional_a promise_n together_o with_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o condition_n to_o the_o performer_n of_o which_o the_o conditional_a promise_n be_v make_v on_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n now_o it_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o we_o say_v the_o gospel_n take_v for_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v a_o law_n as_o it_o prescribe_v the_o condition_n and_o oblige_v we_o to_o compliance_n therewith_o and_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o it_o promise_v to_o penitent_a believer_n most_o gracious_a benefit_n and_o blessing_n and_o likewise_o as_o it_o promise_v to_o the_o elect_n special_a effectual_a and_o victorious_a grace_n whereby_o they_o do_v most_o free_o and_o yet_o most_o certain_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o gospel_n be_v so_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o to_o be_v also_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v something_o to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o through_o grace_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o assembly_n confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 7._o art_n 3._o where_o it_o say_v express_o that_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o lord_n free_o offer_v unto_o sinner_n life_n and_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n require_v of_o they_o faith_n in_o he_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v and_o promise_v to_o give_v unto_o all_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v to_o life_n his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o make_v they_o willing_a and_o able_a to_o believe_v and_o no_o less_o evident_a it_o be_v from_o the_o large_a catechism_n where_o to_o the_o question_n how_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o the_o second_o covenant_n it_o answer_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o second_o covenant_n in_o that_o he_o free_o provide_v and_o offer_v to_o sinner_n a_o mediator_n and_o life_n and_o salvation_n by_o he_o and_o require_v faith_n as_o the_o condition_n to_o interest_n they_o in_o he_o promise_v and_o give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n likewise_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 3._o art_n 8._o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n afford_v matter_n of_o praise_n reverence_n and_o admiration_n of_o god_n and_o of_o humility_n diligence_n and_o abundant_a consolation_n to_o all_o that_o sincere_o obey_v the_o gospel_n according_o the_o lord_n himself_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n assure_v we_o that_o unbeliever_n and_o wicked_a man_n to_o who_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v do_v not_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o not_o obey_v it_o in_o rom._n 10.16_o the_o apostle_n prove_v their_o disobedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o their_o unbelief_n as_o the_o effect_n from_o the_o cause_n see_v also_o 2_o thess_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o 1_o pet._n 4.17_o from_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o sense_n aforesaid_a be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o i_o hope_v my_o r_n brother_n will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o unbeliever_n as_o to_o refuse_v its_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o he_o also_o second_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n to_o be_v put_v between_o a_o accurate_a perfect_a definition_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o do_v indeed_o contain_v whatever_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o thing_n define_v and_o a_o popular_a description_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o yet_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n may_v be_v call_v a_o definition_n but_o than_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v definitio_fw-la imperfecta_fw-la &_o oratorum_fw-la propria_fw-la a_o imperfect_a definition_n and_o such_o as_o be_v proper_a for_o orator_n to_o make_v use_n of_o and_z according_o my_o r_n brother_n pag._n 28._o lin_v 8._o have_v these_o numerical_a word_n as_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o they_o profess_o define_v or_o describe_v the_o gospel_n now_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o a_o popular_a definition_n or_o description_n shall_v always_o contain_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_a unto_o that_o which_o be_v so_o define_v or_o describe_v three_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o gospel_n take_v in_o a_o limit_a restrain_a sense_n for_o one_o part_n of_o supernatural_a reveal_v religion_n may_v be_v and_o indeed_o aught_o to_o be_v define_v or_o describe_v one_o way_n but_o take_v in_o a_o more_o large_a comprehensive_a sense_n for_o another_o or_o more_o part_n of_o supernatural_a reveal_v religion_n as_o for_o instance_n for_o the_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n the_o mediator_n it_o may_v be_v and_o indeed_o aught_o to_o be_v define_v or_o describe_v another_o way_n so_o that_o what_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o take_v in_o a_o limit_a restrain_a sense_n yet_o may_v be_v and_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o take_v in_o a_o more_o large_a and_o comprehensive_a sense_n four_o it_o be_v to_o be_v well_o consider_v and_o careful_o remember_v that_o when_o our_o first_o reformer_n deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n as_o they_o frequent_o do_v it_o be_v in_o the_o popish_a socinian_n or_o arminian_n sense_n and_o it_o be_v most_o in_o the_o popish_a sense_n for_o it_o be_v with_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v when_o they_o deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n for_o instance_n mr._n fox_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o papist_n de_fw-fr christo_fw-la gratis_o justificante_fw-la deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n in_o their_o sense_n as_o we_o also_o do_v and_o yet_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 96.128_o he_o maintain_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o proper_a condition_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o evangelical_n repentance_n be_v a_o condition_n preparatory_a and_o dispositive_a of_o the_o subject_a to_o be_v justify_v which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o though_o he_o deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o popish_a sense_n yet_o he_o do_v in_o effect_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n in_o our_o sense_n five_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v hat_n there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o a_o law_n of_o work_n and_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o according_a to_o the_o scriptural_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n a_o law_n of_o work_n be_v a_o law_n the_o observance_n and_o keep_n of_o which_o be_v a_o man_n justify_v righteousness_n it_o be_v the_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o he_o be_v justify_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n govern_v justice_n but_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o such_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o our_o justify_n righteousness_n at_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n justice_n either_o in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a it_o be_v only_o either_o 1_o that_o whereby_o we_o be_v dispose_v for_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n only_o such_o as_o be_v evangelical_n repentance_n or_o 2._o it_o be_v that_o whereby_o we_o receive_v apply_v and_o trust_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n justice_n such_o as_o be_v true_a faith_n only_o or._n 3_o it_o be_v that_o whereby_o we_o be_v qualify_v and_o dispose_v for_o the_o actual_a possession_n of_o that_o eternal_a glory_n and_o happiness_n which_o we_o receive_v a_o right_n unto_o before_o in_o our_o justification_n and_o which_o immediate_o after_o this_o life_n be_v give_v to_o we_o in_o the_o full_a possession_n as_o to_o the_o soul_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n meritorious_a righteousness_n only_o such_o as_o be_v sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n now_o though_o we_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n as_o mean_n in_o order_n to_o the_o end_n aforesaid_a yet_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o work_n nor_o do_v it_o follow_v from_o our_o principle_n six_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o mere_a positive_a law_n now_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o we_o all_o that_o the_o lord_n after_o his_o incarnation_n do_v not_o give_v unto_o his_o people_n a_o new_a moral_a natural_a law_n nor_o do_v he_o perfect_a and_o fill_v up_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o old_a moral_a natural_a law_n neither_o do_v he_o enlarge_v the_o obligation_n of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o make_v it_o oblige_v people_n to_o some_o moral_a natural_a duty_n which_o it_o oblige_v no_o body_n unto_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o this_o sense_n papist_n socinian_o and_o arminian_o hold_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v a_o new_a law_n giver_n but_o this_o opinion_n we_o
g_z quote_v there_o out_o of_o chemnitius_n and_o beza_n concern_v the_o papist_n confound_v law_n and_o gospel_n its_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o many_o pernicious_a error_n in_o the_o church_n be_v impertinent_o allege_v against_o we_o for_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n as_o papist_n do_v that_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n only_o but_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o work_n in_o the_o scriptural_a or_o popish_a sense_n of_o that_o word_n and_o in_o our_o apology_n we_o plain_o state_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o in_o so_o much_o that_o whoever_o read_v understand_v believe_v and_o observe_v what_o we_o there_o write_v on_o that_o subject_n be_v so_o far_o out_o of_o danger_n of_o the_o popish_a error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v plain_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o embrace_v any_o of_o they_o without_o first_o renounce_v some_o of_o those_o great_a truth_n which_o we_o have_v plain_o there_o lay_v down_o in_o vindicate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o calumny_n of_o the_o informer_n and_o of_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n so_o much_o in_o answer_n to_o his_o first_o set_v of_o testimony_n relate_v to_o the_o definition_n or_o description_n of_o the_o gospel_n sect_n iii_o his_o second_o set_v of_o testimony_n examine_v and_o answer_v his_o next_o set_v of_o testimony_n of_o reform_a divine_n be_v to_o prove_v as_o he_o say_v pag._n 36._o by_o their_o express_a word_n that_o when_o they_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n they_o intend_v no_o more_o by_o it_o but_o a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o in_o general_n that_o in_o a_o sound_a sense_n i_o grant_v the_o gospel_n law_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o in_o his_o sense_n i_o deny_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o gospel-law_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n so_o as_o not_o to_o require_v any_o thing_n of_o we_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o faith_n in_o christ_n i_o show_v the_o contrary_a before_o from_o their_o own_o express_a word_n in_o the_o 20_o article_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n which_o luther_n and_o calvin_n both_o subscribe_v second_o i_o give_v a_o particular_a answer_n to_o the_o several_a testimony_n which_o mr._n g._n allege_v and_o 1._o as_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o luther_n quote_v out_o of_o his_o commentary_n on_o gal._n 2._o and_o isai_n 2._o his_o first_o testimony_n as_o to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o concern_v we_o not_o at_o all_o for_o we_o abhor_v that_o opinion_n of_o justiciaries_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o luther_n do_v and_o we_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o think_v say_v or_o write_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o book_n which_o contain_v new_a law_n concern_v work_n as_o the_o turk_n dream_n of_o their_o alcoran_n 2._o as_o to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o first_o testimony_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o preach_a concern_v christ_n that_o he_o forgive_v sin_n gives_z grace_n justify_v and_o save_v sinner_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a truth_n for_o over_o and_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v also_o a_o preach_a concern_v christ_n that_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o augustan_n confession_n and_o according_a to_o what_o we_o before_o hear_v from_o luther_n himself_o in_o his_o little_a book_n of_o christian_a liberty_n and_o which_o be_v far_o more_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n 3._o as_o to_o the_o three_o part_n of_o his_o testimony_n that_o the_o precept_n find_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o gospel_n but_o exposition_n of_o the_o law_n and_o appendix_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v to_o be_v right_o understand_v as_o 1_o they_o be_v not_o the_o whole_a gospel_n nor_o 2._o be_v they_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o which_o it_o chief_o have_v its_o denomination_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v that_o part_n 3._o it_o be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v indeed_o precept_n find_v write_v somewhere_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n in_o its_o last_o and_o best_a form_n of_o administration_n but_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o first_o law_n of_o work_n or_o to_o the_o typical_a legal_a form_n of_o administer_a the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n yet_o there_o be_v other_o precept_n for_o instance_n that_o which_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n as_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n of_o receive_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n and_o this_o precept_n even_o in_o luther_n judgement_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v indeed_o one_o article_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n act_v 16.31_o rom._n 10.8_o 9_o 10._o the_o second_o testimony_n from_o luther_n commentary_n on_o isai_n 2._o be_v impertinent_o allege_v and_o prove_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o firm_o believe_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o work_n for_o justification_n but_o a_o law_n or_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n even_o a_o new_a doctrine_n as_o luther_n expression_n be_v or_o law_n of_o grace_n 2._o in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o bring_v a_o testimony_n of_o calvin_n out_o of_o his_o commentary_n on_o isai_n 2.3_o which_o as_o mr._n g_o allege_v it_o be_v impertinent_a for_o it_o prove_v nothing_o against_o we_o we_o grant_v also_o to_o our_o r_n brother_n that_o the_o way_n of_o argue_v he_o mention_n in_o pag._n 38._o will_v be_v impertinent_a and_o i_o assure_v he_o it_o be_v not_o my_o way_n of_o argue_v to_o conclude_v from_o the_o gospel_n be_v name_v a_o law_n that_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o work_n for_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n or_o law_n of_o work_n at_o all_o in_o the_o scripture_n sense_n of_o that_o word_n i_o e._n a_o doctrine_n of_o work_n by_o and_o for_o which_o justification_n and_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v after_o 3._o three_o for_o the_o testimony_n out_o of_o musculus_fw-la on_o isai_n 2._o i_o admit_v it_o as_o not_o be_v in_o the_o least_o against_o i_o and_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o he_o be_v for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o we_o be_v 4._o nor_o four_o do_v gualters_n testimony_n make_v against_o i_o in_o the_o least_o if_o it_o be_v not_o wrest_v by_o a_o false_a gloss_n put_v on_o his_o word_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o require_v faith_n but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v so_o in_o the_o word_n quote_v by_o mr._n g_o 5._o the_o passage_n quote_v out_o of_o vrsin_n on_o isai_n 2.3_o make_v rather_o for_o we_o than_o against_o we_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impertinent_o allege_v and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o vrsin_n be_v not_o against_o but_o for_o condition_n in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o in_o my_o remark_n on_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o shall_v prove_v by_o his_o own_o express_a formal_a word_n that_o he_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n of_o its_o own_o which_o require_v of_o we_o faith_n and_o repentance_n 6._o nor_o do_v the_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o chemnitius_n his_o common_a place_n contradict_v my_o principle_n but_o it_o rather_o confirm_v they_o and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v that_o he_o hold_v justify_v faith_n to_o be_v command_v and_o require_v by_o the_o gospel_n see_v his_o common_a place_n in_o folio_n pag._n 219._o 7._o and_o last_o for_o wittichius_n his_o testimony_n the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o i_o for_o it_o contain_v my_o principle_n express_v to_o my_o mind_n i_o do_v hearty_o agree_v with_o he_o that_o no_o work_n of_o we_o neither_o repentance_n nor_o yet_o faith_n be_v or_o can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o justification_n as_o perfect_v personal_a work_n be_v to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n and_o ground_n of_o adam_n justification_n by_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n if_o he_o have_v never_o break_v it_o but_o for_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o testimony_n if_o he_o intend_v thereby_o to_o deny_v that_o either_o faith_n or_o repentance_n be_v require_v as_o antecedent_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n necessary_a unto_o justification_n by_o and_o for_o the_o alone-righteousness_n of_o christ_n then_o i_o do_v reject_v that_o part_n of_o his_o testimony_n as_o unsound_a and_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o more_o
divine_n of_o the_o westminster_n assembly_n follow_v calvin_n for_o thus_o they_o write_v in_o their_o annotation_n on_o john_n 12.48_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o gospel_n which_o the_o wicked_a now_o so_o secure_o contemn_v shall_v once_o rise_v in_o judgement_n against_o they_o and_o condemn_v they_o see_v mark_v 16.16_o john_n 3.18_o by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o heavy_o by_o how_o much_o great_a mean_n of_o salvation_n they_o have_v neglect_v and_o hutcheson_n follow_v the_o assembly_n man_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v on_o john_n 12._o for_o 48._o doctr._fw-la 7._o albeit_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n wicked_a man_n will_v be_v call_v to_o account_v for_o all_o their_o sin_n against_o the_o law_n yet_o their_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n will_v be_v their_o sad_a ditty_n for_o he_o that_o reject_v i_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v he_o that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n many_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n evince_v this_o truth_n that_o even_o the_o gospel_n have_v its_o threaten_n but_o i_o forbear_v to_o add_v any_o more_o in_o this_o place_n because_o i_o must_v speak_v to_o this_o matter_n again_o in_o my_o animadversion_n on_o his_o next_o chapter_n three_o and_o last_o what_o mr._n g_z say_v in_o pag._n 40._o that_o in_o psal_n 19.8_o 9_o and_o rom_n 3_o 27._o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n and_o what_o he_o there_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v so_o call_v not_o because_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o work_n but_o a_o doctrine_n of_o pure_a grace_n do_v real_o prove_v no_o more_o than_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o law_n of_o work_n by_o and_o for_o which_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o save_v but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o i_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v yet_o from_o its_o be_v only_o a_o doctrine_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o infer_v that_o it_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o be_v plain_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n and_o meaning_n both_o of_o holy_a david_n and_o paul_n for_o even_o in_o that_o 19_o psalm_n the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o mr._n goodwin_n affirm_v to_o be_v the_o gospel_n be_v by_o david_n express_o say_v to_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n ver_fw-la 8._o and_o dare_v mr._n goodwin_n say_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o command_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o 9.10_o see_v disc_n p._n 9.10_o nor_o lay_v any_o obligation_n to_o duty_n upon_o his_o conscience_n if_o he_o dare_v say_v so_o he_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o i_o to_o have_v any_o thing_n more_o to_o do_v with_o but_o i_o ought_v to_o leave_v he_o to_o dispute_v that_o matter_n with_o the_o lord_n god_n himself_o and_o as_o for_o bless_a paul_n do_v not_o he_o say_v to_o the_o gaoler_n act_n 16.31_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d believe_v be_v of_o the_o imperative_a mood_n and_o therefore_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o here_o be_v a_o command_n to_o believe_v on_o christ_n now_o i_o demand_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o pure_a gospel_n if_o it_o be_v as_o i_o hope_v no_o christian_n will_v deny_v and_o i_o be_o sure_a mr._n goodwin_n friend_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o informer_n mr._n trail_n can_v honest_o and_o fair_o deny_v then_o i_o demand_v further_o whether_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o require_v and_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o gospel_n require_v and_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n than_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n which_o by_o mr._n goodwin_n own_o confession_n signify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v and_o command_v duty_n to_o wit_n the_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v nothing_o at_o all_o that_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n i_o never_o deny_v in_o all_o my_o life_n but_o this_o consequence_n i_o do_v utter_o deny_v that_o because_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o require_v nor_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n and_o i_o be_o not_o alone_a in_o this_o there_o be_v many_o other_o of_o good_a esteem_n in_o the_o church_n for_o orthodoxy_n who_o grant_v with_o i_o that_o law_n of_o faith_n signify_v a_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o maintain_v as_o i_o do_v that_o that_o same_o doctrine_n prescribe_v and_o command_v faith_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n at_o present_a i_o give_v three_o instance_n of_o this_o as_o 1_o the_o dutch_a annotation_n on_o rom_n 3.27_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o prescript_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n &c_n &c_n by_o which_o word_n they_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v at_o once_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o prescript_n of_o faith_n and_o who_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o for_o the_o gospel_n to_o proscribe_v faith_n to_o we_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o require_v and_o command_v it_o 2._o the_o assembly_n annotation_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o law_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o precept_n or_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n manner_n of_o speak_v be_v call_v a_o law_n isa_n 2.3_o or_o by_o that_o new_a order_n or_o covenant_n of_o god_n which_o do_v strip_v man_n of_o all_o worth_a and_o righteousness_n of_o his_o own_o and_o clothe_v he_o by_o grace_n with_o that_o of_o christ_n 3._o the_o last_o annotation_n common_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o pool_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o nay_o but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n the_o gospel_n law_n which_o require_v faith_n by_o which_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o attain_v by_o we_o etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o several_a annotation_n aforesaid_a do_v all_o acknowledge_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o maintain_v that_o it_o prescribe_v command_n and_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v that_o these_o protestant_n divine_n want_v mr._n g._n to_o tutor_v they_o and_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n have_v no_o precept_n and_o require_v no_o duty_n but_o because_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o meet_v again_o with_o this_o logic_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n therefore_o it_o have_v no_o precept_n of_o its_o own_o and_o require_v no_o duty_n i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o of_o it_o here_o but_o pass_v to_o the_o next_o chapter_n animadversion_n on_o the_o seven_o chapter_n section_n i._n 1._o this_o chapter_n begin_v with_o a_o manifest_a falsehood_n to_o wit_n that_o my_o argument_n and_o citation_n be_v all_o establish_v mere_o upon_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n the_o contradictory_n of_o that_o false_a proposition_n be_v true_a that_o not_o one_o of_o my_o argument_n and_o citation_n be_v establish_v mere_o upon_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n 2._o he_o insinuate_v that_o i_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o duty_n fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n because_o we_o find_v it_o to_o be_v name_v a_o law_n both_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o humane_a write_n this_o assertion_n be_v as_o false_a as_o the_o former_a and_o the_o contrary_n be_v rather_o true_a that_o i_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n 221._o see_v dr._n owen_n on_o heb._n 8.6_o pag._n 221._o because_o i_o find_v it_o be_v in_o effect_n say_v to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o duty_n fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n both_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o humane_a write_n and_o yet_o even_o this_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o duty_n fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n must_v be_v right_o understand_v for_o i_o never_o say_v write_v nor_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o duty_n by_o and_o for_o which_o duty_n we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v or_o that_o it_o be_v fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n promise_v justification_n or_o salvation_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o duty_n i_o hold_v the_o contradictory_n of_o this_o to_o be_v true_a to_o wit_n the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o rule_n of_o duty_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n nor_o fortify_v with_o such_o a_o sanction_n the_o preceptive_a part_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v indeed_o a_o rule_n of_o duty_n but_o in_o order_n to_o quit_v other_o end_n than_o to_o be_v justify_v or_o save_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o that_o duty_n perform_v it_o be_v also_o
chemnitius_n also_o in_o his_o common_a place_n not_o only_o confess_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n isa_n 2.3_o mic._n 4.2_o and_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 3.27_o but_o though_o he_o purposely_o set_v himself_o to_o please_v the_o rigid_a lutheran_n he_o likewise_o say_v that_o 219._o that_o affirmativa_fw-la de_fw-la fiducia_fw-la gratuitae_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la vox_fw-la legis_fw-la sicut_fw-la paulus_n clare_v dicit_fw-la gal._n 3.12_o lex_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la fide_fw-la etc._n etc._n chemnit_fw-la loc_fw-la come_v p._n 219._o the_o affirmative_a part_n concern_v the_o faith_n or_o confident_a trust_n of_o free_a mercy_n for_o christ_n sake_n be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n as_o paul_n clear_o say_v gal._n 3.12_o the_o law_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n observe_v here_o that_o justify_v faith_n in_o chemnitius_n opinion_n be_v not_o require_v by_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o because_o paul_n clear_o say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n gal._n 3.12_o i_o e._n the_o law_n require_v not_o faith_n to_o justification_n see_v our_o last_o annotation_n pool_n on_o gal._n 3.12_o the_o law_n say_v nothing_o of_o faith_n in_o the_o mediator_n though_o faith_n in_o god_n be_v command_v in_o the_o first_o precept_n yet_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v not_o command_v in_o the_o law_n as_o that_o by_o which_o the_o soul_n shall_v iive_v etc._n etc._n hemmingius_n a_o moderate_a lutheran_n and_o disciple_n of_o melancthon_n say_v poenitentia_fw-la say_v fidem_fw-la omnes_fw-la unanimiter_fw-la ad_fw-la evangelium_fw-la referunt_fw-la tract_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la salutari_fw-la edit_fw-la hafniae_fw-la 1591._o loco_fw-la de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la all_o divine_n unanimous_o refer_v faith_n in_o christ_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v so_o for_o before_o the_o flacian_o i_o do_v not_o know_v that_o ever_o any_o protestant_a divine_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n which_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n unto_o justification_n and_o salvation_n i_o be_o sure_a luther_n be_v not_o of_o that_o mind_n for_o in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a liberty_n a_o little_a before_o the_o passage_n which_o mr._n goodwin_n have_v quote_v out_o of_o it_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o very_a gospel_n or_o god_n in_o and_o by_o the_o gospel_n speak_v unto_o man_n and_o say_v christ_n say_v en_fw-fr tibi_fw-la crede_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la promittuntur_fw-la tibi_fw-la gratia_fw-la justitia_fw-la pax_fw-la libertas_n &_o omne_fw-la si_fw-la credis_fw-la habebis_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la carebis_fw-la luther_n de_fw-fr libert_n christ_n lo_o here_o for_o thou_o believe_v in_o christ_n in_o who_o be_v promise_v unto_o thou_o grace_n justice_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v have_v they_o if_o thou_o believe_v not_o thou_o shall_v want_v they_o here_o it_o be_v observable_a as_o be_v say_v before_o 1._o that_o luther_n speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o distinguish_v from_o and_o oppose_v to_o the_o law_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o the_o language_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o consider_v be_v creed_n in_o christum_fw-la etc._n etc._n believe_v in_o christ_n and_o if_o that_o be_v not_o a_o command_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o ever_o there_o be_v such_o a_o command_n in_o the_o world_n 3_o tho._n luther_n call_v the_o gospel_n there_o promissa_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o promise_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a he_o do_v not_o think_v they_o to_o be_v all_o absolute_a promise_n for_o he_o express_o mention_n a_o conditional_a promise_n say_v si_fw-mi credis_fw-la habebis_fw-la if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v have_v all_o those_o benefit_n that_o be_v promise_v in_o and_o through_o christ_n 4._o that_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o promise_n of_o great_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n make_v to_o we_o on_o condition_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n do_v carry_v in_o it_o a_o gospel_n command_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o imaginable_a how_o luther_n can_v make_v the_o very_a gospel_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n as_o oppose_v to_o the_o law_n to_o say_v unto_o man_n crede_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la believe_v in_o christ_n for_o that_o be_v a_o precept_n if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o precept_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v a_o precept_n it_o must_v according_a to_o luther_n be_v employ_v in_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n whence_o we_o may_v learn_v this_o useful_a lesson_n that_o in_o every_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v by_o we_o 1._o the_o promise_n itself_o of_o some_o gratuitous_a benefit_n 2._o the_o gospel_n command_v to_o perform_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o the_o benefit_n be_v promise_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o observation_n be_v well_o understand_v by_o the_o learned_a dr._n whitaker_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v etc._n say_v whitak_n praelect_v de_fw-fr sacram._n cap_n 4._o promissio_fw-la gratiae_fw-la conditionalis_fw-la est_fw-la requirit_fw-la enim_fw-la fidem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a for_o it_o require_v faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o dr._n nowell_n in_o his_o foresay_a latin_a catechism_n teach_v in_o the_o grammar-school_n throughout_o england_n speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o law_n he_o say_v 1626._o say_v verae_fw-la religionis_fw-la part_n sunt_fw-la obedientia_fw-la quam_fw-la lex_fw-la imperat_fw-la &_o fides_fw-la quam_fw-la evangelium_fw-la requirit_fw-la a._n nowelli_n christianae_n pietatis_fw-la prima_fw-la instit_fw-la pag._n 3._o edit_fw-la cantab._n 1626._o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n in_o like_a manner_n sharpius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o gospel_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o law_n require_v faith_n and_o declare_v that_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n which_o mr._n goodwin_n have_v late_o take_v up_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o flacian_o 692._o flacian_o errant_a flaciani_n qui_fw-la in_o evangelio_n nullum_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la esse_fw-la volunt_fw-la cum_fw-la manifest_a praecipiatur_fw-la ut_fw-la credamus_fw-la &_o poenitentiam_fw-la agamus_fw-la fides_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la tantùm_fw-la ex_fw-la evangelio_n ut_fw-la &_o poenitentia_fw-la quae_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dicitur_fw-la sharpii_n cur_n theolog._n sect._n de_fw-fr evangelio_n pag._n 692._o the_o flacian_o say_v he_o err_v who_o will_v have_v no_o precept_n to_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_o command_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v and_o repent_v but_o faith_n be_v only_o from_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v also_o that_o repentance_n which_o in_o greek_a be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o sharpius_n agree_v dickson_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o 28._o his_o word_n be_v these_o argum._n 10._o because_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v faith_n to_o our_o justification_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o another_o man_n boast_a in_o himself_o be_v exclude_v and_o not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n or_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n which_o exact_v perfect_a obedience_n and_o afford_v boast_v to_o man_n in_o their_o inherent_a righteousness_n therefore_o say_v he_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n thus_o dickson_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v the_o late_a reverend_n and_o learned_a mr._n pitcairn_n principal_a of_o the_o new_a college_n and_o rector_n of_o the_o university_n of_o s._n andrews_n for_o in_o his_o harmony_n of_o the_o evangelist_n he_o write_v thus_o absolvitur_fw-la thus_o p●●cairn_n harmon_n evang._n p._n 274._o quisquis_fw-la justificatur_fw-la per_fw-la legem_fw-la christi_fw-la ho_o est_fw-la per_fw-la evangelicam_fw-la christi_fw-la legem_fw-la fidem_fw-la praescribentem_fw-la absolvitur_fw-la whosoever_o be_v justify_v he_o be_v absolve_v by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v by_o the_o evangelical_n law_n of_o christ_n which_o prescribe_v faith_n and_o as_o be_v observe_v before_o the_o assembly_n confession_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o god_n covenant_n with_o man_n art_n 3._o say_v express_o that_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n require_v of_o man_n faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v i_o may_v bring_v many_o more_o testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n but_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o it_o have_v be_v and_o be_v the_o common_a belief_n of_o our_o protestant_a divine_n except_o some_o rave_a bawl_a flacian_o in_o germany_n and_o the_o cocceian_o in_o holland_n that_o the_o gospel_n command_v and_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n the_o case_n than_o be_v plain_o thus_o that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n require_v faith_n in_o god_n simple_o consider_v as_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n by_o nature_n one_o god_n
with_o the_o father_n and_o spirit_n it_o require_v faith_n in_o he_o also_o consider_v simple_o under_o that_o formal_a notion_n as_o god_n but_o the_o law_n do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n as_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n receptive_a and_o applicative_a of_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n it_o be_v the_o gospel-covenant_n which_o first_o by_o itself_o immediate_o constitute_v and_o ordain_v faith_n in_o the_o mediator_n christ_n jesus_n to_o be_v the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n receptive_a and_o applicative_a of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o which_o likewise_o require_v it_o of_o we_o as_o such_o and_o under_o that_o notion_n now_o when_o faith_n in_o the_o mediator_n be_v once_o by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o grace_n or_o gospel-covenant_n ordain_v to_o such_o a_o use_n and_o require_v of_o we_o for_o that_o purpose_n than_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v we_o to_o observe_v the_o positive_a evangelical_n law_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v ordain_v faith_n to_o such_o a_o use_n and_o require_v it_o in_o order_n to_o such_o a_o end_n and_o so_o mediante_fw-la lege_fw-la evangelicâ_fw-la positiuâ_fw-la by_o mean_n of_o the_o positive_a evangelical_n law_n of_o grace_n or_o new_a covenant_n the_o natural_a law_n the_o law_n of_o our_o creation_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n to_o receive_v he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o to_o trust_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o and_o for_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n only_o so_o that_o justify_v faith_n in_o the_o mediator_n be_v require_v of_o we_o first_o direct_o and_o immediate_o by_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n only_o but_o secondary_o mediate_o and_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v also_o require_v by_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n this_o to_o i_o be_v very_o evident_a for_o 1._o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n can_v of_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n unless_o he_o be_v otherwise_o discover_v to_o we_o by_o supernatural_a revelation_n this_o i_o think_v none_o will_v deny_v for_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 10.14_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v on_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n before_o he_o be_v reveal_v to_o he_o and_o he_o can_v be_v reveal_v by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n without_o supernatural_a revelation_n therefore_o he_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n immediate_o without_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n because_o that_o just_a and_o good_a law_n can_v oblige_v a_o man_n to_o a_o simple_a and_o absolute_a impossibility_n man_n in_o his_o innocency_n can_v not_o be_v oblige_v by_o a_o natural_a law_n to_o believe_v a_o supernatural_a object_n without_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n 2._o the_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n to_o we_o do_v of_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o do_v not_o only_o discover_v christ_n the_o object_n but_o it_o do_v likewise_o per_fw-la se_fw-la immediatè_fw-la by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o object_n reveal_v so_o that_o all_o natural_a moral_a law_n set_v aside_o and_o abstract_v from_o any_o such_o law_n the_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n will_v by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o 1._o because_o it_o be_v god_n own_o supernatural_a testimony_n which_o of_o itself_o have_v a_o immediate_a authority_n over_o our_o conscience_n and_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v with_o a_o faith_n of_o assent_n the_o true_a formal_a reason_n and_o objective_n move_v cause_n of_o our_o obligation_n to_o believe_v a_o mysterious_a truth_n supernatural_o reveal_v to_o we_o be_v the_o divine_a testimony_n itself_o or_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o god_n supernatural_o reveal_v if_o any_o man_n say_v no_o it_o be_v not_o that_o but_o it_o be_v only_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o supernatural_a tenimony_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v that_o such_o a_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v peck_v towards_o the_o socinian_o and_o do_v but_o discover_v his_o ignorance_n of_o those_o matter_n john_n say_v 1_o john_n 5.10_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o god_n have_v make_v he_o a_o liar_n because_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o record_n that_o god_n give_v of_o his_o son_n see_v for_o this_o essen_n compend_v dogmat_fw-la cap._n 9_o pag._n 284._o thes_n 34._o arg_n 3._o 2._o the_o say_v supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n as_o god_n have_v give_v it_o forth_o unto_o man_n carry_v in_o it_o and_o with_o it_o a_o positive_a command_n to_o believe_v on_o christ_n this_o be_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o a_o man_n must_v be_v blind_a that_o do_v not_o see_v it_o if_o he_o do_v but_o read_v understand_v and_o consider_v let_v deut._n 18.15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o be_v consult_v and_o there_o we_o shall_v find_v a_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o a_o prophetical_a promise_n to_o send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n the_o people_n be_v afraid_a to_o converse_v immediate_o with_o god_n after_o the_o dreadful_a appearance_n at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n in_o horeb_n therefore_o they_o desire_v that_o moses_n will_v be_v mediator_n between_o god_n and_o they_o this_o motion_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n god_n approve_v of_o v._o 16_o 17._o and_o withal_o make_v they_o a_o promise_n by_o moses_n that_o he_o will_v send_v they_o the_o true_a mediator_n christ_n who_o moses_n in_o that_o do_v but_o typify_v and_o adumbrate_v and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o the_o same_o moses_n god_n give_v a_o command_n to_o hearken_v unto_o christ_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o back_v his_o command_n with_o a_o threaten_v to_o punish_v they_o severe_o in_o case_n they_o do_v not_o hearken_v unto_o he_o compare_v this_o with_o act_n 3.22_o 23._o and_o it_o will_v evident_o appear_v that_o here_o we_o have_v a_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o a_o plain_a command_n to_o hear_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o hear_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n include_v believe_v on_o he_o john_n 8.24_o and_o 14.1_o and_o the_o command_n be_v enforce_v with_o a_o dreadful_a threaten_v against_o every_o soul_n which_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o and_o believe_v on_o he_o now_o do_v not_o this_o supernatural_a revelation_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o command_n include_v in_o it_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n surely_n none_o but_o a_o unbeliever_n can_v deny_v this_o and_o it_o not_o only_o do_v oblige_v we_o but_o it_o will_v oblige_v we_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v impossible_a that_o there_o be_v no_o natural_a moral_a law_n in_o the_o world_n we_o have_v then_o a_o positive_a law_n which_o immediate_o oblige_v our_o conscience_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n beside_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n and_o thus_o be_v this_o matter_n understand_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o witness_v that_o of_o lactantius_n 17._o lactantius_n ipse_fw-la moses_n per_fw-la quem_fw-la sibi_fw-la datam_fw-la legem_fw-la dum_fw-la pertinaciter_fw-la tuentur_fw-la judaei_n exciderunt_fw-la a_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o deum_fw-la non_fw-la agnoverunt_fw-la praedixerat_fw-la fore_fw-la ut_fw-la propheta_fw-la maximus_fw-la mittatur_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la qui_fw-la sit_fw-la supra_fw-la legem_fw-la qui_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la dei_fw-la ad_fw-la homines_fw-la perferat_fw-la in_o deuteronomio_n ità_fw-la scriptum_fw-la reliquit_fw-la &_o dixit_fw-la dominus_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o prophetam_fw-la excitabo_fw-la eye_n de_fw-la fratribus_fw-la corum_fw-la sicut_fw-la te_fw-la &_o dabo_fw-la verbum_fw-la meum_fw-la in_o os_fw-la ejus_fw-la et_fw-la loquetur_fw-la ad_fw-la choose_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la praecepero_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o quisquis_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la loquetur_fw-la propheta_fw-la ille_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la meo_fw-la ego_fw-la vindicabo_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la denunciavit_fw-la scilicet_fw-la deus_fw-la per_fw-la ipsum_fw-la legiferum_fw-la quòd_fw-la filium_fw-la suum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la vivam_fw-la praesentemque_fw-la legem_fw-la missurus_fw-la esset_fw-la &_o illam_fw-la veterem_fw-la per_fw-la mortalem_fw-la datam_fw-la soluturus_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la per_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la esset_fw-la aeternus_fw-la legem_fw-la sanciret_fw-la aeternam_fw-la lactant._n divin_n instit_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 17._o moses_n himself_o by_o who_o the_o law_n be_v give_v and_o which_o the_o jew_n obstinate_o defend_v be_v fall_v from_o god_n and_o have_v lose_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n foretell_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o god_n will_v send_v a_o most_o great_a prophet_n who_o shall_v be_v above_o the_o law_n and_o shall_v bring_v the_o notice_n
of_o our_o obedience_n but_o all_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o it_o complete_o discharge_v without_o any_o assistance_n i_o answer_v 1._o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o any_o positive_a law_n do_v by_o itself_o immediate_o instruct_v we_o in_o and_o oblige_v we_o to_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o our_o duty_n for_o as_o at_o the_o first_o creation_n when_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n be_v perfect_o and_o clear_o write_v in_o man_n heart_n it_o do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o in_o the_o first_o instant_n after_o his_o creation_n oblige_v he_o not_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n till_o god_n have_v give_v he_o another_o positive_a law_n and_o precept_n not_o to_o eat_v of_o it_o and_o then_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o positive_a law_n the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v he_o not_o to_o eat_v of_o it_o so_o now_o the_o same_o moral_a law_n will_v never_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o several_a duty_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o positive_a law_n and_o precept_n of_o christ_n which_o do_v first_o make_v they_o to_o be_v duty_n and_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o do_v of_o they_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v baptism_n with_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy-ghost_n the_o moral_a natural_a law_n will_v never_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v man_n to_o be_v so_o baptise_a if_o the_o lord_n christ_n as_o king_n and_o head_n of_o his_o church_n have_v not_o by_o a_o new_a act_n of_o his_o royal_a authority_n make_v a_o positive_a law_n and_o give_v a_o positive_a precept_n oblige_v man_n to_o be_v baptize_v as_o aforesaid_a which_o be_v do_v the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v also_o oblige_v we_o to_o be_v baptize_v but_o it_o be_v only_o mediate_o and_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v mediante_fw-la lege_fw-la positiva_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la pierce_v immediate_a so_o it_o be_v the_o gospel-law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o justify_v faith_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n in_o the_o sense_n beforementioned_a and_o prove_v and_o then_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v also_o mediate_o and_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n oblige_v we_o to_o the_o same_o duty_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o since_o the_o make_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n with_o fall_v man_n the_o moral_a natural_a law_n have_v so_o belong_v to_o it_o that_o the_o require_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n have_v be_v one_o article_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n the_o say_v moral_a law_n than_o not_o only_o as_o separate_v from_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n but_o even_o as_o include_v in_o it_o in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v do_v instruct_v we_o what_o to_o do_v draw_v the_o line_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o set_v the_o limit_n of_o our_o obedience_n upon_o gospel-ground_n and_o to_o gospel-end_n and_o purpose_n as_o have_v be_v full_o and_o clear_o prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o god_n and_o men._n see_v tit._n 2.11_o 12._o if_o he_o now_o object_n and_o say_v that_o this_o prove_v that_o the_o precept_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o borrow_v from_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v it_o prove_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o what_o he_o talk_v of_o borrow_a precept_n from_o the_o law_n be_v false_a and_o unintelligible_a for_o i_o demand_v who_o it_o be_v that_o borrow_v precept_n from_o the_o law_n either_o it_o must_v be_v the_o gospel_n or_o god_n but_o it_o can_v be_v neither_o and_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o the_o gospel_n that_o borrow_v precept_n from_o the_o law_n for_o borrow_v be_v a_o personal_a act_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o person_n therefore_o it_o can_v borrow_v again_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o this_o brother_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a promise_n or_o bundle_n of_o absolute_a promise_n let_v he_o then_o prove_v if_o he_o can_v that_o a_o absolute_a promise_n borrow_v a_o precept_n and_o show_v how_o it_o do_v so_o borrow_v for_o we_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v believe_v it_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o god_n who_o borrow_v precept_n from_o the_o law_n for_o 1._o he_o that_o borrow_v a_o thing_n do_v want_n and_o need_v that_o thing_n before_o he_o borrow_v it_o and_o he_o borrow_v it_o to_o supply_v his_o want_n but_o god_n never_o want_v and_o need_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n 2._o the_o thing_n which_o one_o borrow_v be_v not_o his_o own_o before_o he_o borrow_v it_o but_o belong_v to_o another_o person_n but_o the_o law_n and_o its_o precept_n be_v always_o god_n own_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v never_o borrow_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n from_o another_o to_o who_o they_o belong_v the_o truth_n be_v god_n be_v the_o author_n and_o owner_n both_o of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o first_o make_v the_o law_n and_o subject_v man_n unto_o it_o and_o oblige_v he_o to_o keep_v it_o perfect_o but_o man_n have_v transgress_v it_o god_n make_v the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o propose_v it_o to_o man_n and_o therein_o offer_v he_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n he_o have_v bring_v on_o himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n by_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n he_o command_v man_n also_o by_o faith_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o remedy_n offer_v in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o for_o the_o future_a to_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n which_o he_o have_v former_o transgress_v here_o be_v no_o borrow_a precept_n from_o the_o law_n but_o after_o the_o law_n be_v break_v and_o thereby_o man_n ruin_v god_n of_o his_o sovereign_a freegrace_n so_o make_v and_o propose_v to_o man_n the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n as_o thereby_o 1._o to_o oblige_v he_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o by_o faith_n to_o receive_v the_o remedy_n offer_v and_o 2._o for_o the_o future_a to_o give_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n in_o order_n to_o his_o obtain_n full_a possession_n of_o the_o happiness_n purchase_v by_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o promise_v in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n whereof_o christ_n be_v mediator_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o the_o moral_a law_n come_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o the_o gospel_n nor_o by_o god_n borrow_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n which_o to_o imagine_v be_v ridiculous_a but_o by_o god_n make_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o his_o own_o moral_a law_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o term_n of_o his_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o by_o his_o so_o frame_v the_o gospel-covenant_n as_o by_o it_o to_o require_v of_o man_n sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n according_a to_o that_o gen._n 17.1_o i_o be_o the_o almighty_a god_n walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a upright_o or_o sincere_a and_o tit._n 2.11_o 12._o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v salvation_n have_v appear_v unto_o all_o man_n teach_v we_o that_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n we_o shall_v live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_o in_o this_o present_a world_n look_v for_o that_o bless_a hope_n etc._n etc._n obj._n 2._o second_o my_o r._n b._n endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n can_v have_v no_o precept_n because_o if_o it_o have_v any_o precept_n god_n will_v not_o be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o unchangeable_a and_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n which_o he_o first_o give_v to_o man_n at_o his_o creation_n will_v not_o be_v perfect_a this_o consequence_n he_o labour_v to_o prove_v in_o pag._n 43._o and_o i_o free_o grant_v that_o the_o gospel_n can_v have_v no_o precept_n if_o from_o its_o have_a precept_n it_o do_v follow_v by_o good_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o god_n will_v not_o on_o that_o supposition_n be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o absolute_o unchangeable_a and_o that_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n will_v not_o be_v perfect_a for_o certain_o god_n be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o absolute_o unchangeable_a this_o be_v as_o sure_a and_o evident_a as_o it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n at_o all_o it_o be_v certain_a also_o and_o i_o have_v always_o believe_v it_o and_o here_o before_o assert_v it_o that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n be_v most_o perfect_a in_o its_o kind_n and_o oblige_v to_o the_o most_o perfect_a i._n e._n sinless_o perfect_a performance_n of_o the_o several_a duty_n which_o belong_v to_o it_o in_o that_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n intend_v it_o shall_v oblige_v to_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o if_o my_o r._n b._n believe_v this_o as_o firm_o as_o i_o do_v than_o we_o be_v agree_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o unchangeableness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n in_o its_o
one_o precept_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o will_v common_a sense_n suffer_v a_o man_n to_o infer_v that_o therefore_o it_o have_v in_o it_o all_o precept_n that_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o it_o mr._n g._n speak_v here_o of_o the_o law_n that_o christ_n be_v under_o and_o of_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v when_o christ_n be_v under_o it_o in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n now_o i_o will_v name_v one_o precept_n which_o the_o law_n that_o christ_n obey_v and_o fulfil_v have_v not_o then_o in_o it_o and_o that_o be_v the_o precept_n record_v in_o gen._n 2.17_o of_o not_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n our_o bless_a lord_n most_o perfect_o obey_v the_o law_n that_o he_o be_v under_o and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o obey_v that_o particular_a precept_n of_o not_o eat_v the_o say_a fruit._n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o disobey_v that_o precept_n therefore_o he_o obey_v it_o i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n obey_v and_o disobey_v be_v not_o contradictory_n but_o contrary_n and_o there_o be_v a_o medium_n or_o mean_v between_o they_o and_o the_o mean_a be_v this_o that_o our_o lord_n christ_n do_v neither_o obey_v nor_o disobey_v that_o precept_n of_o not_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n because_o as_o it_o may_v be_v there_o be_v no_o such_o tree_n or_o fruit_n then_o in_o the_o world_n so_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o precept_n forbid_v christ_n or_o any_o man_n else_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o tree_n it_o be_v at_o first_o but_o a_o temporary_a precept_n and_o its_o obligation_n have_v cease_v and_o be_v utter_o go_v long_o before_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n gal._n 4.4_o now_o where_o such_o a_o precept_n do_v not_o at_o all_o oblige_v there_o be_v no_o place_n either_o for_o obedience_n or_o disobedience_n to_o the_o say_a precept_n i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a truth_n that_o our_o lord_n christ_n suffer_v death_n the_o penalty_n threaten_v against_o man_n for_o disobey_v that_o and_o the_o other_o precept_n but_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o christ_n either_o obey_v or_o disobey_v that_o positive_a temporary_a precept_n he_o most_o perfect_o obey_v every_o precept_n of_o any_o law_n that_o he_o be_v under_o and_o so_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n his_o obedience_n also_o be_v equivalent_a yea_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o worth_n arise_v from_o the_o infinite_a dignity_n of_o his_o person_n it_o be_v more_o than_o equivalent_a to_o all_o the_o obedience_n which_o mankind_n shall_v have_v perform_v to_o that_o and_o all_o other_o precept_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o christ_n in_o humane_a nature_n obey_v that_o precept_n which_o be_v not_o then_o in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la so_o as_o to_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o obedience_n the_o perfect_a law_n then_o which_o christ_n most_o perfect_o obey_v want_v the_o foresay_a precept_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v perfect_a because_o it_o have_v all_o the_o precept_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o want_v only_o that_o which_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o it_o further_o since_o my_o r._n b._n speak_v here_o of_o the_o moral_a law_n it_o be_v free_o grant_v and_o always_o be_v believe_v by_o i_o that_o it_o want_v none_o of_o its_o own_o precept_n and_o that_o by_o its_o own_o precept_n it_o enjoin_v every_o duty_n in_o that_o way_n which_o god_n intend_v it_o shall_v enjoin_v every_o duty_n those_o duty_n which_o fall_v under_o its_o precept_n without_o any_o supernatural_a revelation_n intervening_a and_o without_o any_o positive_a precept_n superad_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n it_o enjoin_v and_o command_v by_o itself_o immediate_o but_o there_o be_v other_o duty_n which_o do_v not_o fall_v under_o its_o precept_n without_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o also_o without_o some_o positive_a precept_n superad_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o such_o duty_n it_o do_v not_o enjoin_v and_o command_v by_o itself_o immediate_o but_o only_o mediate_o and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o say_v positive_a precept_n which_o do_v first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n enjoin_v and_o command_v the_o say_a duty_n and_o then_o the_o moral_a law_n enjoin_v also_o and_o command_v the_o same_o duty_n by_o oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o positive_a precept_n which_o first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n require_v and_o enjoin_v they_o thus_o as_o have_v be_v show_v the_o moral_a natural_a law_n enjoin_v and_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n for_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n only_o and_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o dispose_v and_o quality_n we_o for_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n it_o do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v such_o faith_n and_o repentance_n of_o all_o without_o exception_n that_o be_v under_o it_o for_o than_o it_o will_v have_v require_v they_o also_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v make_v under_o the_o law_n gal._n 4.4_o it_o will_v have_v oblige_v the_o mediator_n christ_n jesus_n to_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n and_o to_o have_v repent_v evangelical_o for_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n which_o be_v absurd_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o assert_v but_o it_o ro_o wit_n the_o moral_a law_n require_v faith_n and_o repentance_n of_o all_o that_o be_v under_o it_o mediate_o only_a by_o mean_n of_o the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o have_v be_v before_o explain_v and_o prove_v but_o now_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n for_o justification_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o give_v unto_o christ_n himself_o to_o oblige_v he_o thereby_o to_o believe_v in_o himself_o for_o justification_n and_o evangelical_o to_o repent_v for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n which_o he_o be_v under_o and_o perfect_o obey_v do_v not_o oblige_v he_o unto_o justify_v faith_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o duty_n incumbent_a upon_o he_o and_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o he_o in_o his_o own_o person_n thus_o we_o give_v upon_o our_o principle_n a_o clear_a account_n how_o our_o lord_n christ_n perfect_o obey_v the_o law_n and_o yet_o be_v under_o no_o obligation_n at_o all_o to_o believe_v in_o himself_o for_o justification_n nor_o to_o repent_v for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n whereas_o it_o seem_v mr._n g._n on_o his_o principle_n must_v either_o hold_v that_o christ_n so_o believe_v in_o himself_o and_o repent_v or_o else_o that_o he_o transgress_v the_o perfect_a law_n of_o god_n by_o not_o so_o believe_v and_o repent_v neither_o of_o which_o can_v be_v grant_v without_o the_o great_a absurdity_n imaginable_a if_o he_o shall_v here_o say_v that_o i_o myself_o have_v grant_v that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v all_o that_o be_v under_o it_o to_o a_o legal_a repentance_n but_o christ_n himself_o be_v under_o it_o and_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o a_o legal_a repentance_n which_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o to_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n i_o can_v easy_o answer_v he_o that_o he_o quite_o mistake_v the_o matter_n i_o never_o say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v absolute_o and_o actual_o oblige_v all_o that_o be_v under_o it_o to_o a_o legal_a repentance_n but_o only_o that_o it_o so_o oblige_v all_o mankind_n that_o be_v sinner_n and_o upon_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v sinner_n but_o now_o our_o most_o holy_a lord_n jesus_n be_v no_o sinner_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o he_o can_v be_v a_o sinner_n therefore_o he_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v possible_o be_v oblige_v to_o a_o legal_a repentance_n of_o his_o sin_n my_o r._n b._n will_v not_o own_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o antinomian_a and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o hold_v with_o some_o of_o that_o sect_n that_o christ_n believe_v for_o we_o with_o a_o justify_v faith_n and_o repent_v for_o we_o with_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n in_o that_o he_o perfect_o keep_v the_o moral_a law_n which_o by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v such_o faith_n and_o repentance_n of_o all_o that_o be_v under_o it_o only_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o guard_v against_o that_o consequence_n and_o look_v well_o to_o it_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o natural_a offspring_n of_o his_o belove_a opinion_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o question_v how_o we_o can_v
obtain_v pardon_n of_o the_o sinful_a defect_n of_o our_o justify_v faith_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n if_o christ_n do_v not_o so_o believe_v and_o repent_v for_o we_o i_o answer_v very_o easy_o that_o we_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o the_o sinful_a defect_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o consideration_n of_o christ_n meritorious_a and_o satisfactory_a obedience_n unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n his_o 5_o objection_n be_v ibid._n p._n 44._o that_o the_o moral_a law_n by_o its_o first_o precept_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o christ_n be_v god_n this_o argument_n he_o seem_v to_o lay_v great_a stress_n on_o and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o answer_v for_o make_v this_o appear_v we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o what_o the_o first_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o command_v we_o to_o do_v and_o what_o it_o command_v we_o to_o do_v only_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n intervening_a and_o by_o mean_n of_o a_o positive_a gospel-precept_n superad_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n this_o distinction_n apply_v clear_v the_o matter_n and_o answer_v the_o argument_n thus_o the_o first_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n only_o the_o major_a proposition_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v true_a but_o then_o the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v false_a it_o be_v false_a that_o christ_n be_v god_n only_o for_o he_o be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o man_n also_o he_o be_v god-man_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o for_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n and_o then_o the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a take_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o major_a proposition_n be_v true_a it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o first_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o without_o the_o intervention_n of_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o the_o superadition_n of_o a_o positive_a gospel_n precept_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n for_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v in_o god_n consider_v simple_o as_o god_n and_o only_a god_n and_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n consider_v not_o simple_o as_o god_n or_o only_o as_o god_n but_o consider_v as_o god-man_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o men._n the_o first_o command_n by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v faith_n in_o god_n simple_o consider_v as_o god_n and_o only_a god_n and_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o true_o god_n i_o have_v grant_v and_o do_v grant_v that_o the_o first_o commandment_n by_o itself_o immediate_o do_v require_v faith_n in_o he_o consider_v only_o as_o god_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o a_o justify_v faith_n as_o such_o but_o then_o christ_n be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o man_n also_o he_o be_v god-man_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n i_o deny_v that_o the_o first_o commandment_n by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v faith_n in_o he_o as_o such_o i._n e._n as_o god-man_n for_o justification_n and_o i_o affirm_v that_o its_o only_a mediate_o that_o it_o require_v justify_v faith_n in_o he_o as_o god-man_n so_o that_o as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v it_o be_v the_o supernatural_a revelation_n with_o the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n that_o immediate_o and_o first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v with_o a_o justify_v faith_n in_o christ_n god-man_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o men._n according_a to_o that_o exod._n 23.20_o 21._o behold_v i_o send_v a_o angel_n before_o thou_o to_o keep_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n and_o to_o bring_v thou_o into_o the_o place_n which_o i_o have_v prepare_v beware_v of_o he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n provoke_v he_o not_o for_o he_o will_v not_o pardon_v your_o transgression_n for_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o see_v deut._n 18.15.18_o 19_o and_o mat._n 17.5_o behold_v a_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o cloud_n which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v you_o he_o in_o these_o scripture_n we_o have_v both_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n and_o son_n of_o god_n design_v to_o be_v mediator_n and_o actual_o mediate_a between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o also_o a_o positive_a gospel_n precept_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o it_o be_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o say_v supernatural_a revelation_n and_o positive_a precept_n that_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n with_o a_o justify_v faith_n and_o the_o grant_v that_o the_o moral_a law_n do_v thus_o require_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v all_o supernatural_a revelation_n which_o god_n make_v know_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o obey_v all_o positive_a command_n which_o he_o at_o any_o time_n lay_v upon_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v against_o the_o gospel_n have_v any_o positive_a precept_n belong_v to_o it_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o plain_o make_v for_o the_o gospel_n have_v such_o precept_n since_o it_o be_v by_o mean_n of_o such_o precept_n or_o precept_n that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v oblige_v man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o justify_v faith_n and_o the_o same_o i_o have_v say_v and_o do_v still_o say_v of_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o a_o mean_n of_o qualify_a and_o dispose_v sinner_n for_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o here_o i_o may_v stop_v and_o need_v not_o to_o go_v one_o step_n further_o in_o answer_v what_o he_o further_o write_v in_o his_o seven_o chapter_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n command_v faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o what_o i_o have_v say_v already_o do_v sufficient_o answer_v whatever_o in_o it_o do_v real_o militate_v against_o i_o most_o of_o it_o be_v altogether_o impertinent_a as_o where_o he_o strenuous_o prove_v what_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o be_v plain_o own_v and_o assert_v in_o the_o apology_n that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n require_v faith_n in_o god_n and_o a_o legal_a repentance_n of_o all_o the_o sinful_a race_n of_o mankind_n that_o have_v the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o can_v discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a the_o rest_n of_o it_o contain_v a_o mere_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la and_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o draw_v of_o consequence_n violent_o against_o the_o hair_n as_o that_o because_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n of_o itself_o require_v a_o legal_a faith_n and_o trust_n in_o god_n and_o a_o legal_a repentance_n for_o sin_n therefore_o it_o so_o require_v a_o justify_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o prove_v at_o large_a and_o have_v no_o obligation_n on_o i_o to_o do_v it_o over_o again_o i_o be_o sensible_a that_o my_o follow_v he_o to_o lay_v open_a his_o impertinence_n and_o inconsequent_a reason_n have_v already_o necessitate_v i_o to_o repeat_v too_o often_o the_o same_o thing_n i_o must_v therefore_o restrain_v myself_o from_o pursue_v he_o any_o further_a as_o i_o have_v do_v and_o endeavour_v to_o come_v unto_o a_o speedy_a close_o of_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v say_v on_o this_o head_n concern_v the_o precept_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o there_o be_v no_o more_o needful_a to_o be_v do_v but_o that_o 1._o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n careful_o to_o attend_v unto_o a_o few_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v useful_a to_o preserve_v he_o from_o be_v impose_v upon_o 2._o that_o i_o put_v my_o r._n b._n in_o mind_n of_o some_o of_o he_o mistake_v first_o then_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v impose_v upon_o to_o attend_v careful_o to_o these_o few_o thing_n 1._o whereas_o mr._n g._n perpetual_o talk_v of_o a_o new_a law_n and_o industrious_o labour_v to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o i_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o duty_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v i_o declare_v that_o this_o be_v a_o gross_a mistake_n to_o say_v no_o worse_o of_o it_o for_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v simple_o a_o new_a law_n but_o with_o this_o mollify_a restriction_n that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n or_o a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n so_o i_o say_v often_o in_o the_o apology_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o say_n so_o
be_v because_o the_o gospel_n consist_v most_o in_o promise_n though_o it_o be_v not_o without_o but_o partly_o consist_v in_o precept_n also_o this_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o apology_n that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o those_o who_o observe_v its_o precept_n but_o that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o promise_v of_o grace_n to_o his_o people_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o and_o to_o assist_v they_o in_o the_o observance_n of_o its_o precept_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_o call_v not_o simple_o a_o law_n but_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n so_o i_o call_v it_o and_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v and_o so_o it_o be_v call_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v by_o other_o orthodox_n divine_v before_o i_o be_v bear_v but_o though_o i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v duty_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o accept_v through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n yet_o i_o never_o say_v nor_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n which_o require_v duty_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v so_o far_o be_o i_o from_o say_v or_o believe_v any_o such_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v publish_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o world_n in_o several_a part_n of_o the_o apology_n and_o particular_o in_o page_n 38_o 39_o 40.54_o indeed_o it_o be_v my_o profess_a belief_n that_o faith_n itself_o be_v not_o any_o the_o least_o part_n of_o that_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n 2._o the_o second_o thing_n to_o be_v careful_o attend_v unto_o be_v that_o by_o the_o gospel_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n i_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v record_v in_o the_o scripture_n both_o of_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 3._o the_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v attend_v unto_o be_v that_o i_o always_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n oblige_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o obey_v all_o the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o which_o principle_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o follow_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n of_o its_o own_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o plain_o follow_v that_o it_o have_v precept_n of_o its_o own_o otherwise_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n will_v never_o oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v they_o 4._o the_o four_o thing_n to_o be_v attend_v unto_o be_v that_o since_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v precept_n of_o its_o own_o those_o precept_n must_v of_o themselves_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o certain_a duty_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o they_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n oblige_v we_o to_o the_o same_o duty_n though_o not_o to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o those_o duty_n but_o in_o order_n to_o other_o gospel_n end_n and_o purpose_n if_o these_o four_o thing_n be_v careful_o attend_v unto_o they_o will_v preserve_v people_n through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n from_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o the_o false_a representation_n which_o mr._n g._n give_v of_o our_o doctrine_n which_o wrong_v i_o free_o forgive_v he_o and_o hearty_o pray_v god_n both_o to_o give_v he_o repentance_n and_o forgiveness_n 2._o the_o second_o and_o last_o thing_n i_o be_o here_o to_o do_v be_v to_o show_v my_o reverend_a brother_n some_o more_o of_o he_o mistake_v in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o seven_o chapter_n concern_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o and_o first_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o page_n 44._o that_o the_o obedience_n of_o a_o believer_n be_v not_o call_v evangelical_n because_o it_o be_v obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n but_o because_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n from_o which_o it_o flow_v and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o evangelical_n motive_n which_o animate_v and_o encourage_v it_o this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v a_o mistake_n if_o he_o exclude_v the_o gospel_n covenant_n require_v such_o obedience_n from_o be_v one_o of_o the_o say_a motive_n and_o my_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o gospel_n require_v it_o in_o order_n to_o gospel-end_n and_o purpose_n be_v the_o principal_a reason_n wherefore_o we_o call_v it_o evangelical_n obedience_n for_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n that_o of_o itself_o direct_o and_o immediate_o require_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o moral_a law_n in_o such_o a_o evangelical_n way_n to_o wit_n sincere_o with_o a_o renew_a heart_n from_o principle_n of_o faith_n in_o and_o love_n to_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o god_n as_o our_o redeemer_n and_o saviour_n by_o christ_n and_o further_o as_o the_o authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o god_n reveal_v truth_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o make_v and_o denominate_v it_o a_o divine_a faith_n so_o the_o authority_n and_o will_n of_o god_n command_v duty_n to_o be_v do_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o our_o obedience_n which_o give_v it_o the_o denomination_n of_o divine_a obedience_n or_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a of_o obedience_n to_o god_n in_o general_n that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o divine_a legal_a obedience_n because_o it_o be_v obedience_n to_o god_n authority_n and_o will_n command_v it_o by_o his_o law_n then_o by_o parity_n of_o reason_n it_o be_v true_a of_o that_o special_a sort_n of_o obedience_n to_o wit_n evangelical_n obedience_n that_o it_o be_v call_v evangelical_n because_o it_o be_v obedience_n to_o god_n authority_n and_o will_n command_v and_o require_v it_o by_o his_o gospel_n it_o be_v very_o strange_a if_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o obedience_n do_v contribute_v nothing_o to_o the_o give_v it_o its_o name_n as_o well_o as_o its_o nature_n 2._o second_o whereas_o in_o page_n 45._o he_o say_v that_o in_o john_n 14.1_o christ_n himself_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v act_v faith_n on_o he_o because_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o it_o by_o the_o same_o command_n which_o require_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n this_o be_v another_o mistake_n and_o the_o mistake_n be_v the_o grosser_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o by_o this_o mistake_n mr._n g._n impose_v upon_o our_o saviour_n and_o make_v he_o to_o say_v that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o say_v nor_o be_v it_o employ_v in_o nor_o necessary_o consequent_a from_o his_o word_n our_o lord_n christ_n do_v not_o say_v believe_v in_o i_o because_o you_o be_v oblige_v to_o it_o by_o the_o same_o command_n which_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n this_o be_v mr._n g_n fancy_n or_o fiction_n which_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v father_v upon_o christ_n who_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o john_n 14.1_o but_o only_o say_v there_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o or_o as_o the_o word_n may_v be_v render_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o you_o believe_v in_o i_o now_o i_o appeal_v both_o to_o common_a sense_n and_o to_o common_a honesty_n and_o natural_a conscience_n whether_o to_o say_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n as_o to_o say_v you_o shall_v believe_v on_o i_o because_o you_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v on_o i_o by_o the_o same_o command_n and_o by_o no_o other_o which_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n for_o suppose_v the_o disciple_n have_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o another_o command_n or_o both_o by_o the_o same_o and_o also_o by_o another_o command_n yet_o christ_n may_v well_o have_v use_v the_o same_o word_n and_o have_v say_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o i_o do_v therefore_o put_v mr._n g._n to_o prove_v that_o because_o our_o lord_n christ_n say_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o therefore_o he_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o not_o because_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o it_o by_o any_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o only_o because_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o it_o by_o the_o same_o command_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n which_o require_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n master_n g._n must_v not_o dictate_v to_o we_o his_o own_o fancy_n but_o must_v prove_v to_o we_o the_o foresay_a consequence_n if_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v what_o he_o there_o say_v for_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v that_o we_o will_v believe_v it_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n 3._o three_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o p._n 47._o that_o the_o act_n and_o object_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n faith_n in_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n after_o the_o fall_n be_v
sinless_a perfection_n whereas_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v to_o obedience_n in_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o perfection_n that_o be_v to_o obedience_n which_o be_v sincere_a though_o it_o be_v not_o sinless_o perfect_a and_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o will_v be_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n will_v be_v a_o covenant_n of_o work_n contrary_a to_o rom._n 11.6_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o r._n brother_n like_o a_o sophister_n jumble_v together_o and_o confound_v thing_n that_o shall_v be_v separate_v and_o speak_v unto_o distinct_o to_o wit_n the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o glorification_n and_o consummate_v salvation_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o these_o promise_n evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v the_o condition_n and_o of_o the_o second_o sort_n sincere_a obedience_n evangelical_n flow_v from_o faith_n with_o perseverance_n therein_o to_o the_o end_n be_v the_o condition_n now_o 1_o for_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n to_o wit_n evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o require_v in_o any_o degree_n by_o the_o old_a law_n strict_o take_v for_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n nay_o the_o old_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o work_n as_o such_o be_v so_o far_o from_o require_v they_o that_o it_o do_v not_o admit_v they_o but_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n it_o rigorous_o insist_o upon_o and_o demand_v a_o sinless_o perfect_a perpetual_a obedience_n to_o all_o its_o precept_n and_o a_o personal_a righteousness_n absolute_o complete_a in_o all_o part_n and_o in_o all_o degree_n without_o the_o least_o sinful_a defect_n this_o and_o this_o only_a be_v the_o obedience_n which_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n require_v as_o its_o condition_n and_o upon_o this_o condition_n and_o for_o this_o obedience_n and_o personal_a righteousness_n alone_o it_o promise_v to_o man_n not_o pardon_n of_o sin_n but_o justification_n and_o life_n eternal_a by_o this_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n and_o of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o respect_n to_o justification_n differ_v not_o mere_o in_o degree_n but_o they_o differ_v in_o kind_n 2._o though_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n consider_v as_o strip_v of_o their_o old_a covenant_n form_n do_v require_v evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o they_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a and_o gospel-covenant_n yet_o this_o they_o do_v only_o mediate_o and_o consequential_o for_o it_o be_v the_o new_a and_o gospel-covenant_n itself_o which_o do_v immediate_o and_o direct_o by_o its_o own_o precept_n require_v of_o we_o evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n 3._o though_o the_o new_a and_o gospel_n covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n do_v require_v of_o we_o both_o evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n yet_o it_o be_v with_o this_o difference_n that_o it_o require_v faith_n as_o most_o proper_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_a of_o justification_n but_o it_o require_v evangelical_n repentance_n only_o as_o a_o condition_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n i_o assign_v in_o the_o apology_n thus_o faith_n be_v most_o proper_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_a of_o justification_n because_o it_o be_v that_o condition_n or_o instrumental_a mean_n whereby_o we_o receive_v apply_v and_o trust_v the_o object_n christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o only_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v but_o evangelical_n repentance_n be_v most_o fit_o call_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_a of_o justification_n or_o pardon_n of_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n not_o receptive_a of_o the_o object_n christ_n as_o faith_n be_v but_o dispositive_a of_o the_o subject_a man_n so_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o his_o be_v justify_v or_o pardon_v that_o the_o lord_n suspend_v the_o pardon_v of_o man_n sin_n till_o he_o have_v through_o grace_n sincere_o repent_v of_o they_o isa_n 55.7_o and_o this_o be_v exact_o agreeable_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o mr._n durham_n as_o i_o show_v before_o and_o likewise_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o mr._n hutcheson_n on_o john_n 3.18_o doctrine_n 4._o his_o word_n be_v pag._n 40._o albeit_o such_o as_o flee_v to_o christ_n and_o expect_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v aught_o to_o study_v holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n yet_o the_o condition_n require_v for_o reverse_v the_o sentence_n and_o absolve_v the_o self-condemned_n sinner_n be_v only_a faith_n put_v in_o exercise_n as_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n righteousness_n which_o alone_o can_v answer_v the_o law_n and_o endure_v constant_o whereas_o our_o holiness_n be_v imperfect_a and_o variable_a like_o the_o moon_n therefore_o it_o be_v he_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o or_o have_v faith_n in_o exercise_n not_o in_o the_o habit_n only_o that_o be_v not_o condemn_v 4._o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o tho_o justify_v faith_n be_v require_v by_o a_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n as_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 7._o art_n 3._o say_v express_o that_o it_o require_v faith_n and_o though_o by_o consequence_n justify_v faith_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o that_o gospel-precept_n which_o require_v it_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o consider_v simple_o as_o a_o act_n of_o obedience_n for_o if_o so_o then_o since_o a_o quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la we_o shall_v be_v alike_o justify_v by_o any_o other_o act_n of_o obedience_n which_o be_v false_a but_o as_o mr._n hutcheson_n say_v faith_n above_o all_o other_o gracious_a act_n have_v a_o aptitude_n for_o that_o use_n and_o be_v only_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o that_o office_n justify_v we_o or_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o alone_o as_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o as_o trust_v in_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n which_o alone_o can_v answer_v the_o law_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n 5._o and_o hence_o appear_v one_o essential_a specifical_a difference_n between_o the_o old_a law_n or_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o though_o as_o essenius_n say_v compend_v dogm_n cap._n 11._o pag._n 428._o thes_n 12._o obedience_n be_v require_v in_o they_o both_o yet_o in_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n man_n be_v own_o personal_a obedience_n be_v require_v not_o only_o as_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o justification_n but_o as_o the_o only_a righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o he_o can_v be_v justify_v according_a to_o that_o covenant_n whereas_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n there_o be_v a_o mediator_n by_o and_o for_o who_o mediatorial_n righteousness_n alone_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o not_o one_o act_n of_o our_o own_o personal_a obedience_n be_v require_v as_o that_o righteousness_n or_o any_o par_fw-fr of_o that_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v neither_o ●aith_n nor_o repentance_n be_v require_v by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o any_o part_n of_o that_o obedience_n and_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o repentance_n be_v only_o require_v as_o a_o condition_n or_o mean_n to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v the_o subject_a man_n who_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o faith_n be_v require_v as_o the_o condition_n or_o instrumental_a mean_n to_o receive_v apply_v and_o trust_v the_o object_n to_o wit_n christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v now_o this_o alone_a though_o there_o be_v many_o other_o respect_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o a_o gradual_a even_o a_o specifical_a difference_n between_o the_o two_o covenant_n aforesaid_a with_o respect_n to_o justification_n their_o condition_n differ_v in_o kind_n and_o so_o do_v the_o righteousness_n for_o which_o the_o two_o covenant_n do_v respective_o justify_v such_o person_n as_o come_v up_o to_o and_o comply_v with_o their_o term_n and_o condition_n second_o as_o for_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant-promise_a of_o glorification_n and_o consummate_v salvation_n to_o wit_n sincere_a eaangelical_a obedience_n though_o material_o consider_v it_o be_v partly_o the_o same_o with_o yet_o it_o be_v also_o partly_o different_a from_o that_o legal_a obedience_n which_o be_v require_v as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n for_o there_o be_v some_o positive_a precept_n which_o now_o belong_v to_o the_o new_a and_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o do_v not_o at_o all_o exist_v of_o
be_v express_o call_v the_o new-covenant_n i_o desire_v that_o this_o may_v be_v remember_v and_o withal_o that_o all_o the_o clamour_n mr._n g._n after_o c._n and_o d._n make_v against_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new-law_n be_v in_o truth_n against_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new-covenant_n that_o have_v any_o precept_n oblige_v we_o to_o any_o duty_n with_o conditional_a promise_n and_o threaten_n for_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v often_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new-law_n that_o it_o be_v a_o new-covenant_n which_o by_o its_o preceptive_a part_n oblige_v we_o to_o certain_a duty_n with_o promise_n to_o encourage_v we_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o and_o threaten_n to_o restrain_v we_o from_o the_o neglect_n of_o they_o and_o principal_o we_o mean_v by_o its_o be_v a_o new-law_n that_o it_o be_v a_o new-covenant_n with_o precept_n and_o promise_n and_o that_o the_o threaten_a be_v but_o the_o secondary_a less_o principal_a part_n which_o be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o principal_n this_o be_v premise_v let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o answer_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n urge_v by_o i_o in_o the_o apol._n and_o one_a he_o begin_v with_o rom._n 3.27_o and_o say_v in_o the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n that_o he_o have_v recover_v it_o to_o its_o right_a sense_n now_o who_o that_o read_v this_o will_v not_o think_v that_o in_o the_o apol._n i_o have_v interpret_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o have_v put_v a_o wrong_a sense_n upon_o it_o since_o write_v against_o i_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v recover_v it_o to_o its_o right_a sense_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o controversy_n about_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n or_o not_o a_o law_n i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o interpret_v that_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o give_v any_o sense_n of_o it_o right_a or_o wrong_n it_o be_v true_a i_o quote_v it_o twice_o to_o wit_n in_o p._n 22._o and_o 24._o but_o all_o that_o i_o say_v of_o it_o be_v that_o from_o rom._n 3.27_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n it_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n express_o be_v this_o to_o interpret_v i●_n and_o to_o put_v a_o wrong_a sense_n on_o it_o from_o which_o mr._n goodwin_n must_v recover_v it_o do_v not_o he_o himself_o acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v true_a have_v not_o he_o confess_v and_o bring_v text_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n and_o do_v he_o not_o here_o confess_v with_o i_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n in_o rom._n 3.27_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a then_o that_o he_o shall_v recover_v it_o to_o its_o right_a sense_n from_o which_o i_o have_v wrest_v it_o since_o i_o do_v not_o give_v any_o sense_n of_o it_o but_o only_o quote_v it_o to_o show_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v call_v a_o law_n the_o law_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o brethren_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v displease_v with_o we_o for_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n express_o call_v it_o a_o law_n and_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 3.27_o here_o disc_n p._n 59_o it_o be_v where_o he_o call_v his_o book_n a_o poor_a write_n and_o if_o this_o chapter_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v poor_a and_o blind_a and_o naked_a i_o be_o much_o mistake_v but_o because_o i_o be_o a_o fallible_a man_n and_o liable_a to_o mistake_v as_o other_o man_n be_v i_o will_v now_o affirm_v no_o such_o thing_n of_o his_o discourse_n but_o will_v hear_v and_o consider_v what_o he_o say_v for_o recover_a scripture_n to_o its_o right_a sense_n from_o which_o i_o do_v not_o wrest_v it_o first_o then_o p._n 59_o he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n law_n of_o faith_n in_o rom._n 3.27_o the_o apostle_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o that_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n which_o declare_v a_o believe_a sinner_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o by_o faith_n he_o receive_v but_o now_o what_o if_o a_o body_n shall_v deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v no_o more_o and_o shall_v affirm_v that_o he_o also_o mean_v that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v faith_n as_o the_o receptive_a condition_n or_o instrumental_a mean_n of_o justification_n by_o the_o mediator_n righteousness_n may_v he_o not_o prove_v what_o he_o have_v affirm_v by_o a_o argument_n take_v from_o this_o text_n where_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v express_o oppose_v to_o the_o law_n of_o work_n where_o be_v boast_v then_o it_o be_v exclude_v by_o what_o law_n of_o work_n nay_o but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n thus_o the_o law_n of_o work_n be_v the_o l●●_n or_o doctrine_n which_o require_v work_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o own_o work_n which_o do_v not_o exclude_v boast_v therefore_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o law_n or_o doctrine_n which_o require_v faith_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v only_o by_o and_o for_o christ_n the_o mediator_n righteousness_n which_o do_v exclude_v boast_v and_o further_o may_v not_o a_o man_n for_o this_o interpretation_n allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o chap._n 7._o act._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n i._n e._n the_o law_n of_o faith_n free_o offer_v unto_o sinner_n life_n and_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n require_v of_o they_o faith_n in_o he_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v but_o mr._n g._n oppose_v two_o thing_n to_o this_o 1._o he_o say_v this_o interpretation_n do_v not_o exclude_v boast_v 2._o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o right_a protestant_n who_o have_n comment_v on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n first_o he_o say_v p._n 59_o that_o this_o interpretation_n do_v not_o exclude_v boast_v but_o rather_o great_o promote_v it_o for_o why_o shall_v not_o a_o man_n glory_n in_o his_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o this_o new-law_n i._n e._n this_o evangelical_n law_n of_o faith_n which_o by_o its_o statute_n make_v his_o justification_n to_o depend_v on_o this_o his_o performance_n i_o answer_v i_o do_v not_o know_v the_o temper_n of_o all_o man_n nor_o of_o mr._n g._n it_o may_v be_v for_o aught_o i_o know_v that_o he_o or_o some_o other_o of_o like_a temper_n do_v real_o think_v that_o he_o may_v just_o boast_v of_o and_o glory_n in_o his_o faith_n if_o the_o evangelical_n law_n or_o new-covenant_n do_v require_v faith_n of_o he_o in_o order_n to_o his_o be_v justify_v by_o and_o for_o christ_n mediatorial_n righteousness_n but_o i_o will_v ask_v such_o a_o man_n a_o few_o question_n and_o 1._o what_o be_v a_o man_n believe_v that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v gal._n 2.16_o be_v that_o believe_v a_o do_v nothing_o or_o a_o do_v something_o i_o hope_v sir_n you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o do_v nothing_o for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o do_v nothing_o than_o paul_n meaning_n in_o gal._n 2.16_o will_v be_v this_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v we_o have_v do_v nothing_o in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o do_v nothing_o of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o abominable_a wrest_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n and_o a_o turn_v they_o into_o nonsense_n let_v all_o man_n judge_v that_o have_v the_o sober_a use_n of_o their_o reason_n but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v a_o do_v something_o i_o ask_v again_o be_v that_o do_v something_o the_o do_v of_o some_o good_a thing_n or_o some_o evil_a thing_n i_o hope_v you_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o do_v of_o some_o evil_a thing_n and_o therefore_o you_o must_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o do_v of_o some_o good_a thing_n and_o then_o i_o ask_v again_o be_v that_o good_a thing_n require_v and_o command_v by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o be_v it_o not_o at_o all_o command_v if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o command_v nor_o forbid_a by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n then_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v not_o moral_o good_a but_o of_o a_o indifferent_a middle_a nature_n between_o moral_a good_a and_o evil_n for_o what_o be_v not_o at_o all_o command_v nor_o forbid_v be_v perfect_o indifferent_a and_o neither_o moral_o good_a nor_o evil_n 2._o then_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o you_o be_v not_o at_o all_o bind_v to_o believe_v and_o that_o you_o do_v not_o sin_n though_o you_o never_o believe_v in_o christ_n 3._o then_o it_o follow_v that_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n
be_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o do_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a 4._o then_o it_o follow_v that_o justify_v faith_n be_v of_o a_o contradictious_a nature_n for_o it_o be_v good_a and_o not_o good_a it_o be_v good_a as_o be_v now_o suppose_a and_o it_o be_v not_o good_a because_o it_o be_v not_o command_v by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n but_o if_o you_o choose_v the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o disjunction_n and_o say_v that_o faith_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n be_v require_v and_o command_v by_o some_o law_n of_o god_n then_o since_o that_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o his_o positive_a evangelical_n law_n of_o the_o new-co-venant_a for_o that_o you_o have_v now_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v for_o fear_v of_o promote_a boast_a it_o remain_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o moral_a natural_a law_n only_o which_o require_v and_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o justification_n in_o person_n of_o ripe_a year_n but_o now_o sir_n by_o your_o own_o argument_n p._n 59_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o moral-natural-law_n do_v not_o require_v and_o command_v faith_n as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o receive_v christ_n righteousness_n for_o justification_n for_o if_o a_o man_n justify_v faith_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n moral-natural-law_n boast_v will_v not_o be_v exclude_v but_o rather_o a_o great_a occasion_n will_v be_v give_v to_o promote_v it_o for_o why_o shall_v not_o a_o man_n glory_n in_o his_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o moral-natural-law_n which_o have_v make_v it_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o receive_v christ_n righteousness_n for_o justification_n he_o may_v then_o plead_v that_o he_o have_v do_v what_o be_v require_v and_o so_o he_o may_v as_o well_o claim_v pardon_n and_o a_o right_a to_o life_n on_o the_o account_n of_o have_v do_v all_o that_o this_o moral-natural-law_n have_v under_o the_o gospel_n make_v necessary_a to_o his_o receive_v christ_n righteousness_n for_o his_o justification_n as_o adam_n if_o he_o have_v continue_v in_o his_o primitive_a state_n may_v have_v form_v a_o plea_n of_o his_o right_n to_o life_n for_o have_v discharge_v all_o that_o duty_n which_o the_o law_n of_o work_n command_v and_o propose_v as_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o be_v eternal_o bless_v thus_o mr._n goodwin_n be_v catch_v in_o his_o own_o net_n and_o he_o be_v hold_v in_o it_o so_o fast_o that_o upon_o his_o principle_n lay_v down_o in_o his_o discourse_n he_o can_v never_o get_v out_o of_o it_o mr._n c._n indeed_o strive_v to_o avoid_v this_o by_o maintain_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o any_o act_n of_o faith_n require_v of_o we_o and_o do_v by_o we_o and_o though_o by_o this_o he_o contradict_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 4.24_o and_o 10.9_o 10._o gal._n 2.16_o and_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o catechism_n and_o all_o protestant_a divine_n that_o i_o know_v yet_o that_o be_v nothing_o so_o long_o as_o it_o serve_v a_o turn_n but_o for_o mr._n g._n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v he_o will_v not_o take_v that_o course_n to_o extricate_v himself_o for_o he_o have_v strenuous_o assert_v in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o justify_v faith_n be_v a_o duty_n command_v by_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o so_o do_v mr._n c._n before_o he_o and_o here_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n under_o consideration_n he_o affirm_v that_o justify_v faith_n receive_v christ_n righteousness_n for_o justification_n but_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n be_v itself_o receive_v and_o do_v not_o by_o itself_o without_o the_o act_n receive_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o but_o it_o may_v be_v some_o will_v say_v though_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o your_o brother_n mr._n g._n yet_o what_o if_o a_o enemy_n to_o our_o religion_n shall_v assault_v we_o with_o the_o same_o argument_n how_o will_v you_o answer_v it_o to_o such_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o very_a contemptible_a enemy_n that_o shall_v use_v such_o a_o poor_a argument_n against_o our_o religion_n 2._o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o though_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o boast_v of_o it_o and_o that_o for_o this_o very_a reason_n among_o other_o because_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n and_o duty_n luke_n 17.9_o 10._o do_v he_o thank_v that_o servant_n because_o he_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v he_o to_o do_v i_o trow_v not_o say_v our_o saviour_n so_o likewise_o you_o when_o you_o shall_v have_v do_v etc._n etc._n 3._o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v proud_a and_o to_o boast_v of_o our_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v by_o the_o special_a discriminate_a grace_n of_o god_n that_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v and_o that_o we_o actual_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n 1_o cor._n 4.7_o who_o make_v thou_o to_o differ_v and_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o do_v not_o receive_v and_o if_o thou_o do_v receive_v it_o why_o do_v thouglory_n as_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o 4._o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o though_o our_o justify_v faith_n be_v real_o a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o evangelical_n law_n of_o faith_n yet_o we_o can_v glory_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o under_o that_o formal_a consideration_n as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n but_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o as_o it_o be_v gracious_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o new-covenant_n or_o to_o be_v the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n and_o instrumental_a mean_n whereby_o we_o embrace_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o trust_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o he_o and_o for_o his_o righteousness_n only_o 5._o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o though_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n yet_o we_o can_v plead_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v justify_v for_o our_o faith_n and_o our_o obedience_n therein_o to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n as_o adam_n if_o he_o have_v persevere_v in_o his_o innoceccy_n may_v have_v plead_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v justify_v for_o his_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_v because_o adam_n personal_a perfect_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o work_v be_v to_o have_v be_v his_o entire_a justify_v righteousness_n for_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v justify_v and_o live_v whereas_o our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n therein_o to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o any_o the_o least_o part_n of_o that_o justify_v righteousness_n for_o which_o we_o be_v pardon_v and_o have_v a_o right_a to_o eternal_a life_n but_o it_o be_v only_o the_o special_a condition_n or_o mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n whereby_o we_o receive_v and_o trust_v to_o the_o mediator_n righteousness_n as_o that_o by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o by_o this_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o though_o faith_n be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n yet_o that_o same_o law_n of_o faith_n exclude_v boast_v but_o in_o the_o 2d_o place_n mr._n g._n say_v this_o interpretation_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o right_a protestant_n who_o have_n comment_v on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o this_o be_v the_o very_a interpretation_n of_o rom._n 3.27_o give_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dutch_a annotation_n and_o of_o the_o assemblie_n annotation_n and_o by_o mr._n mayo_n in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o pool_n annotation_n and_o with_o they_o agree_v mr._n dickson_n who_o word_n on_o rom._n 3._o v._n 27.28_o arg._n 10._o be_v as_o follow_v because_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v faith_n to_o our_o justification_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o another_o man_n boast_a in_o himself_o be_v exclude_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o learned_a stephanus_n de-brais_a in_o his_o paraphrastical_a analysis_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n on_o rom._n 3._o v._n 27._o have_v show_v that_o the_o law_n of_o work_n do_v not_o exclude_v boast_v he_o add_v 58._o add_v restat_fw-la ergo_fw-la lex_fw-la evangelica_n clamans_fw-la crede_fw-la et_fw-la salvaberis_fw-la quae_fw-la justificationis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la norma_fw-la fit_a etc._n etc._n scphan_n de-brais_a epist_n ad_fw-la romanos_fw-la analys_n cap._n 3._o p._n 58._o there_o remain_v therefore_o the_o gospel-law_n cry_v believe_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v which_o may_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o justification_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v add_v many_o to_o these_o but_o
to_o the_o end_n before_o mention_v it_o prescribe_v the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o so_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n in_o a_o very_a true_a and_o good_a sense_n and_o that_o sense_n the_o same_o which_o we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v in_o our_o apology_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o my_o reverend_a brother_n have_v here_o yield_v the_o cause_n and_o be_v come_v over_o to_o our_o camp_n and_o if_o he_o will_v be_v consistent_a with_o himself_o here_o may_v be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n with_o respect_n to_o justification_n for_o assure_o we_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o that_o it_o prescribe_v seek_v by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o chief_o by_o faith_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o this_o be_v the_o common_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o i_o prove_v in_o the_o apology_n and_o shall_v yet_o further_o prove_v it_o if_o need_v be_v but_o he_o object_n up_o and_o down_o his_o book_n that_o if_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n do_v prescribe_v or_o require_v any_o work_n or_o work_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v oblige_v we_o to_o any_o duty_n than_o it_o will_v be_v another_o law_n of_o work_n and_o we_o shall_v still_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n i_o answer_v by_o deny_v the_o consequence_n indeed_o it_o be_v true_a that_o if_o the_o gospel_n require_v a_o work_n or_o duty_n it_o require_v a_o work_n or_o duty_n for_o that_o be_v a_o identical_a proposition_n and_o no_o reasonable_a man_n have_v so_o little_a wit_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o if_o the_o gospel_n require_v any_o work_n than_o it_o be_v another_o law_n of_o work_n in_o the_o scripture-sense_n of_o the_o word_n for_o by_o law_n of_o work_n the_o scripture_n always_o mean_v such_o a_o law_n or_o covenant_n of_o work_n as_o will_v justify_v a_o man_n by_o and_o for_o his_o work_n if_o he_o have_v they_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v have_v they_o but_o though_o the_o gospel_n require_v of_o we_o some_o work_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o law_n of_o work_n for_o it_o do_v not_o require_v any_o work_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n by_o and_o for_o those_o work_n as_o such_o nor_o be_v we_o for_o they_o in_o the_o least_o justityed_a at_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o any_o of_o they_o the_o least_o part_n of_o that_o rigateousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v this_o we_o have_v declare_v and_o explain_v to_o full_o and_o clear_o in_o our_o apology_n that_o we_o can_v but_o wonder_v that_o any_o christian_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o common_a honesty_n and_o have_v read_v and_o understand_v our_o say_a apology_n shall_v persist_v in_o accuse_v we_o of_o hold_v justification_n by_o work_n or_o in_o assert_v confident_o that_o it_o follow_v by_o good_a consequence_n from_o our_o principle_n that_o consequence_n my_o reverend_a brother_n can_v never_o prove_v for_o though_o repentance_n be_v a_o work_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n require_v by_o the_o evangelical_n law_n as_o a_o work_n to_o justify_v we_o or_o as_o a_o work_n for_o which_o we_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o least_o degree_n but_o only_o as_o a_o mean_n or_o condition_n in_o the_o subject_a man_n to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v he_o for_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o in_o christ_n blood_n and_o righteousness_n and_o again_o though_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n in_o itself_o yet_o do_v not_o the_o evangelical_n law_n require_v it_o as_o a_o work_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o require_v faith_n only_o as_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n by_o which_o we_o receive_v and_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o and_o also_o trust_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o satisfactory_a meritorius_fw-la righteousness_n as_o that_o by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n tribunal_n let_v mr._n g._n try_v when_o he_o will_v he_o shall_v find_v it_o impossible_a to_o prove_v from_o my_o principle_n as_o i_o have_v here_o true_o and_o sincere_o set_v they_o down_o that_o the_o gospel_n will_v be_v another_o law_n of_o work_n and_o that_o we_o will_v be_v justify_v by_o work_n if_o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o aforesaid_a i_o may_v with_o more_o appearance_n of_o reason_n prove_v from_o my_o r._n b._n principle_n that_o if_o faith_n be_v require_v only_o by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n and_o if_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n as_o we_o certain_o be_v and_o if_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n as_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n it_o certain_o be_v then_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o work_n of_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n and_o so_o be_v in_o tantum_fw-la justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n and_o look_v how_o he_o can_v answer_v this_o argument_n draw_v from_o his_o principle_n with_o as_o much_o facility_n if_o not_o more_o shall_v i_o answer_v his_o sophism_n draw_v from_o my_o principle_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o to_o answer_v all_o he_o bring_v in_o his_o second_o chapter_n but_o to_o declare_v that_o as_o he_o say_v pag._n 12._o that_o all_o but_o papist_n socinian_o and_o arminian_o harmonious_o agree_v in_o explain_v such_o place_n as_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o may_v not_o give_v the_o least_o colour_n to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o three_o mention_a party_n so_o i_o do_v entire_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o that_o manner_n of_o explain_v they_o and_o do_v with_o they_o utter_o reject_v the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n sense_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n but_o than_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o new_a law_n in_o any_o sense_n because_o it_o be_v not_o one_o in_o the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n sense_n our_o author_n in_o pag._n 10._o say_v the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n but_o no_o otherwise_o than_o as_o it_o be_v a_o comfortable_a instruction_n to_o poor_a convince_a sinner_n what_o riches_n of_o mercy_n there_o be_v in_o store_n and_o as_o it_o teach_v they_o how_o they_o may_v trust_v and_o hope_n in_o the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n but_o this_o be_v not_o true_a in_o his_o exclusive_a sense_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n as_o it_o teach_v how_o such_o sinner_n shall_v ex_fw-la officio_fw-la in_o point_n of_o duty_n trustand_v hope_n in_o the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n through_o jesus_n christ_n in_o fine_a though_o in_o pag._n 14._o he_o mince_o say_v that_o the_o word_n judge_n in_o micah_n 4.3_o may_v very_o well_o import_v no_o more_o than_o that_o christ_n will_v judge_v what_o course_n of_o salvation_n be_v best_a for_o we_o to_o take_v that_o he_o will_v determine_v the_o case_n and_o it_o be_v better_a for_o we_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o decision_n of_o his_o uner_a judgement_n which_o can_v be_v deceive_v nor_o will_v ever_o mislead_v we_o than_o to_o pursue_v our_o own_o mistake_a apprehension_n which_o bewilder_n we_o continual_o yet_o even_o this_o will_v sufficient_o evince_v that_o the_o supernatural_a gospel-revelation_n of_o that_o judgement_n and_o determination_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n be_v a_o law_n to_o we_o for_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n it_o do_v of_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o determination_n and_o to_o take_v that_o course_n for_o salvation_n which_o he_o have_v judge_v best_a for_o we_o to_o take_v so_o that_o let_v mr._n g._n shuffle_n never_o so_o much_o he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v his_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n immediate_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n matth._n 17.5_o and_o to_o take_v that_o course_n which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n act_v 16.31_o i_o shall_v conclude_v my_o animadversion_n on_o this_o second_o chapter_n with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a mr._n pool_n who_o be_v neither_o papist_n socinian_n nor_o arminian_n as_o it_o be_v express_v in_o his_o annotation_n on_o isa_n 2.3_o out_o of_o zion_n shall_v go_v forth_o the_o law_n the_o new_a law_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v frequent_o call_v a_o law_n because_o it_o have_v the_o nature_n and_o power_n of_o a_o law_n oblige_v we_o no_o less_o to_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o it_o than_o the_o old_a law_n do_v remark_n on_o the_o three_o chapter_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o chapter_n he_o do_v i_o a_o manifest_a wrong_n in_o say_v that_o
all_o reject_v as_o false_a and_o absurd_a and_o as_o reflect_v on_o god_n moral_a law_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v imperfect_a before_o whereas_o in_o truth_n god_n moral_a natural_a law_n be_v always_o most_o perfect_a in_o its_o kind_n and_o oblige_v to_o all_o moral_a natural_a duty_n even_o unto_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o sinless_a perfection_n and_o therefore_o what_o christ_n do_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o say_v moral_a law_n be_v to_o fulfil_v it_o most_o perfect_o in_o his_o life_n to_o explain_v it_o by_o his_o doctrine_n to_o clear_v up_o the_o true_a and_o full_a meaning_n of_o it_o and_o to_o vindicate_v it_o from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o pharisaical_a jew_n to_o suffer_v and_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o his_o people_n breach_n of_o it_o and_o to_o impose_v it_o explain_v as_o aforesaid_a on_o his_o own_o disciple_n and_o follower_n as_o the_o rule_n and_o law_n of_o their_o moral_a natural_a allegiance_n and_o obedience_n unto_o god_n but_o then_o for_o mere_a positive_a law_n as_o before_o his_o incarnation_n he_o have_v give_v some_o such_o unto_o his_o church_n so_o after_o his_o incarnation_n the_o old_a positive_a law_n be_v abrogate_a he_o give_v unto_o his_o church_n some_o new_a positive_a law_n such_o as_o those_o that_o relate_v to_o the_o two_o sacrament_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n as_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n and_o the_o order_n and_o discipline_n that_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o his_o church_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o though_o it_o be_v free_o grant_v by_o we_o that_o when_o such_o positive_a law_n be_v once_o enact_v by_o our_o lord_n royal_a authority_n the_o moral_a natural_a law_n itself_o do_v oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v they_o yet_o we_o be_v first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n oblige_v to_o give_v obedience_n to_o they_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o they_o and_o by_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n which_o do_v institute_v and_o enact_v they_o and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n by_o itself_o immediate_o will_v never_o make_v they_o law_n nor_o oblige_v we_o to_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o first_o make_v law_n by_o a_o new_a exertion_n of_o the_o lord_n legislative_a power_n which_o do_v by_o those_o positive_a law_n themselves_o first_o and_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v they_o seven_o consider_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v between_o a_o law_n be_v old_a or_o new_a quoad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la rei_fw-la materiam_fw-la &_o substantiam_fw-la aut_fw-la quoad_fw-la rei_fw-la modum_fw-la &_o circumstantiam_fw-la in_o regard_n of_o matter_n and_o substance_n or_o in_o regard_n of_o manner_n and_o circumstance_n thus_o the_o moral_a command_n to_o love_v the_o brethren_n be_v both_o old_a and_o new_a in_o different_a respect_n it_o be_v old_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o substance_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v new_a in_o respect_n of_o that_o special_a manner_n of_o love_v the_o brethren_n as_o christ_n love_v we_o witness_v john_n 13.34_o and_o 1_o john_n 2.7_o 8._o so_o likewise_o the_o positive_a command_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o messiah_n be_v both_o old_a and_o new_a in_o respect_n of_o different_a circumstance_n of_o time_n it_o be_v old_a even_o as_o old_a as_o the_o first_o promise_n after_o the_o fall_n gen_n 3.15_o as_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o christ_n to_o come_v but_o it_o be_v new_a as_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o christ_n already_o come_v and_o crucify_a dead_a and_o bury_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o there_o most_o high_o dignify_v and_o glorify_v for_o no_o man_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v oblige_v or_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n under_o this_o consideration_n but_o now_o we_o be_v all_o to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v ind_z sp_z nsable_o oblige_v thus_o to_o believe_v on_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o positive_a command_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o messiah_n be_v as_o old_a as_o the_o first_o promise_n gen._n 3.15_o yet_o the_o command_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o man_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n be_v new_a and_o can_v not_o be_v so_o old_a eight_o consider_v that_o we_o shall_v distinguish_v between_o a_o law_n that_o have_v only_o legal_a promise_n without_o any_o promise_n of_o mercy_n and_o grace_n in_o it_o at_o all_o and_o a_o law_n that_o have_v all_o merciful_a and_o gracious_a promise_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o those_o many_o great_a and_o precious_a now_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v a_o law_n that_o have_v only_o legal_a promise_n without_o any_o promise_n of_o mercy_n or_o of_o renew_v and_o pardon_v grace_n in_o it_o at_o all_o it_o be_v a_o law_n that_o require_v personal_a perpetual_a and_o ever-sinless_a obedience_n and_o promise_v life_n to_o man_n on_o condition_n of_o such_o obedience_n and_o for_o such_o obedience_n only_o will_v have_v justify_v he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o law_n that_o have_v all_o merciful_a and_o gracious_a promise_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o those_o many_o great_a and_o precious_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v right_o call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o elect_a who_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a subject_n of_o it_o as_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n its_o predominant_a be_v grace_n grace_n run_v through_o it_o all_o and_o appear_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o 1._o there_o be_v grace_n in_o the_o mandatory_a part_n of_o it_o in_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o prescribe_v its_o condition_n in_o that_o legal_a ever_o finless_a perfection_n be_v not_o rigid_o insist_v on_o but_o evangelical_n sincerity_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o be_v require_v as_o a_o condition_n which_o also_o be_v accept_v through_o christ_n and_o the_o sinful_a defect_n thereof_o together_o with_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v free_o forgive_v for_o christ_n sake_n 2._o there_o be_v grace_n rich_a and_o glorious_a grace_n in_o the_o promissory_a part_n of_o it_o in_o that_o it_o promise_n to_o the_o elect_a special_a effectual_a victorious_a grace_n to_o cause_v they_o free_o yet_o certain_o perform_v the_o condition_n in_o gospel_n sincerity_n and_o in_o that_o when_o they_o through_o grace_n perform_v the_o condition_n it_o further_a promise_n they_o most_o gracious_a benefit_n and_o glorious_a blessing_n and_o all_o through_o and_o for_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n 3._o there_o be_v grace_n also_o in_o the_o very_a minatory_n sanction_n for_o the_o design_n of_o the_o threaten_v be_v not_o to_o bring_v on_o man_n the_o punishment_n threaten_v but_o to_o curb_v the_o flesh_n in_o they_o and_o to_o restrain_v they_o from_o those_o sin_n which_o their_o own_o corrupt_a nature_n incline_v they_o unto_o and_o which_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n tempt_v they_o unto_o so_o that_o the_o very_a threaten_n be_v useful_a to_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o mercy_n to_o they_o even_o to_o such_o as_o the_o believe_a roman_n that_o they_o be_v under_o that_o conditional_a threaten_n rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v and_o since_o grace_n do_v thus_o appear_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o 12.25_o see_v heb._n 12.25_o it_o be_v very_o fit_o call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n yea_o i_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o join_v hearty_o with_o my_o r._n brother_n in_o call_v it_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n but_o withal_o i_o must_v declare_v that_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o like_o it_o the_o worse_a nor_o be_v it_o unto_o i_o the_o less_o gracious_a because_o it_o prescribe_v unto_o i_o something_o to_o be_v do_v by_o i_o through_o my_o lord_n grace_n but_o i_o like_v it_o the_o better_a for_o that_o since_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o detract_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o it_o now_o if_o the_o premise_n be_v due_o consider_v and_o if_o the_o foresay_a distinction_n be_v right_o apply_v as_o there_o may_v be_v occasion_n it_o will_v be_v easy_a thereby_o to_o answer_v all_o his_o testimony_n from_o reform_a protestant_a divine_v sect_n ii_o his_o first_o set_v of_o testimony_n examine_v and_o answer_v for_o his_o first_o set_v of_o testimony_n to_o prove_v from_o our_o protestant_a divine_n definition_n or_o description_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n 1._o i_o answer_v thereunto_o in_o general_n that_o if_o that_o be_v all_o they_o prove_v i_o profess_v sincere_o in_o a_o true_a and_o sound_a sense_n to_o believe_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o explain_v it_o before_o from_o whence_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v by_o any_o good_a consequence_n that_o it_o
justification_n and_o salvation_n call_v they_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o be_v nothing_o less_o for_o a_o free_a christian_a will_v say_v thus_o i_o will_v fast_o i_o will_v pray_v i_o will_v do_v this_o and_o that_o which_o be_v command_v by_o man_n not_o that_o i_o need_v to_o do_v it_o for_o justification_n or_o salvation_n but_o that_o in_o do_v it_o i_o may_v obey_v the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n such_o a_o community_n and_o such_o a_o magistrate_n or_o that_o i_o may_v give_v my_o neighbour_n a_o good_a example_n etc._n etc._n thus_o luther_n now_o whether_o my_o r_n brother_n have_v any_o occasion_n for_o this_o doctrine_n he_o know_v best_a himself_n it_o may_v be_v of_o some_o use_n to_o he_o the_o next_o time_n he_o travel_n to_o rome_n but_o for_o myself_o i_o declare_v i_o have_v no_o occasion_n for_o it_o nor_o do_v i_o ever_o intend_v to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o mr_n goodwin_n do_v well_o to_o tell_v the_o world_n that_o luther_n write_v that_o book_n before_o he_o have_v declare_v war_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o then_o he_o may_v have_v be_v more_o spare_v in_o his_o praise_n of_o it_o and_o in_o urge_v luther_n testimony_n therein_o against_o i_o and_o my_o reverend_a brethren_n since_o he_o be_v but_o new_o creep_v out_o of_o the_o monastery_n and_o have_v receive_v but_o a_o small_a measure_n of_o light_n when_o he_o write_v that_o treatise_n and_o yet_o what_o be_v quote_v out_o of_o it_o against_o i_o do_v not_o advantage_v my_o r._n brother_n nor_o yet_o prejudice_v i_o and_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o defend_v though_o luther_n be_v not_o without_o his_o fail_n as_o no_o man_n be_v more_o or_o less_o yet_o he_o be_v real_o a_o great_a and_o good_a man_n and_o i_o hearty_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o good_a that_o be_v in_o he_o and_o do_v by_o he_o and_o his_o testimony_n shall_v be_v always_o respectful_o receive_v by_o i_o so_o far_o as_o i_o find_v it_o consonant_n to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n and_o to_o the_o establish_v doctrine_n of_o our_o own_o better_a reform_a church_n 4._o in_o the_o four_o place_n mr_n g._n quote_v the_o excellent_a melancthon_n again_o but_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o i_o assent_v to_o all_o that_o melancthon_n there_o write_v set_a aside_o the_o gloss_n of_o mr._n g_o and_o melancthons_n own_o word_n do_v not_o prejudice_v my_o cause_n at_o all_o and_o elsewhere_o melancthon_n be_v clear_o for_o i_o and_o hold_v as_o i_o do_v that_o the_o gospel_n proper_o take_v require_v of_o we_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o promise_n grace_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v etc._n etc._n and_o i_o desire_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n in_o our_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n this_o i_o shall_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v clear_o prove_v from_o melancthons_n own_o word_n in_o my_o animadversion_n on_o mr._n g_o be_v seven_o chapter_n and_o than_o it_o will_v plain_o appear_v that_o he_o do_v but_o abuse_n melancthon_n and_o the_o people_n too_o in_o thus_o endeavour_v to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o melancthon_n be_v of_o his_o absurd_a opinion_n 5._o his_o next_o witness_n against_o i_o be_v the_o famous_a calvin_n but_o i_o fear_v no_o harm_n from_o he_o for_o i_o take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n than_o to_o contradict_v himself_o in_o witness-bearing_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o have_v already_o bear_v witness_n for_o we_o in_o the_o apology_n and_o declare_v that_o he_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v conditional_a and_o require_v of_o man_n both_o faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o order_n to_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n see_v apol._n pag._n 51.92_o 93_o 94_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o we_o do_v and_o in_o the_o place_n which_o my_o r._n brother_n refer_v to_o and_o in_o the_o word_n which_o he_o quote_v there_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v well_o consistent_a with_o what_o i_o most_o true_o and_o faithful_o cite_v both_o out_o of_o his_o institution_n and_o commentary_n and_o indeed_o what_o be_v here_o quote_v by_o mr._n g._n be_v very_o impertinent_o allege_v against_o i_o for_o i_o do_v sincere_o confess_v that_o to_o invest_v christ_n with_o a_o new_a legislative_a power_n and_o to_o dignify_v the_o gospel_n with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o new_a law_n in_o the_o popish_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v indeed_o a_o mere_a fiction_n and_o that_o those_o who_o go_v the_o popish_a way_n have_v feign_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o a_o evangelical_n law_n which_o shall_v have_v supply_v the_o defect_n even_o of_o the_o moral_a law_n give_v unto_o israel_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o calvin_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel-covenant_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o bundle_n of_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n of_o grace_n for_o beside_o what_o be_v quote_v in_o the_o apology_n calvin_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o three_o of_o jonah_n say_v as_o follow_v jonae_fw-la follow_v quoties_fw-la veniam_fw-la proponit_fw-la deus_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la simul_fw-la additur_fw-la haec_fw-la conditio_fw-la ut_fw-la resipiscant_fw-la nec_fw-la tamen_fw-la sequitur_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la esse_fw-la causam_fw-la impetrandae_fw-la gratiae_fw-la gratis_o enim_fw-la se_fw-la deus_fw-la offer_v neque_fw-la aliunde_fw-la inducitur_fw-la quàm_fw-la suâ_fw-la liberalitate_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la homines_fw-la abuti_fw-la suâ_fw-la indulgentia_fw-la &_o facilitate_v ideo_fw-la legem_fw-la illam_fw-la apponit_fw-la ut_fw-la scilicet_fw-la poeniteat_fw-la ipsos_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la prioris_fw-la &_o in_o melius_fw-la mutentur_fw-la calvin_n comment_fw-fr in_o 3_o cap._n jonae_fw-la as_o often_o as_o god_n propose_v or_o promise_v pardon_n to_o sinner_n together_o with_o the_o proposal_n or_o promise_n this_o condition_n be_v add_v that_o they_o repent_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o repentance_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o obtain_v the_o grace_n of_o pardon_n for_o god_n offer_v himself_o free_o nor_o be_v he_o induce_v thereunto_o by_o any_o other_o thing_n than_o his_o own_o liberality_n but_o because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v man_n to_o abuse_v his_o indulgence_n and_o readiness_n to_o forgive_v therefore_o he_o join_v that_o law_n to_o his_o promise_n to_o wit_n that_o sinner_n repent_v of_o their_o former_a ill_a life_n and_o be_v change_v to_o the_o better_a thus_o calvin_n and_o this_o repentance_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sumof_o the_o gospel_n instit_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o sect._n 19_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 95._o therefore_o my_o r_n b_o do_v but_o abuse_n calvin_n and_o wrest_v his_o word_n to_o a_o sense_n he_o never_o mean_v notwithstanding_o the_o commendation_n which_o he_o give_v of_o he_o 6._o beza_n be_v bring_v to_o witness_n against_o we_o but_o to_o as_o little_a purpose_n for_o i_o demonstrate_v from_o beza_n his_o own_o express_a word_n in_o the_o apology_n that_o he_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o conditional_a gospel-covenant_n that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n and_o yet_o that_o true_a repentance_n be_v require_v as_o indispensable_o necessary_a in_o grow_v person_n in_o order_n to_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o here_o i_o must_v rectify_v what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 95._o that_o it_o may_v be_v and_o it_o will_v seem_v that_o beza_n have_v some_o peculiar_a conceit_n that_o all_o repentance_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o be_v proper_o from_o the_o law_n and_o but_o improper_o from_o the_o gospel_n because_o he_o say_v in_o his_o 20_o epistle_n that_o contrition_n do_v not_o propor_o proceed_v from_o the_o gospel_n now_o i_o confess_v that_o in_o so_o understanding_n beza_n there_o i_o mistake_v his_o true_a meaning_n to_o my_o own_o disadvantage_n and_o my_o mistake_n arise_v from_o the_o word_n contrition_n by_o which_o beza_n mean_v nothing_o but_o what_o the_o papist_n ordinary_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o attritio_fw-la and_o that_o be_v a_o legal_a repentance_n which_o as_o beza_n right_o observe_v proceed_v not_o proper_o from_o the_o gospel_n but_o from_o the_o law_n but_o i_o think_v that_o by_o the_o word_n contrition_n he_o have_v mean_v what_o we_o common_o call_v contrition_n from_o psal_n 51.17_o and_o which_o be_v a_o true_a evangelical_n repentance_n enjoin_v by_o the_o gospel_n but_o since_o i_o have_v learn_v from_o his_o other_o write_n that_o by_o the_o word_n contrition_n he_o mean_v not_o a_o evangelical_n but_o a_o legal_a repentance_n when_o in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o that_o epistle_n he_o say_v that_o contrition_n be_v not_o proper_o from_o the_o gospel_n but_o from_o the_o law_n and_o by_o
own_o additional_a threaten_v in_o the_o sense_n aforesaid_a seem_v very_o evident_a to_o i_o 1._o because_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v to_o the_o believer_n exclusive_o to_o he_o and_o to_o no_o other_o john_n 3.16_o 17._o 8.24_o john_n 8.24_o it_o can_v but_o virtual_o imply_v that_o the_o unbeliever_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o benefit_n promise_v and_o that_o be_v a_o threaten_v 2._o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v express_v in_o the_o case_n for_o over_o and_o beside_o the_o threaten_v for_o former_o break_v the_o law_n the_o gospel_n threaten_v for_o not_o sincere_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n john_n 3.18_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o and_o why_o so_o why_o certain_o not_o only_o because_o he_o have_v not_o perfect_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o likewise_o as_o it_o follow_v immediate_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o then_o in_o ver_fw-la 19_o our_o saviour_n say_v this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a see_v also_o for_o this_o the_o commission_n itself_o which_o our_o bless_a lord_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o in_o they_o to_o all_o his_o gospel-minister_n who_o succeed_v they_o in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n mark_v 16.15_o 16._o go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v from_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o primary_n design_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o man_n to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v shall_v believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a and_o that_o if_o they_o do_v so_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o true_a import_n of_o the_o conditional_a promise_n but_o 2._o if_o they_o neglect_v or_o refuse_v to_o believe_v and_o by_o believe_v to_o use_v the_o save_v remedy_n offer_v they_o in_o the_o gospel_n against_o the_o curse_n and_o condemnation_n of_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o this_o be_v the_o secondary_a design_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o threaten_v man_n with_o condemnation_n if_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o the_o threaten_a may_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o deter_v they_o from_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n and_o to_o preserve_v they_o from_o be_v damn_v according_a to_o this_o gospel_n man_n to_o who_o it_o have_v be_v preach_v will_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o it_o be_v write_v rom._n 2.16_o god_n shall_v judge_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n now_o in_o judge_a man_n who_o have_v live_v under_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n will_v justify_v the_o true_a penitent_a believer_n and_o condemn_v the_o unbeliever_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n whence_o it_o follow_v by_o good_a consequence_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v threaten_n as_o well_o as_o promise_n and_o that_o as_o the_o believer_n shall_v then_o be_v justify_v according_a to_o the_o promise_n so_o the_o unbeliever_n shall_v be_v condemn_v according_a to_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o if_o the_o gospel_n have_v neither_o precept_n nor_o threaten_v nor_o conditional_a promise_n as_o mr._n goodwin_n affirm_v that_o it_o have_v not_o i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o any_o unbeliever_n can_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v according_a to_o the_o gospel_n it_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v say_v that_o he_o may_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v never_o make_v to_o such_o a_o unbeliever_n as_o life_n and_o die_v in_o unbelief_n my_o r._n b._n will_v not_o admit_v that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n make_v to_o such_o a_o unbeliever_n and_o if_o not_o a_o conditional_a promise_n much_o less_o be_v there_o ever_o a_o absolute_a gospel-promise_a make_v to_o he_o if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o though_o the_o believer_n can_v be_v both_o judged_n and_o justify_v by_o the_o law_n yet_o the_o unbeliever_n may_v be_v both_o judged_n and_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a every_o unbeliever_n be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n that_o he_o be_v under_o and_o transgress_v but_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o unbeliever_n be_v likewise_o judge_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o we_o say_v in_o the_o apology_n pag_n 200._o that_o profess_a christian_n who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o impenitence_n and_o unbelief_n will_v be_v double_o condemn_v both_o by_o law_n and_o gospel_n by_o the_o law_n for_o break_v it_o and_o by_o the_o gospel_n for_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o not_o use_v and_o apply_v by_o faith_n the_o remedy_n offer_v they_o in_o the_o gospel_n against_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o law_n the_o same_o say_v the_o reverend_n learned_a and_o judicious_a hutcheson_n on_o john_n on_o the_o 18_o verse_n of_o the_o three_o of_o john_n these_o be_v his_o word_n christ_n go_v on_o to_o clear_a and_o illustrate_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n in_o he_o by_o show_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o condemnation_n of_o unbeliever_n who_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v under_o a_o double_a condemnation_n one_o by_o the_o law_n and_o another_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_n a_o little_a after_o albeit_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o law_n be_v sufficient_a to_o condemn_v mankind_n and_o will_v condemn_v all_o they_o who_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o christ_n yet_o under_o the_o gospel_n unbelief_n and_o not_o receive_v of_o christ_n be_v the_o great_a condemn_v sin_n for_o as_o no_o sin_n will_v condemn_v the_o man_n who_o flee_v to_o christ_n the_o remedy_n so_o when_o the_o remedy_n be_v not_o embrace_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o law_n be_v ratify_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o court_n of_o mercy_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o sentence_n be_v declare_v just_o and_o confirm_v by_o a_o new_a sentence_n since_o he_o will_v not_o take_v help_n and_o thus_o unbelief_n be_v the_o great_a unpardonable_a sin_n mark_v 16.16_o whereas_o other_o sin_n that_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n except_v because_o it_o be_v join_v with_o final_a impenitence_n will_v be_v pardon_v if_o man_n will_v believe_v and_o on_o ver_fw-la 19_o doct._n 5._o where_v christ_n offer_v himself_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o receive_v in_o love_n but_o contemn_v it_o bring_v sad_a condemnation_n than_o the_o break_n of_o the_o law_n as_o be_v a_o sin_v against_o the_o remedy_n and_o that_o with_o a_o high_a hand_n a_o undervalue_v of_o he_o and_o do_v of_o what_o they_o can_v to_o make_v void_a his_o pain_n for_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n have_v come_v etc._n etc._n thus_o mr._n hutcheson_n on_o john_n 3.18_o 19_o agree_v with_o we_o that_o unbeliever_n shall_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v something_o strange_a that_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v at_o this_o day_n so_o far_o under_o the_o power_n of_o unbelief_n as_o to_o doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v this_o since_o christ_n himself_o say_v express_o john_n 12.48_o that_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v shall_v judge_v the_o unbeliever_n in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o from_o the_o context_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o say_a word_n which_o shall_v judge_v the_o unbeliever_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o word_n which_o christ_n preach_v and_o which_o the_o unbeliever_n receive_v not_o and_o i_o think_v that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o be_o i_o singular_a in_o so_o think_v for_o calvin_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n as_o be_v evident_a from_o what_o he_o write_v in_o his_o commentary_n on_o john_n 12.48_o non_fw-la potuit_fw-la magis_fw-la splendido_fw-la elogio_fw-la extolli_fw-la evangelii_n authoritas_fw-la quàm_fw-la dum_fw-la illi_fw-la judicii_fw-la potestas_fw-la defertur_fw-la conscendet_fw-la quidem_fw-la ipse_fw-la christus_fw-la tribunal_n sed_fw-la sententiam_fw-la ex_fw-la verbo_fw-la quod_fw-la nunc_fw-la praedicatur_fw-la laturum_fw-la se_fw-la asserit_fw-la that_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v not_o be_v more_o high_o praise_v nor_o a_o more_o glorious_a elegy_n give_v unto_o it_o than_o in_o ascribe_v to_o it_o the_o power_n of_o judge_v men._n christ_n himself_o shall_v indeed_o ascend_v the_o judgement_n seat_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v pass_v the_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o word_n which_o be_v now_o preach_v the_o
i_o mean_v nothing_o but_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o only_o say_v that_o this_o gospel-covenant_n may_v be_v call_v a_o law_n without_o just_a cause_n of_o offence_n to_o the_o brethren_n because_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n call_v it_o a_o law_n now_o if_o i_o do_v all_o this_o in_o the_o apology_n page_n 21_o 22_o 23_o 27._o as_o i_o certain_o do_v and_o god_n angel_n and_o man_n know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a then_o my_o reverend_a brother_n do_v not_o do_v well_o to_o go_v about_o to_o deceive_v the_o people_n and_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o i_o introduce_v a_o new_a law_n of_o work_n to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o and_o for_o they_o and_o that_o my_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o be_v all_o ground_a upon_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n unexplain_v all_o which_o be_v utter_o false_a i_o confess_v indeed_o what_o be_v true_a that_o though_o my_o purpose_n and_o design_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v but_o to_o explain_v and_o declare_v what_o we_o mean_v yet_o en_fw-fr passant_a on_o the_o by_o and_o to_o show_v that_o our_o explication_n be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n i_o drop_v four_o passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o refer_v to_o more_o in_o the_o margin_n which_o do_v abundant_o prove_v the_o thing_n they_o be_v quote_v for_o but_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noonday_n that_o my_o proof_n from_o the_o say_v four_o passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o line_n and_o from_o the_o other_o refer_v to_o on_o the_o margin_n be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o establish_v upon_o the_o mere_a ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n but_o upon_o the_o plain_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n there_o allege_v nor_o can_v a_o argument_n from_o those_o scripture_n there_o quote_v or_o refer_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o mere_a ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n because_o the_o word_n law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v sound_a in_o any_o of_o they_o let_v any_o man_n read_v they_o all_o over_o and_o he_o shall_v find_v what_o i_o say_v to_o be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n law_n be_v not_o in_o any_o of_o they_o i_o acknowledge_v likewise_o that_o a_o few_o line_n after_o in_o the_o same_o 22th_o page_n i_o quote_v three_o scripture_n where_o the_o word_n law_n be_v but_o than_o it_o be_v again_o as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o i_o quote_v those_o three_o scripture_n to_o prove_v nothing_o but_o this_o that_o our_o brethren_n shall_v not_o dislike_v our_o calling_n the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o law_n because_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n call_v it_o so_o express_o and_o my_o r._n brother_n acknowledge_v now_o with_o i_o that_o it_o be_v so_o call_v in_o two_o of_o the_o place_n to_o wit_n isa_n 42.4_o and_o rom._n 3.27_o and_o in_o several_a other_o which_o he_o have_v quote_v as_o for_o my_o other_o argument_n from_o humane_a authority_n neither_o be_v that_o establish_v on_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n law_n but_o on_o the_o word_n itself_o its_o be_v find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a divine_n long_a before_o we_o be_v bear_v from_o whence_o i_o clear_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n be_v not_o new_a but_o old_a and_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o my_o witness_n prove_v more_o as_o they_o real_o do_v even_o that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v not_o only_o of_o old_a call_v a_o law_n but_o that_o it_o real_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v some_o duty_n of_o we_o that_o be_v beside_o my_o design_n and_o purpose_n which_o be_v only_o to_o prove_v matter_n of_o fact_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o apology_n pag._n 24._o lin_v 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21._o if_o any_o object_n that_o in_o the_o preface_n and_o index_n of_o the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v express_o that_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a divine_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v say_v so_o but_o then_o consider_v that_o the_o say_a preface_n and_o index_n be_v write_v and_o print_v after_o the_o apology_n be_v finish_v and_o print_v though_o in_o the_o book_n they_o be_v both_o put_v before_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n to_o write_v preface_n and_o index_n last_o and_o yet_o place_v they_o first_o in_o book_n now_o when_o i_o write_v the_o preface_n and_o index_n take_v a_o review_n of_o all_o that_o be_v say_v on_o that_o head_n in_o the_o apology_n i_o find_v that_o my_o quotation_n from_o scripture_n and_o doctor_n have_v prove_v more_o than_o i_o design_v 1._o i_o design_v only_o to_o explain_v our_o meaning_n and_o by_o cite_v the_o four_o scripture_n in_o the_o line_n and_o other_o in_o the_o margin_n to_o show_v that_o our_o explication_n be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n 2._o by_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n i_o design_v only_o to_o prove_v matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v no_o new_a word_n but_o old_a this_o be_v what_o i_o design_v in_o write_v that_o part_n of_o the_o apology_n but_o by_o look_v it_o over_o after_o it_o be_v print_v i_o find_v that_o the_o scripture_n cite_v and_o refer_v to_o and_o the_o testimony_n of_o doctor_n there_o allege_v do_v real_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n the_o mediator_n be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v some_o duty_n of_o we_o and_o which_o promise_v to_o justify_v and_o glorify_v we_o for_o christ_n sake_n only_o if_o we_o through_o grace_n perform_v the_o say_v duty_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o preface_n and_o index_n i_o say_v that_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o sense_n there_o give_v to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n both_o by_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a divine_n if_o any_o do_v further_a object_n that_o humane_a testimony_n can_v only_o prove_v matter_n of_o fact_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a humane_a testimony_n simple_o as_o such_o can_v solid_o prove_v no_o more_o nor_o do_v i_o bring_v humane_a testimony_n to_o prove_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n be_v in_o their_o time_n call_v a_o new_a law_n and_o a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o law_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o fact_n yet_o man_n by_o give_v testimony_n to_o matter_n of_o fact_n may_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o testimony_n bring_v such_o argument_n from_o scripture_n or_o reason_n as_o shall_v likewise_o prove_v matter_n of_o right_n and_o this_o my_o witness_n do_v especial_o justin_n martyr_n cyprian_n austin_n the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n gomtrus_n dr._n andrews_n and_o dr._n twiss_n they_o both_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o law_n a_o new_a law_n a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n which_o prove_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o moreover_o in_o their_o testimony_n to_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n they_o allege_v such_o place_n of_o scripture_n or_o give_v such_o reason_n as_o do_v prove_v the_o matter_n of_o right_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n and_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o account_v now_o have_v first_o tell_v the_o world_n how_o easy_o he_o can_v answer_v my_o argument_n and_o wipe_v off_o all_o my_o citation_n upon_o a_o supposition_n which_o be_v of_o his_o own_o feign_n and_o notorious_o false_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v he_o next_o come_v to_o answer_v my_o argument_n that_o be_v indeed_o my_o one_o argument_n from_o scripture_n for_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v no_o more_o but_o one_o and_o that_o one_o be_v there_o bring_v to_o confirm_v our_o explication_n of_o the_o word_n gospel_n covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o show_v that_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n be_v consonant_n to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o 21._o and_o 22._o pag._n of_o the_o apology_n well_o but_o be_v it_o argument_n or_o argument_n he_o undertake_v to_o give_v we_o a_o clear_a answer_n to_o it_o and_o in_o order_n thereunto_o he_o propose_v to_o do_v three_o thing_n 1._o to_o show_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n or_o commandment_n 2._o that_o it_o have_v no_o threaten_n 3._o that_o it_o have_v no_o conditional_a promise_n this_o be_v direct_o against_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n who_o in_o their_o synopsis_n of_o pure_a divinity_n say_v express_o as_o their_o word_n be_v quote_v in_o the_o apology_n
and_o since_o the_o fall_n and_o before_o and_o since_o the_o come_v of_o christ_n now_o if_o the_o enact_v of_o any_o new_a law_n do_v by_o good_a consequence_n infer_v the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n together_o with_o the_o imperfection_n of_o god_n and_o the_o want_n of_o wisdom_n in_o god_n the_o lawgive_a than_o it_o follow_v also_o by_o good_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o in_o truth_n the_o moral_a law_n be_v not_o perfect_a nor_o be_v god_n infinite_o wise_a and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o god_n at_o all_o because_o he_o have_v certain_o enact_v many_o positive_a new_a law_n and_o these_o positive_a now_o law_n argue_v as_o be_v pretend_v that_o his_o former_a moral_a natural_a law_n be_v not_o perfect_a nor_o himself_o wise_a enough_o to_o give_v so_o perfect_a a_o law_n at_o first_o as_o shall_v answer_v all_o emergent_a case_n and_o prevent_v the_o need_n of_o any_o new_a law_n by_o this_o consideration_n it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o some_o man_n oppose_v the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n upon_o such_o a_o principle_n as_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n ●●ns_v they_o into_o blasphemy_n and_o atheism_n and_o that_o their_o argument_n against_o any_o new_a positive_a law_n take_v from_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o from_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n can_v be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v against_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o attempt_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o can_v possible_o be_v prove_v to_o wit_n that_o god_n have_v never_o since_o the_o first_o creation_n enact_v for_o man_n any_o new_a po●●tive_a law_n which_o yet_o he_o have_v certain_o do_v if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o the_o scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n yea_o this_o argument_n bear_v so_o high_a as_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o prove_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o he_o have_v certain_o do_v and_o if_o he_o have_v do_v what_o he_o have_v do_v than_o he_o be_v not_o what_o he_o be_v and_o what_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v to_o wit_n infinite_o perfect_a and_o wise_a 7._o consider_v seven_o that_o a_o duty_n or_o act_n of_o we_o which_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n or_o substance_n of_o it_o so_o to_o speak_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o may_v yet_o have_v several_a habitude_n and_o relation_n and_o may_v fall_v under_o several_a formal_a notion_n and_o consideration_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o those_o different_a habitude_n and_o notion_n may_v so_o far_o differ_v from_o itself_o as_o to_o fall_v under_o two_o different_a law_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v moral_a natural_a and_o the_o other_o be_v moral_a positive_a and_o under_o one_o formal_a notion_n and_o in_o one_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v require_v of_o we_o by_o a_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o under_o another_o formal_a notion_n and_o in_o another_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v require_v of_o we_o by_o a_o moral_a positive_a law_n for_o instance_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n consider_v material_o and_o as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o so_o to_o speak_v 2.5_o 1_o tim._n 2.5_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v god_n also_o yet_o there_o be_v here_o two_o different_a object_n to_o wit_n 1._o god_n consider_v simple_o as_o god_n 2._o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n christ_n jesus_n consider_v now_o as_o god_n man_n and_o the_o one_o be_v the_o ultimate_a terminative_a object_n and_o the_o other_o the_o intermediate_n object_n of_o our_o faith_n through_o which_o it_o be_v carry_v unto_o god_n as_o its_o ultimate_o terminative_a object_n 1_o pet._n 3.18_o john_n 14.1_o 2_o cor._n 3.4_o and_o 1_o pet._n 1.21_o i_o say_v there_o be_v here_o two_o such_o different_a object_n our_o faith_n as_o conversant_a about_o these_o two_o object_n must_v needs_o have_v different_a habitude_n and_o relation_n and_o fall_v under_o different_a formal_a notion_n and_o consideration_n at_o present_a i_o shall_v only_o instance_n in_o this_o that_o according_a to_o our_o protestant_a divine_n faith_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o god_n simple_o consider_v so_o it_o be_v a_o moral_a virtue_n or_o as_o other_o a_o theological_a virtue_n but_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o christ_n the_o mediator_n it_o have_v also_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o moral_a instrument_n or_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n whereby_o we_o be_v interest_v in_o christ_n or_o whereby_o we_o receive_v apprehend_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n to_o ourselves_o and_o whereby_o we_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o in_o god_n through_o he_o for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n on_o the_o account_n of_o his_o righteousness_n only_o now_o the_o same_o faith_n material_o consider_v have_v such_o different_a object_n and_o different_a habitude_n to_o those_o object_n and_o in_o different_a respect_n fall_v under_o different_a formal_a notion_n it_o must_v needs_o by_o reason_n of_o they_o and_z as_o vest_v with_o they_o differ_v formal_o from_o itself_o though_o it_o be_v material_o the_o same_o faith_n still_o and_o then_o as_o so_o differ_v formal_o from_o itself_o we_o may_v very_o easy_o conceive_v it_o to_o fall_v under_o different_a law_n faith_n in_o god_n simple_o consider_v fall_v under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n as_o all_o confess_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n as_o formal_o differ_v from_o faith_n in_o god_n simple_o consider_v fall_v under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o moral_a positive_a evangelical_n law_n so_o our_o protestant_n divine_v general_o maintain_v against_o the_o flacian_a sectary_n witness_v melancthon_n who_o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o augsburg_n confession_n say_v 1580._o say_v fides_n est_fw-la obedientia_fw-la erga_fw-la evangelium_fw-la quare_fw-la fides_fw-la rectè_fw-la dicitur_fw-la justitia_fw-la nam_fw-la obedientia_fw-la erga_fw-la evangelium_fw-la imputatur_fw-la pro_fw-la justitia_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la obedientia_fw-la erga_fw-la legem_fw-la tantùm_fw-la propterea_fw-la placeat_fw-la quia_fw-la credimus_fw-la nobis_fw-la deum_fw-la gratis_o propitium_fw-la esse_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la legi_fw-la satisfacimus_fw-la quanquam_fw-la autem_fw-la haec_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la in_o voluntate_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la velle_fw-la &_o accipere_fw-la promissionem_fw-la tamen_fw-la haec_fw-la obedientia_fw-la erga_fw-la evangelium_fw-la non_fw-la propter_fw-la nostram_fw-la munditiem_fw-la imputatur_fw-la pro_fw-la justitiâ_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la accipit_fw-la oblatam_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la melancth_v apolog._n pro_fw-la aug._n confess_v p._n 113._o edit_fw-la argentor_n 1580._o faith_n be_v obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n wherefore_o faith_n be_v fit_o call_v righteousness_n for_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n be_v impute_v for_o righteousness_n so_o that_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n therefore_o only_o please_v because_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v free_o propitious_a to_o we_o for_o christ_n sake_n for_o we_o do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o law_n but_o though_o this_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o will_n for_o it_o be_v to_o will_v and_o to_o receive_v the_o promise_n yet_o this_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o impute_v for_o righteousness_n because_o of_o our_o purity_n but_o because_o it_o receive_v the_o mercy_n offer_v thus_o melancthon_n distinguish_v and_o oppose_v to_o one_o another_o obedience_n to_o law_n and_o gospel_n and_o affirm_v faith_n to_o be_v obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n as_o distinguish_v from_o the_o law_n and_o again_o some_o page_n after_o he_o say_v requiri_fw-la say_v idem_fw-la ibid._n p._n 116._o evangelium_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la mandatum_fw-la quod_fw-la jubet_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la velit_fw-la ignoscere_fw-la &_o salvare_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la juxta_fw-la illud_fw-la non_fw-la mifit_n deus_fw-la filium_fw-la suum_fw-la etc._n etc._n quoties_fw-la igitur_fw-la de_fw-la misericordiâ_fw-la dicitur_fw-la intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la fidem_fw-la requiri_fw-la the_o gospel_n be_v that_o very_a commandment_n which_o bid_v we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v pardon_v and_o save_v for_o christ_n sake_n according_a to_o that_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v &c_n &c_n therefore_o how_o often_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o mercy_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o faith_n be_v require_v again_o in_o his_o common_a place_n he_o say_v christo_fw-la say_v idem_fw-la in_o loc_fw-la come_v cap._n de_fw-fr poeniten_n p._n 517._o mandatum_fw-la aeternum_fw-la &_o immutabile_fw-la ac_fw-la longè_fw-la supra_fw-la legem_fw-la est_fw-la credere_fw-la christo_fw-la the_o command_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a and_o far_o above_o the_o law_n melancthons_n meaning_n be_v plain_a that_o the_o command_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n for_o it_o be_v far_o above_o that_o law_n but_o it_o be_v a_o commandment_n of_o the_o positive_a evangelical_n law_n which_o be_v not_o natural_a but_o supernatural_a
of_o god_n will_n to_o men._n in_o deuteronomy_n he_o leave_v it_o thus_o write_v and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v not_o hear_v those_o thing_n which_o that_o prophet_n shall_v speak_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v punish_v he_o for_o it_o god_n declare_v even_o by_o the_o law_n giver_n himself_o that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o own_o son_n that_o be_v a_o live_n and_o present_a law_n and_o will_v abrogate_v that_o old_a law_n give_v by_o a_o mortal_a man_n that_o he_o may_v by_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v eternal_a again_o confirm_v and_o ratify_v the_o eternal_a law_n thus_o he_o and_o whoever_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o write_n of_o lactantius_n may_v i_o think_v easy_o perceive_v that_o by_o the_o eternal_a law_n he_o mean_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n or_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o eternal_a christ_n have_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o his_o blood_n shed_v and_o death_n this_o may_v appear_v yet_o clear_a to_o some_o person_n from_o matth._n 17.5_o and_o behold_v a_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o cloud_n which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v you_o he_o where_o again_o we_o have_v 1._o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 2._o we_o have_v a_o positive_a command_n of_o god_n to_o hear_v he_o that_o be_v to_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o word_n hear_v signify_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n idiom_n now_o this_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o cloud_n be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o of_o the_o father_n as_o such_o speak_v by_o supernatural_a revelation_n nor_o be_v this_o a_o command_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o it_o be_v a_o positive_a command_n of_o god_n as_o the_o author_n of_o grace_n which_o positive_a command_n record_v in_o scripture_n be_v to_o we_o christian_n a_o positive_a law_n whatever_o it_o be_v to_o unbeliever_n it_o be_v a_o positive_a law_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o faith_n in_o christ_n by_o the_o evidence_n of_o supernatural_a revelation_n apply_v the_o veracity_n and_o authority_n of_o god_n to_o our_o conscience_n such_o it_o be_v to_o melancthon_n one_o of_o our_o first_o reformer_n who_o often_o have_v recourse_n to_o it_o as_o a_o command_n of_o the_o gospel_n distinct_a from_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n particular_o he_o have_v recourse_n to_o it_o twice_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 22th_o article_n of_o the_o bavarian_a inquisition_n and_o as_o the_o foresay_a supernatural_a revelation_n carry_v in_o they_o a_o positive_a command_n express_o so_o the_o first_o obscurer_n revelation_n of_o that_o kind_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n gen._n 3.15_o employ_v the_o like_a positive_a command_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o come_v though_o it_o be_v not_o so_o express_v in_o the_o first_o write_a record_n as_o it_o be_v convey_v down_o to_o we_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n say_v not_o one_o word_n more_o to_o our_o first_o parent_n after_o the_o fall_n than_o what_o we_o find_v express_o write_v in_o the_o three_o of_o genesis_n and_o suppose_v he_o do_v not_o say_v one_o word_n more_o as_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n no_o man_n can_v prove_v that_o he_o do_v yet_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o mercy_n to_o be_v show_v unto_o fall_v man_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n as_o be_v confess_v now_o melancthon_n have_v tell_v we_o as_o he_o be_v quote_v before_o that_o 116._o that_o quoties_fw-la igitur_fw-la de_fw-la misericordiâ_fw-la dicitur_fw-la intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la fidem_fw-la requiri_fw-la melanct._n apol._n og_z pro_fw-la aug._n confess_v p._n 116._o as_o often_o as_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o mercy_n to_o wit_n save_v mercy_n by_o christ_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o faith_n be_v require_v but_o i_o insist_v not_o on_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o our_o purpose_n that_o we_o now_o have_v a_o supernatural_a clear_a revelation_n of_o christ_n 16.31_o see_v act_n 16.31_o with_o a_o clear_a express_v positive_a command_n to_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o that_o distinct_a from_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n and_o this_o express_v positive_a command_n hear_v you_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v be_v to_o we_o a_o evangelical_n law_n which_o have_v more_o power_n over_o our_o conscience_n than_o ten_o thousand_o such_o little_a sophism_n set_v off_o with_o a_o rhetorical_a flourish_n of_o word_n as_o be_v offer_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n by_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o only_o by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n three_o as_o the_o opinion_n under_o consideration_n be_v not_o true_a because_o contrary_a to_o plain_a scripture_n so_o it_o be_v of_o worse_a consequence_n to_o religion_n than_o my_o reverend_a brother_n seem_v to_o be_v aware_a of_o for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a law_n in_o the_o gospel_n distinct_a from_o the_o natural_a law_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o faith_n in_o christ_n because_o if_o there_o be_v than_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n will_v not_o be_v perfect_a and_o prescribe_v all_o duty_n nor_o will_v god_n be_v infinite_o wise_a it_o follow_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a law_n at_o all_o which_o oblige_v we_o to_o any_o other_o duty_n and_o indeed_o by_o this_o flacian_a opinion_n he_o plain_o overthrow_v all_o positive_a law_n and_o therewith_o all_o institute_v worship_n and_o he_o be_v mistake_v if_o he_o think_v to_o prevent_v and_o remedy_v this_o by_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n for_o 1._o if_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a law_n at_o all_o than_o it_o can_v never_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n for_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o at_o all_o can_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o thing_n that_o real_o be_v 2._o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n will_v never_o oblige_v we_o to_o any_o the_o least_o part_n of_o positive_a institute_v worship_n if_o we_o be_v not_o first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n oblige_v to_o it_o by_o the_o positive_a will_n of_o god_n institute_v it_o and_o by_o the_o institution_n itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o observance_n of_o it_o once_o take_v away_o the_o obligation_n that_o arise_v immediate_o from_o the_o positive_a institution_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o moral_a natural_a law_n will_v never_o take_v hold_n of_o our_o conscience_n to_o oblige_v we_o thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o special_a positive_a law_n that_o the_o general_n natural_a law_n oblige_v to_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a kind_n of_o thing_n which_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o command_v of_o the_o general_a natural_a law_n be_v it_o not_o very_o evident_a that_o though_o adam_n before_o he_o sin_v have_v the_o moral_a natural_a law_n in_o its_o full_a perfection_n yet_o it_o will_v never_o have_v oblige_v his_o conscience_n to_o forbear_v eat_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a more_o than_o any_o other_o fruit_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n if_o to_o the_o general_n natural_a law_n god_n have_v not_o superadd_v a_o particular_a positive_a law_n forbid_v he_o under_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o that_o tree_n so_o that_o it_o be_v this_o new_a positive_a law_n which_o first_o oblige_v he_o not_o to_o eat_v of_o it_o and_o then_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n strict_o oblige_v he_o likewise_o not_o to_o eat_v of_o it_o and_o this_o hold_v universal_o with_o respect_n to_o every_o thing_n that_o depend_v on_o the_o arbitrary_a will_n of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o our_o duty_n or_o not_o it_o be_v his_o positive_a law_n signify_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n that_o first_o oblige_v we_o and_o then_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o god_n general_n natural_a law_n oblige_v we_o also_o and_o not_o otherwise_o so_o that_o upon_o this_o absurd_a principle_n if_o it_o shall_v prevail_v among_o we_o we_o must_v all_o turn_v seven_o day-man_n and_o quaker_n for_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o any_o or_o all_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n without_o a_o positive_a law_n express_o or_o implicit_o institute_v they_o and_o still_o in_o force_n that_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v the_o christian_a sabbath_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v baptise_a
sanctification_n begin_v or_o continue_v evident_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o there_o prove_v by_o four_o argument_n the_o same_o learned_a author_n a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o same_o book_n page_n 750_o 751._o by_o distinguish_v the_o several_a sense_n in_o which_o the_o word_n gospel_n be_v take_v answer_v all_o that_o mr._n goodwin_n have_v write_v in_o his_o whole_a book_n only_o he_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o body_n but_o a_o flacian_a sectary_n will_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n strict_o and_o proper_o take_v be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o and_o therefore_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o gospel_n strict_o take_v require_v faith_n and_o that_o evangelium_fw-la quocunque_fw-la modo_fw-la acceptum_fw-la habet_fw-la promissiones_fw-la conditionales_fw-la take_v the_o gospel_n which_o way_n soever_o one_o will_n it_o have_v conditional_a promise_n this_o be_v another_o of_o the_o system_n of_o divinity_n that_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o reform_a and_o even_o by_o the_o presbyterian_o in_o scotland_n but_o we_o will_v leave_v the_o german_n and_o come_v to_o our_o own_o country_n man_n and_o see_v what_o their_o judgement_n have_v be_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o i_o will_v begin_v with_o mr._n caryl_n who_o judgement_n i_o hope_v will_v be_v something_o regard_v by_o the_o brethren_n he_o give_v it_o plain_o and_o full_o on_o job_n 42.6_o last_o vol._n in_o quarto_n pag._n 842_o where_o that_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o a_o mean_n of_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o life_n be_v not_o require_v by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n he_o prove_v 1._o by_o scripture_n matth._n 3.2_o 11._o and_o 4.17_o and_o mark_v 6.12_o act_n 2.38_o act_n 20.21_o 2._o he_o say_v it_o be_v through_o the_o gospel_n only_o that_o repentance_n be_v possible_a and_o this_o appear_v two_o way_n 1._o because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o liberty_n to_o repent_v or_o we_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o repent_v but_o by_o the_o gospel_n we_o find_v no_o place_n for_o repentance_n in_o the_o law_n strict_o take_v or_o as_o oppose_v to_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n speak_v thus_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o etc._n etc._n gal._n 3.10_o where_o we_o see_v 1_o the_o law_n require_v personal_a obedience_n every_o one_o must_v do_v for_o himself_o 2._o the_o law_n require_v perpetual_a obedience_n every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o do_v 3._o the_o law_n require_v universal_a obedience_n every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o law_n do_v not_o say_v if_o a_o man_n continue_v not_o to_o do_v all_o let_v he_o repent_v that_o admit_v no_o second_a thought_n but_o clap_v the_o curse_n present_o upon_o the_o offender_n if_o adam_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a tree_n have_v bewail_v his_o sin_n and_o say_v i_o repent_v no_o favour_n can_v have_v be_v show_v he_o while_n under_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o reverend_n mr._n caryl_n whereby_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o do_v not_o oblige_v we_o to_o repentance_n as_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n by_o god_n ordination_n dispose_v we_o to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o acceptance_n with_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o he_o plain_o say_v that_o the_o law_n do_v not_o admit_v we_o to_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o such_o a_o end_n and_o then_o sure_o it_o do_v not_o command_v we_o to_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o such_o a_o end_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n he_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o the_o foresay_a end_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v plain_o on_o our_o side_n against_o my_o reverend_a brother_n so_o be_v the_o reverend_a author_n of_o the_o assembly_n annotation_n annotation_n on_o mark_n 1.15_o repent_v you_o faith_n and_o repentance_n say_v they_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o same_o annotator_n in_o their_o annotation_n on_o act_n 17.30_o but_o now_o he_o command_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v they_o say_v now_o he_o cause_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n to_o draw_v they_o from_o their_o horrible_a sin_n and_o now_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o do_v the_o know_a will_n of_o their_o master_n they_o must_v expect_v more_o severe_a judgement_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o divine_n the_o command_n to_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n otherwise_o their_o annotation_n have_v be_v impertinent_a yea_o it_o have_v be_v a_o wrest_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o a_o pervert_n of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n which_o they_o design_v to_o explain_v but_o some_o may_v demand_v whether_o our_o protestant_a divine_n use_v to_o say_v that_o true_a repentance_n be_v a_o condition_n require_v of_o we_o as_o necessary_a yea_o and_o as_o antecedent_o necessary_a in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n i_o answer_v yea_o they_o do_v use_v to_o say_v so_o and_o some_o of_o they_o prove_v it_o too_o witness_v the_o same_o assembly_n annotation_n on_o mark_n 1._o ver_fw-la 4._o john_n do_v preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n on_o these_o word_n they_o have_v this_o note_n repentance_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o inseparable_a condition_n of_o sin_n remission_n and_o on_o act_n 5.31_o where_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o give_v repentance_n etc._n etc._n their_o note_n be_v this_o christ_n give_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n and_o hereunto_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n most_o certain_o annex_v and_o pool_n annotation_n on_o christ_n word_n matth._n 9.13_o but_o i_o be_o come_v to_o call_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n they_o have_v this_o note_n but_o sensible_a sinner_n to_o repentance_n first_o to_o repentance_n then_o to_o the_o receive_a remission_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n witness_v also_o 2._o dr_n rivet_n and_o mr._n anthony_n burgess_n both_o at_o once_o for_o thus_o burgess_n quote_v rivet_n with_o approbation_n we_o have_v other_o orthodox_n writer_n speak_v more_o consonant_o to_o truth_n deny_v that_o future_a sin_n be_v forgive_v 244._o burgesses_n true_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n assert_v etc._n etc._n in_o 30._o lecture_n pag._n 244._o before_o commit_v and_o repent_v of_o when_o grotius_n have_v object_v that_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n be_v peccata_fw-la condonari_fw-la antequam_fw-la fiant_fw-la that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v before_o they_o be_v commit_v rivet_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pag._n 467._o repli_v imo_fw-la id_fw-la nos_fw-la absurdissimum_fw-la credimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n yea_o we_o think_v such_o a_o doctrine_n most_o absurd_a and_o the_o imputation_n of_o it_o to_o we_o most_o unjust_a those_o that_o know_v god_n have_v decree_v from_o eternity_n to_o pardon_v sin_n upon_o the_o condition_n of_o repentance_n those_o that_o know_v god_n have_v not_o decree_v the_o end_n without_o the_o mean_n will_v never_o ascribe_v to_o themselves_o pardon_v of_o sin_n without_o these_o exercise_n of_o repentance_n mr._n burgess_n go_v on_o with_o rivet_n and_o say_v thus_o the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 533._o absurdum_fw-la est_fw-la credere_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v absurd_a say_v he_o to_o believe_v a_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o commit_v for_o neither_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n be_v there_o a_o actual_a remission_n decree_v without_o repentance_n precede_v remission_n again_o the_o same_o burgess_n in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 270._o give_v we_o his_o own_o judgement_n by_o itself_o in_o these_o follow_a word_n there_o be_v in_o scripture_n a_o twofold_a repentance_n or_o humiliation_n for_o sin_n the_o one_o antecedent_n and_o go_v before_o pardon_n and_o this_o the_o scripture_n require_v as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n without_o which_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n can_v be_v obtain_v of_o this_o repentance_n the_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o part_n speak_v ezek_n 18.30_o matth._n 3.2_o mark_v 6.12_o luke_n 13.3_o act_n 3.19_o and_o general_o in_o most_o place_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o now_o it_o appear_v that_o both_o rivet_n and_o burgess_n hold_v that_o true_a repentance_n be_v require_v as_o a_o condition_n or_o mean_n antecedent_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n necessary_a to_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n our_o three_o witness_n be_v the_o learned_a prudent_a pious_a and_o peaceable_a mr._n durham_n who_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o revelation_n have_v a_o large_a discourse_n concern_v repentance_n where_o 1._o he_o distinguish_v and_o show_v what_o repentance_n it_o be_v which_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o pardon_v of_o sin_n 2._o he_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v
law_n of_o work_n this_o be_v brief_o explain_v and_o prove_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 200_o 201._o and_o it_o may_v be_v further_o confirm_v if_o it_o be_v needful_a but_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a because_o to_o a_o man_n who_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n and_o understand_v the_o nature_n of_o that_o first_o law_n as_o every_o man_n of_o common_a understanding_n may_v do_v it_o be_v self-evident_a that_o that_o law_n condemn_v he_o to_o death_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o that_o it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o be_v justify_v unto_o life_n by_o that_o very_a law_n which_o every_o moment_n condemn_v he_o to_o death_n and_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o first_o law_n or_o covenant_n of_o work_n as_o fortify_v with_o its_o promissory_a sanction_n be_v repeat_v both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n where_o the_o scripture_n say_v to_o sinful_a man_n do_v this_o and_o live_v levit._n 18.5_o rom._n 10.5_o gal._n 3.12_o but_o we_o must_v know_v that_o this_o be_v occonomical_a and_o god_n design_n in_o it_o be_v not_o to_o oblige_v any_o sinful_a man_n to_o seek_v or_o expect_v life_n by_o his_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o first_o law_n and_o covenant_n which_o promise_v life_n to_o man_n only_o on_o condition_n that_o he_o so_o keep_v it_o as_o never_o to_o sin_v at_o all_o nor_o by_o sin_n to_o break_v it_o but_o than_o you_o will_v say_v what_o be_v god_n design_n in_o it_o i_o answer_v that_o so_o far_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o light_n to_o see_v into_o this_o matter_n his_o design_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v 1_o by_o set_v before_o we_o the_o form_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o work_n to_o recall_v to_o our_o mind_n what_o man_n once_o be_v and_o what_o he_o shall_v still_o have_v be_v that_o once_o he_o be_v without_o all_o sin_n and_o able_a to_o have_v continue_v so_o and_o to_o have_v live_v for_o ever_o by_o keep_v covenant_n with_o god_n 2._o to_o convince_v we_o that_o now_o we_o be_v all_o in_o our_o natural_a state_n dead_a man_n by_o that_o very_a law_n and_o covenant_n which_o will_v have_v secure_v life_n to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v perfect_o keep_v it_o but_o now_o bring_v we_o all_o under_o the_o guilt_n of_o death_n temporal_a and_o eternal_a death_n because_o we_o have_v break_v it_o 3._o to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o confess_v our_o sin_n and_o misery_n and_o to_o put_v we_o upon_o search_v whether_o god_n have_v in_o mercy_n provide_v any_o remedy_n against_o our_o sin_n and_o misery_n 4._o to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o receive_v and_o use_v the_o remedy_n as_o soon_o as_o god_n discover_v it_o to_o we_o in_o a_o word_n to_o make_v we_o despair_v of_o ever_o obtain_v life_n by_o the_o work_v of_o that_o law_n which_o condemn_v we_o to_o death_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o make_v we_o flee_v for_o refuge_n unto_o christ_n our_o help_n and_o hope_n as_o god_n offer_v he_o to_o we_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n two_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o any_o man_n take_v this_o course_n assoon_o as_o any_o man_n take_v hold_v of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o hearty_o and_o sincere_o by_o faith_n close_v with_o and_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n as_o offer_v and_o hold_v forth_o in_o the_o say_v new_a covenant_n he_o be_v instant_o acquit_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o death_n he_o be_v under_o for_o break_v the_o law_n and_o have_v a_o right_a to_o life_n give_v he_o only_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o lord_n redeemer_n christ_n and_o his_o satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n receive_v and_o apply_v by_o faith_n alone_o and_o so_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n for_o though_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o heart-work_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v not_o any_o of_o those_o work_n which_o the_o first_o covenant_n or_o law_n of_o work_n do_v require_v to_o justification_n it_o be_v neither_o a_o work_n which_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o require_v nor_o yet_o be_v it_o a_o work_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n for_o work_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o law_n and_o covenant_n they_o signify_v that_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n whereby_o a_o man_n in_o his_o own_o person_n fulsill_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o for_o which_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v but_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o work_n in_o that_o sense_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v no_o part_n at_o all_o of_o that_o obedience_n which_o sulfill_v the_o law_n and_o for_o which_o a_o penitent_a believer_n be_v justify_v it_o be_v only_a christ_n obedience_n unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o which_o believer_n be_v justify_v and_o faith_n be_v no_o part_n of_o it_o but_o be_v the_o only_a instrumental_a mean_n or_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n whereby_o we_o come_v to_o have_v interest_n in_o it_o and_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o and_o for_o it_o alone_o 3._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o upon_o our_o first_o take_v hold_n of_o god_n new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n by_o faith_n we_o be_v for_o christ_n sake_n alone_o instant_o acquit_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o death_n and_o receive_v a_o right_n to_o life_n yet_o god_n have_v make_v it_o one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n that_o according_a to_o our_o time_n and_o talent_n we_o must_v afterward_o yield_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o his_o several_a law_n and_o institution_n both_o moral_a natural_a and_o positive_a before_o we_o be_v admit_v to_o full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n in_o heavenly_a glory_n god_n do_v not_o require_v this_o sincere_a obedience_n in_o order_n to_o our_o be_v first_o justify_v but_o in_o order_n to_o our_o be_v at_o last_o glorify_v and_o he_o require_v it_o as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n to_o qualify_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a glory_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o and_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n give_v unto_o we_o hence_o 4._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o thus_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n itself_o come_v to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n so_o far_o as_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o it_o together_o with_o all_o god_n positive_a law_n and_o institution_n be_v make_v a_o article_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o a_o condition_n necessary_a to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o before_o we_o enjoy_v the_o ultimate_a benefit_n promise_v in_o the_o say_a covenant_n 5._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o we_o must_v distinguish_v careful_o betwixt_o what_o the_o moral_a law_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o its_o precept_n require_v of_o believer_n and_o what_o it_o require_v as_o come_v under_o a_o new_a ferm_n that_o be_v plain_o as_o clothe_v with_o a_o new_a sanction_n to_o wit_n the_o sanction_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o moral_a law_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o its_o precept_n do_v still_o require_v of_o all_o even_o of_o believer_n a_o perfect_a ever_o sinless_a obedience_n de_fw-fr futuro_fw-la but_o there_o be_v this_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o case_n of_o believer_n and_o unbeliever_n that_o though_o for_o every_o the_o least_o disobedience_n it_o condemn_v the_o unbeliever_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o nor_o can_v it_o condemn_v the_o true_a penirent_a believer_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o spirit_n because_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.1_o such_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n not_o under_o its_o condemmng_a power_n but_o under_o grace_n rom._n 6.14_o in_o the_o second_o sense_n the_o moral_a law_n formal_o consider_v as_o clothe_v with_o the_o new_a covenant_n form_n that_o be_v with_o the_o sanction_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n so_o it_o require_v not_o of_o true_a penitent_a believer_n a_o ever_o sinless_a and_o most_o perfect_a personal_a perpetual_a obedience_n as_o a_o mean_n or_o condition_n necessary_a to_o qualify_v and_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n but_o it_o require_v of_o they_o or_o god_n by_o it_o as_o take_v into_o the_o gospel_n require_v of_o they_o only_o sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n perseverance_n in_o true_a faith_n and_o sincere_a holiness_n under_o that_o formal_a consideration_n as_o a_o mean_n or_o condition_n necessary_a to_o the_o end_n aforesaid_a
of_o work_n that_o man_n shall_v sin_v no_o more_o for_o the_o future_a but_o its_o condition_n and_o duty_n be_v that_o man_n shall_v never_o once_o sin_n at_o all_o either_o in_o time_n past_a present_a or_o to_o come_v and_o assoon_o as_o he_o have_v once_o sin_v he_o have_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la so_o break_v that_o covenant_n that_o from_o that_o very_a moment_n it_o cease_v to_o be_v unto_o he_o a_o covenant_n of_o life_n for_o ever_o as_o we_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o rutherford_n because_o it_o admit_v of_o no_o repentance_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o pardon_n and_o life_n the_o condition_n then_o and_o duty_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v now_o simple_o impossible_a to_o sinful_a man_n it_o can_v be_v say_v with_o any_o colour_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v perform_v through_o grace_n it_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n as_o moses_n have_v it_o ver_fw-la 14._o the_o word_n be_v very_o nigh_o unto_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v true_a with_o respect_n to_o the_o first_o covenant_n the_o covenant_n of_o work_n the_o perform_n of_o its_o duty_n and_o condition_n be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o sinful_a man_n such_o as_o the_o israelite_n be_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v bring_v near_o unto_o they_o till_o both_o end_n of_o a_o real_a contradiction_n be_v make_v to_o meet_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v make_v to_o be_v and_o not_o to_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n and_o as_o it_o can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v very_o nigh_o so_o it_o can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o mouth_n and_o heart_n of_o sinful_a man_n that_o they_o may_v do_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o man_n mouth_n and_o heart_n to_o do_v that_o which_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n and_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v do_v but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v of_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a covenant_n and_o its_o duty_n and_o condition_n that_o through_o grace_n circumcise_n the_o heart_n to_o love_n god_n the_o word_n be_v very_o nigh_o unto_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o thus_o the_o bless_a apostle_n paul_n understand_v this_o passage_n and_o quote_v the_o sense_n and_o substance_n and_o partly_o the_o very_a word_n of_o moses_n and_o apply_v they_o unto_o and_o affirm_v they_o of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o distinct_a from_o and_o opposite_a unto_o the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n for_o in_o rom._n 10.5_o the_o apostle_n first_o show_v out_o of_o levit._n 18.5_o in_o what_o form_n of_o word_n moses_n describe_v the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o its_o righteonsness_n that_o the_o man_n which_o do_v those_o thing_n shall_v live_v by_o they_o second_o in_o for_fw-mi 6_o 7._o &c_n &c_n he_o do_v himself_o out_o of_o moses_n deut._n 30._o for_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o describe_v and_o explain_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o its_o righteousness_n he_o call_v it_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v how_o we_o obtain_v it_o by_o christ_n purchase_n it_o for_o we_o and_o give_v it_o unto_o we_o we_o receive_v it_o by_o faith_n and_o show_v our_o faith_n and_o thankfulness_n for_o it_o by_o confess_v he_o who_o purchase_v it_o which_o imply_v a_o steadfast_a cleave_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o purpose_n of_o heart_n against_o all_o temptation_n to_o the_o contrary_n for_o these_o reason_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o covenant_n in_o deut._n 29._o and_o 30._o chapter_n be_v not_o the_o first_o covenant_n or_o law_n of_o work_n but_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n and_o this_o be_v no_o new_a opinion_n of_o my_o invent_v but_o be_v the_o real_a truth_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v from_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n and_o a_o truth_n also_o now_o common_o receive_v by_o the_o orthodox_n i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v some_o learned_a man_n of_o a_o different_a judgement_n the_o arminian_o be_v of_o that_o sort_n and_o particular_o episcopius_n as_o appear_v from_o his_o paraphrase_n and_o observation_n on_o rom_n 10._o for_o 5_o 6_o 8._o which_o exposition_n of_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v found_v upon_o that_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o the_o covenant_n of_o which_o moses_n speak_v there_o or_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n do_v not_o promise_v eternal_a life_n but_o only_o a_o temporal_a prosperous_a life_n in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n to_o they_o who_o sincere_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v the_o law_n give_v they_o by_o moses_n 5.39_o see_v mat._n 19.16_o 17._o joh._n 5.39_o which_o i_o think_v be_v contrary_a to_o gal._n 3.11_o 12._o for_o the_o life_n which_o the_o apostle_n deny_v to_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v obtain_v by_o the_o law_n because_o all_o man_n have_v break_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o that_o life_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v obtain_v by_o faith_n therefore_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o eternal_a life_n likewise_o which_o he_o deny_v to_o be_v obtainable_a by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o so_o obtainable_a be_v because_o no_o man_n do_v or_o can_v keep_v the_o law_n so_o as_o not_o to_o fall_v under_o its_o curse_n even_o such_o a_o curse_n as_o christ_n redeem_v from_o gal._n 3.10_o and_o 13._o compare_v the_o apostle_n say_v ver_fw-la 21._o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o law_n give_v which_o can_v have_v give_v life_n very_o righteousness_n shall_v have_v be_v by_o the_o law_n he_o do_v not_o any_o where_n say_v that_o the_o law_n can_v not_o give_v eternal_a life_n because_o it_o have_v no_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o elsewhere_o to_o wit_n in_o rom._n 8.3_o he_o assign_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o law_n of_o work_n can_v not_o give_v life_n eternal_a life_n even_o because●_n it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n it_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o man_n that_o disable_v the_o law_n of_o work_n that_o it_o can_v not_o give_v that_o eternal_a life_n which_o after_o the_o fall_v it_o promise_v only_o oeconomical_o that_o be_v it_o propose_v and_o set_v eternal_a life_n before_o man_n eye_n in_o a_o form_n of_o word_n which_o before_o the_o fall_n be_v real_o promissory_a of_o eternal_a life_n upon_o a_o possible_a condition_n but_o after_o the_o fall_n do_v but_o serve_v to_o remind_v we_o what_o man_n once_o be_v and_o what_o he_o shall_v still_o have_v be_v what_o he_o may_v have_v do_v and_o what_o he_o may_v have_v attain_v unto_o by_o do_v but_o that_o have_v break_v that_o covenant_n we_o be_v all_o liable_a to_o eternal_a death_n and_o can_v never_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n by_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o seek_v eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n by_o christ_n only_o upon_o the_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o new_a law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o be_v more_o full_o explain_v before_o this_o only_a i_o brief_o hint_n on_o the_o by_o i_o hope_v the_o r._n brother_n with_o who_o i_o have_v to_o do_v will_v not_o flee_v from_o i_o into_o the_o arminian_n camp_n and_o from_o thence_o come_v out_o against_o i_o clad_v with_o their_o golia●s_n armour_n for_o it_o will_v not_o well_o become_v mr._n goodwin_n though_o he_o can_v dexterous_o serve_v himself_o with_o it_o which_o yet_o be_v very_o questionable_a but_o let_v he_o do_v in_o that_o matter_n as_o best_o please_v he_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o abide_v where_o i_o be_o in_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o orthodox_n and_o thence_o i_o oppose_v the_o authority_n and_o reason_n of_o fr._n junius_n in_o his_o parallel_n second_o book_n and_o sixteenth_o parallel_n where_o he_o explain_v rom._n 10.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o by_o compare_v it_o with_o leviticus_n the_o 18_o and_o deuteronomy_n the_o 30_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o junius_n be_v the_o learned_a professor_n of_o saumur_n stephanus_n de_fw-fr brais_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o paraphrase_n and_o note_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o paraphrase_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n pag._n 336_o 337._o rutherford_n be_v also_o of_o that_o mind_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o these_o his_o word_n this_o covenant_n to_o wit_n of_o grace_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o circumcise_a heart_n deut._n 30.6_o and_o of_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v near_o in_o the_o mouth_n and_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n clear_o difference_v
from_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n by_o do_v for_o so_o paul_n 61._o covenant_n of_o life_n open_v part._n 1._o pag._n 61._o rom._n 10.5_o 6_o 7._o etc._n etc._n expound_v moses_n deut._n 30_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o thus_o rutherford_n i_o may_v bring_v many_o other_o agree_v with_o these_o but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o a_o sew_v as_o friedlibius_n who_o though_o a_o lutheran_n yet_o in_o answer_n to_o a_o objection_n of_o beauty_n from_o deut_n 30.11_o 12_o say_v 302._o say_v loquor_fw-la moses_n non_fw-la de_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la legis_fw-la sed_fw-la evangelii_n rom._n 10.6_o 7_o 8._o cvi_fw-la per_fw-la gratiam_fw-la divinam_fw-la in_o hâc_fw-la vitâ_fw-la facilè_fw-la obedientia_fw-la praestari_fw-la potest_fw-la p._n h._n friedlib_n theolog._n exegeticae_fw-la tom._n 1._o in_o vet_z t._n edit_n 2._o an._n 1660._o p._n 301_o 302._o moses_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n but_o of_o the_o gospel_n rom._n 10.6_o 7_o 8._o which_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v easy_o obey_v in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o new_a england_n elder_n by_o the_o covenant_n in_o duty_n 29._o and_o 30._o chap._n understand_v the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n for_o thus_o they_o write_v 4._o the_o synod_n of_o elder_n and_o messenger_n of_o the_o church_n in_o massachuse●s_n colony_n etc._n etc._n in_o their_o proposition_n concern_v the_o subject_a of_o baptism_n and_o consociation_n of_o church_n print_v at_o cambridge_n in_o new-england_n 1662._o pa._n 4._o they_o that_o according_a to_o scripture_n be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n they_o be_v in_o covenant_n for_o it_o be_v the_o covenant_n that_o constitute_v the_o church_n duet_n 29.12_o 13._o they_o must_v enter_v into_o covenant_n that_o they_o may_v be_v establish_v the_o people_n or_o church_n of_o god_n whence_o i_o observe_v that_o the_o synod_n believe_v that_o the_o covenant_n mention_v in_o deut._n 29.12_o 13._o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o then_o in_o its_o legal_a administration_n again_o that_o confederation_fw-mi say_v they_o i_o e_z covenant_v explicit_a or_o implicit_a the_o latter_a preserve_v the_o essence_n of_o confederation_n the_o former_a be_v duty_n and_o most_o desirable_a be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 6._o ibid._n pa._n 5_o 6._o appear_v 1._o because_o the_o church_n be_v constitute_v by_o covenant_n for_o there_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n the_o mutual_a engagement_n and_o relation_n of_o king_n and_o sabject_n husband_n and_o spouse_n this_o can_v be_v but_o by_o covenant_n internal_a if_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n external_a of_o the_o visible_a a_o church_n be_v a_o company_n that_o can_v say_v god_n be_v our_o god_n and_o we_o be_v his_o people_n this_o be_v from_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o they_o deut._n 29.12_o 13._o ezek._n 16.8_o 2_o the_o church_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o covenant_n gen._n 17._o deut._n 29._o and_o be_v reform_v still_o by_o renew_v of_o the_o covenant_n 2_o chron._n 15.12_o and_o 23.16_o and_o 34.31_o 32._o neh._n 9_o 38._o now_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n stand_v upon_o the_o same_o basis_n or_o root_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o therefore_o be_v constitute_v by_o covenant_n as_o that_o be_v rom._n 11.17_o 18._o eph._n 2.11_o 12_o 19_o and_o 3.6_o heb._n 8.10_o again_o deut._n 30.6_o the_o grace_n signify_v by_o circumcision_n be_v say_v they_o there_o promise_v to_o parent_n and_o child_n 8._o ibid._n pag._n 8._o import_v the_o covenant_n to_o both_o with_o circumcision_n seal_v gen_n 17._o and_o that_o be_v a_o gospel_n promise_n as_o the_o apostle_n cite_v part_n of_o that_o context_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n show_v rom._n 10.6_o 8._o compare_v with_o deut._n 30.11_o 14._o and_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o latter_a day_n ver_fw-la 1_o 5._o this_o last_o clause_n remind_v i_o of_o the_o word_n of_o paulus_n fagius_n one_o of_o our_o reformer_n who_o say_v deut._n say_v diligenter_n observandum_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la consensu_fw-la hebraeorum_n caput_fw-la hoc_fw-la ad_fw-la regnum_fw-la christi_fw-la pertinere_fw-la vnde_fw-la etiam_fw-la bechai_n dicit_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la promissionem_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la rege_fw-la messiab_n omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la foedere_fw-la sunt_fw-la circumcisio_fw-la cordis_fw-la contingat_fw-la citans_fw-la joelem_fw-la cap._n 2._o paulus_n fagius_n in_o annot._n ad_fw-la onkeli_fw-la paraphrasin_n chald._a cap._n 30._o deut._n it_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o 30_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomy_n belong_v to_o the_o ringdom_n of_o christ_n whence_o also_o rabbi_n bechai_n say_v that_o here_o be_v a_o promise_n that_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o messiah_n all_o that_o be_v of_o the_o covenant_n shall_v be_v circumcise_v in_o heart_n quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o second_o chapter_n of_o joel_n i_o shall_v shut_v up_o this_o with_o the_o annotation_n of_o mr._n pool_n on_o deut._n 30.11_o for_o this_o commandment_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n simple_o or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v mollify_v and_o accompany_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o god_n circumcise_v man_n heart_n to_o do_v this_o as_o be_v express_v ver_fw-la 6._o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o although_o the_o practice_n of_o god_n law_n strict_o and_o severe_o be_v now_o far_o from_o we_o and_o above_o our_o strength_n yet_o consider_v the_o advantage_n of_o gospel_n grace_n whereby_o god_n enable_v we_o in_o some_o measure_n to_o our_o duty_n and_o accept_v of_o our_o sincere_a endeavour_n instead_o of_o perfection_n and_o impute_v christ_n perfect_a righteousness_n to_o we_o that_o believe_v now_o it_o be_v near_o and_o easy_a to_o we_o and_o so_o this_o place_n well_o agree_v with_o rom._n 10.6_o etc._n etc._n where_o s._n paul_n expound_v or_o apply_v this_o place_n to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o alone_o the_o law_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v here_o describe_v thus_o pool_n with_o who_o agree_v the_o annotation_n on_o rom._n 10._o ver_fw-la 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o in_o the_o second_o vol._n of_o pool_n annotation_n from_o all_o which_o it_o plain_o appear_v to_o i_o that_o moses_n in_o deut._n 30._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n but_o of_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o law_n as_o take_v into_o the_o gospel_n and_o as_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n be_v make_v a_o duty_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o a_o three_o divine_a testimony_n that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v of_o we_o some_o duty_n i_o may_v also_o prove_v this_o from_o the_o 19_o and_o 119._o psalm_n which_o mr._n goodwin_n acknowledge_v to_o contain_v a_o description_n of_o the_o gospel_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o if_o that_o be_v true_a it_o be_v clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n 10._o see_v his_o discourse_n pag._n 8_o 9_o 10._o let_v any_o man_n of_o ordinary_a sense_n and_o reason_n but_o read_v those_o two_o psalm_n and_o i_o appeal_v to_o his_o own_o conscience_n whether_o he_o do_v not_o there_o meet_v with_o precept_n require_v duty_n mr._n goodwin_n i_o be_o sure_o do_v there_o meet_v with_o precept_n even_o where_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o judgement_n be_v describe_v witness_v his_o discourse_n pag._n 9_o lin_v 39_o 40_o 41._o and_o he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o he_o can_v see_v precept_n there_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o he_o can_v see_v the_o wood_n for_o tree_n indeed_o such_o a_o man_n may_v say_v any_o thing_n nor_o be_v any_o thing_n he_o say_v to_o be_v regard_v because_o he_o say_v it_o for_o he_o must_v have_v lose_v his_o sense_n a_o four_o divine_a testimony_n for_o this_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o may_v find_v in_o micah_n the_o 6._o ver_fw-la 8._o even_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o late_a reverend_a mr._n danson_n who_o before_o he_o take_v his_o leave_n teach_v my_o r_n brother_n that_o wholesome_a lesson_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v exact_o that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n consider_v we_o then_o what_o the_o prophet_n micah_n say_v ver_fw-la 8._o he_o have_v show_v thou_o o_o man_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v of_o thou_o but_o to_o do_v just_o and_o
indisciplinatis_fw-la condignam_fw-la tradens_fw-la legem_fw-la liberis_fw-la autem_fw-la &_o side_n justificatis_fw-la congruentia_fw-la dans_fw-fr praecepta_fw-la filiis_fw-la adaperiens_fw-la svam_fw-la haereditatem_fw-la iren._n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la lib_n 4._o c._n 21._o the_o lord_n be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n who_o rule_v all_o his_o father_n house_n giving_z indeed_o to_o the_o servant_n and_o those_o who_o be_v yet_o undisciplined_a a_o law_n fit_a for_o they_o but_o to_o they_o who_o be_v free_a and_o justify_v by_o faith_n he_o give_v suitable_a precept_n and_o to_o the_o child_n make_v know_v their_o inheritance_n here_o irenaeus_n distinguish_v between_o the_o unconvert_v and_o the_o law_n they_o be_v under_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o convert_v justify_v and_o adopt_v and_o the_o precept_n they_o be_v under_o on_o the_o other_o and_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o unconvert_v be_v yet_o under_o the_o law_n of_o work_n which_o rigorous_o exact_v duty_n and_o service_n of_o they_o and_o condemn_v they_o for_o every_o sin_n they_o commit_v but_o that_o the_o convert_v justify_v and_o adopt_v be_v not_o under_o the_o rigorous_a exaction_n and_o condemn_a power_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o they_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n they_o be_v actual_o in_o a_o covenant_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n which_o do_v indeed_o prescribe_v duty_n to_o they_o but_o not_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o and_o for_o their_o duty_n of_o obedience_n for_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o to_o be_v the_o way_n for_o they_o to_o walk_v in_o and_o the_o mean_n to_o qualify_v and_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n which_o by_o their_o justification_n and_o adoption_n they_o have_v a_o right_n unto_o and_o which_o in_o the_o way_n of_o holy_a obedience_n to_o the_o preceptive_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o assure_v they_o of_o by_o the_o promise_v of_o the_o gospel_n that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n appear_v from_o his_o word_n aforesaid_a and_o from_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n concern_v the_o two_o covenant_n or_o his_o word_n may_v refer_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o their_o law_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o to_o the_o christian_n with_o their_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n on_o the_o other_o again_o in_o another_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o write_v thus_o 22._o thus_o consummatae_fw-la vitæ_fw-la praecepta_fw-la in_o utroque_fw-la testamento_fw-la cum_fw-la sunt_fw-la eadem_fw-la eundem_fw-la ostenderunt_fw-la deum_fw-la qui_fw-la particularia_fw-la quidem_fw-la pracepta_fw-la apta_fw-la utrisque_fw-la proeceptis_fw-la sed_fw-la eminentiora_fw-la &_o summa_fw-la sine_fw-la quibus_fw-la salvari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la in_fw-la utroque_fw-la eadem_fw-la suasit_fw-la iren._n advers._fw-la haereses_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 22._o see_v the_o precept_n of_o a_o perfect_a life_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o testament_n they_o show_v that_o the_o same_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o both_o the_o testament_n who_o have_v indeed_o prescribe_v particular_a precept_n suitable_a to_o both_o the_o covenant_n but_o the_o more_o eminent_a and_o principal_a precept_n without_o which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v save_v be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o testament_n or_o covenant_n here_o be_v several_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o understand_v this_o passage_n of_o irenaeus_n which_o though_o in_o the_o translation_n which_o we_o have_v it_o be_v not_o elegant_o express_v yet_o it_o bear_v a_o good_a and_o useful_a sense_n 1._o then_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o irenaeus_n the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n be_v common_a to_o both_o covenant_n the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a 2._o that_o he_o call_v the_o two_o testament_n or_o covenant_n precept_n and_o therefore_o i_o translate_v particularia_fw-la praecepta_fw-la apta_fw-la utrisque_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la particular_a precept_n suitable_a to_o both_o the_o covenant_n and_o to_o translate_v they_o otherwise_o will_v render_v they_o unintelligible_a now_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n give_v why_o he_o call_v the_o two_o covenant_n precept_n but_o because_o they_o both_o have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n 3._o observe_v that_o he_o say_v god_n prescribe_v particular_a precept_n suitable_a to_o both_o covenant_n and_o these_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o god_n positive_a law_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o legal_a administration_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o be_v now_o abrogate_a and_o the_o positive_a institution_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o evangelical_n administration_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o be_v now_o in_o force_n observe_v 4._o that_o according_a to_o he_o without_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o more_o eminent_a and_o principal_a precept_n that_o be_v the_o precept_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n a_o man_n can_v be_v save_v 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v true_a of_o man_n at_o age_n for_o according_a to_o their_o time_n and_o talent_n after_o their_o conversion_n and_o justification_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n in_o order_n to_o their_o obtain_n possession_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o hence_o in_o another_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v 31._o say_v non_fw-la indigebat_fw-la deus_fw-la dilectione_n hominis_fw-la deerat_fw-la autem_fw-la homini_fw-la gloria_fw-la dei_fw-la quam_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la poterat_fw-la percipere_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la eam_fw-la obsequentiam_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la erga_fw-la deum_fw-la idem_fw-la ibid._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 31._o god_n need_v not_o man_n love_n but_o man_n want_v the_o glory_n which_o be_v from_o god_n which_o he_o can_v no_o way_n attain_v unto_o but_o by_o that_o obedience_n which_o be_v towards_o god_n he_o mean_v that_o man_n can_v obtain_v eternal_a glory_n in_o heaven_n but_o by_o obedience_n evangelical_n not_o as_o the_o procure_n merit_a cause_n of_o glory_n but_o only_o as_o the_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v on_o our_o part_n and_o the_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o to_o qualify_v we_o for_o glory_n to_o be_v give_v we_o according_a to_o promise_v free_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o as_o a_o testimony_n of_o our_o gratitude_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n 20._o see_v lib._n 3._o c._n 20._o this_o be_v manifest_a from_o what_o he_o write_v in_o the_o 28_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o four_o book_n and_o in_o the_o 47th_o chapter_n where_o he_o say_v express_o that_o the_o 47._o the_o mors_fw-la domini_fw-la est_fw-la salvatio_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la credunt_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 47._o lord_n death_n be_v the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o yet_o both_o there_o and_o elsewhere_o he_o maintain_v that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o observe_v the_o precept_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n in_o order_n to_o our_o obtain_n life_n and_o salvation_n yea_o in_o the_o 27_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n he_o say_v that_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n 27._o covenant_n necesse_fw-la fuit_fw-la superextendi_fw-la decreta_fw-la libertatis_fw-la &_o augeri_fw-la subjectionem_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la erg●_fw-la regem_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la retrorsus_fw-la quis_fw-la renitens_fw-la indignus_fw-la appareat_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la liberaverit_fw-la iren._n l._n 4._o c._n 27._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o decree_n or_o statute_n of_o liberty_n i._n e._n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n and_o redemption_n shall_v be_v superextend_v i._n e._n shall_v be_v enlarge_v above_o what_o they_o be_v before_o and_o that_o the_o subjection_n which_o be_v to_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v increase_v that_o man_n by_o resist_v and_o draw_v baok_n may_v not_o be_v find_v unworthy_a of_o and_o unthankful_a to_o he_o who_o redeem_v he_o in_o a_o word_n irenaeus_n go_v further_a in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n that_o require_v duty_n than_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o follow_v he_o so_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n which_o require_v duty_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n or_o bare_a narrative_a that_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o in_o irenoeus_n time_n there_o can_v any_o be_v find_v that_o be_v of_o this_o absurd_a opinion_n except_o the_o vile_a gnostic_n who_o practice_n be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o such_o a_o principle_n that_o the_o gospel_n require_v no_o duty_n and_o for_o the_o law_n it_o can_v do_v a_o man_n no_o hurt_n if_o he_o be_v once_o a_o true_a believer_n how_o loose_o soever_o he_o live_v as_o libertine_n think_v my_o three_o witness_n be_v cyprian_a who_o say_v 1678._o say_v ut_fw-la de_fw-la co_fw-la ad_fw-la vitalia_fw-la praecepta_fw-la instrui_fw-la possent_fw-la &_o discerent_fw-la quae_fw-la docerent_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la usro_fw-la
our_o purpose_n to_o transcribe_v here_o some_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o nine_o book_n of_o a_o work_n of_o theodoret_n which_o he_o entitle_v concern_v the_o cure_n of_o the_o affection_n and_o prejudices_fw-la of_o the_o greek_n or_o heathen_n for_o thus_o that_o most_o learned_a bishop_n write_v those_o our_o fisherman_n and_o publican_n and_o that_o our_o tentmaker_n bring_v the_o gospel-law_n into_o all_o nation_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o and_o more_o which_o he_o have_v there_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o bibliander_n there_o speak_v of_o christ_n not_o simple_o as_o god_n but_o as_o mediatorial_n king_n and_o judge_n and_o as_o such_o a_o king_n and_o judge_n give_v and_o execute_v law_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o gospel_n and_o so_o theodoret_n call_v they_o my_o second_o witness_n be_v the_o famous_a and_o learned_a zach._n 127._o ursin_n sum_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o english_a print_v at_o london_n an._n 1645_o pag._n 2._o ibid._n pag._n 126._o ib._n p._n 125_o 127._o vrsinus_n mention_v before_o his_o word_n be_v the_o law_n promise_v life_n with_o condition_n of_o perfect_a obedience_n the_o gospel_n promise_v the_o same_o life_n on_o condition_n of_o our_o stedsast_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o inchoation_n or_o beginning_n of_o new_a obedience_n unto_o god_n again_o the_o old_n and_o new_a covenant_n i.e._n the_o same_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o its_o old_a and_o new_a manner_n of_o administration_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o in_o both_o god_n require_v of_o man_n faith_n and_o obedience_n walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a gen._n 17.1_o and_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n mark_v 1.15_o and_o again_o they_o differ_v 7._o in_o their_o bond_n or_o manner_n of_o bind_v the_o old_a covenant_n bind_v they_o to_o the_o sincere_a obedience_n of_o the_o whole_a moysaicall_a law_n moral_n ceremonial_a and_o civil_a the_o new_a bind_v we_o only_o to_o the_o moral_a or_o spiritual_a law_n and_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n take_v for_o the_o gespel_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o resormed_a divine_n who_o mr._n goodwin_n quote_v against_o i_o but_o let_v any_o man_n read_v and_o consider_v what_o i_o have_v quote_v here_o out_o of_o vrsin_n and_o what_o follow_v in_o pag._n 131._o of_o which_o i_o quote_v some_o part_n before_o and_o i_o dare_v refer_v it_o to_o his_o own_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v any_o whether_o vrsin_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n or_o narrative_n which_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o nay_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o my_o brethren_n whether_o vrsin_n be_v not_o so_o far_o from_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o flacian_a sectary_n which_o he_o zealous_o refute_v as_o be_v manifest_a from_o what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o before_o and_o from_o what_o he_o say_v more_o 131._o ibid._n p._n 131._o in_o the_o same_o place_n my_o three_o witness_n be_v polanus_fw-la who_o write_v thus_o 176._o thus_o foedus_fw-la gratiae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la deus_fw-la nobis_fw-la promittit_fw-la se_fw-la fore_fw-la deum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la gratis_o propter_fw-la christum_fw-la nos_fw-la vero_fw-la vicissim_fw-la obligati_fw-la sumus_fw-la ut_fw-la dei_fw-la popul_fw-la 〈◊〉_d simus_fw-la 20._o capita_n sive_fw-la articuli_fw-la ejus_fw-la duo_fw-la sunt_fw-la unum_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la dei_fw-la alterum_fw-la ex_fw-la nostra_fw-la parte_fw-la 21._o exit_fw-la parte_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la gratuita_fw-la promissio_fw-la qua_fw-la deus_fw-la nobis_fw-la pollicetur_fw-la se_fw-la deum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la sore_n etc._n etc._n 28._o alterum_fw-la caput_fw-la foederis_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la nostra_fw-la parte_fw-la obligatio_fw-la qua_fw-la deus_fw-la nos_fw-la sibi_fw-la obstrinxit_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsi_fw-la populus_fw-la simus_fw-la 29._o dei_fw-la populum_fw-la esse_fw-la est_fw-la ambulare_fw-la coram_fw-la deo_fw-la cum_fw-la integritate_fw-la gen_n 17.1_o seu_fw-la vivere_fw-la sub_fw-la oculis_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la bonos_fw-es liberos_fw-la decet_fw-la 30._o quod_fw-la fit_a viva_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la side_n &_o obedientiâ_fw-la legis_fw-la etc._n etc._n amand._n polan_n syllog_n thes_n theolog._n contra_fw-la bellarm._n part._n 2._o de_fw-fr foedere_fw-la inter_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o homines_fw-la thes_n 19_o 20_o 21_o 28_o 29_o 30._o pag._n 174_o 175_o 176._o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v that_o wherein_o god_n promise_v to_o we_o that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n free_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o we_o again_o be_v oblige_v to_o be_v his_o people_n the_o head_n or_o article_n of_o it_o be_v two_o one_o on_o god_n part_n the_o other_o on_o our_o part_n on_o god_n part_n it_o be_v a_o free_a promise_n whereby_o god_n promise_v to_o we_o to_o be_v our_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o other_o head_n or_o article_n of_o the_o covenant_n it_o be_v a_o obligation_n on_o our_o part_n whereby_o god_n have_v bind_v we_o to_o himself_o to_o be_v his_o people_n to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v to_o walk_v before_o god_n with_o integrity_n gen._n 17.1_o or_o to_o live_v under_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n as_o become_v good_a child_n which_o be_v do_v by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o god_n and_o observance_n of_o his_o law_n thus_o polanus_fw-la whereby_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o he_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n my_o four_o witness_n be_v melancthon_n who_o long_o before_o polanus_fw-la teach_v this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v so_o graft_v into_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o it_o be_v make_v one_o article_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n his_o word_n be_v 210._o be_v ut_fw-la in_o multis_fw-la naturae_fw-la partibus_fw-la admirandae_fw-la imagine_v magnarum_fw-la reium_fw-la sunt_fw-la propositae_fw-la sic_fw-la mirifica_fw-la est_fw-la amiciria_fw-la in_o naturâ_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la mutuum_fw-la ●edus_fw-la inter_fw-la oleam_fw-la &_o vitem_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la incolumis_fw-la manet_fw-la vitis_fw-la si_fw-la inseratur_fw-la oleae_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la novas_fw-la 〈◊〉_d accipir_n &_o tum_fw-la uvas_fw-la tum_fw-la olivas_fw-la gignit_fw-la seu_fw-la uvas_fw-la pariter_fw-la uvarum_fw-la &_o olivarum_fw-la japore_fw-la ●referen●es_fw-la imago_fw-la illustris_fw-la est_fw-la oleae_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la evangelio_n insita_fw-la legis_fw-la doctrina_fw-la fit_a mitior_fw-la sic_fw-la enin_n demum_fw-la &_o ●choatur_fw-la obedientia_fw-la &_o placet_fw-la deo_fw-la cum_fw-la evangelio_n insita_fw-la est_fw-la phil._n melanct._n in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr sympath_n ●om_n 4._o declam_n 210._o as_o in_o many_o part_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v propose_v admirable_a image_n or_o representation_n of_o great_a thing_n so_o there_o be_v a_o wonderful_a friendship_n in_o nature_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o mutual_a covenant_n between_o the_o olive_n and_o vinetree_n for_o if_o the_o vine_n be_v graft_v into_o the_o olivetree_n it_o not_o only_o remain_v safe_a and_o life_n but_o it_o also_o receive_v new_a strength_n and_o bring_v forth_o both_o grape_n and_o olive_n or_o grape_n which_o have_v the_o savour_n and_o taste_n both_o of_o grape_n and_o olive_n it_o be_v a_o illustrious_a or_o clear_a image_n and_o representation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n be_v ingraft_v in_o o_o the_o olivetree_n that_o be_v into_o the_o gospel_n it_o become_v mild_a for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o then_o obedience_n be_v begin_v and_o please_v god_n when_o it_o be_v ingraft_v into_o the_o gospel_n thus_o melancthon_n show_v by_o a_o elegant_a similitude_n how_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v take_v into_o the_o gospel-covenant_n whereby_o it_o be_v otherwise_o modify_v than_o it_o be_v as_o it_o pertain_v to_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o come_v under_o a_o new_a form_n and_o sanction_n by_o which_o mean_v our_o obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v accept_v as_o please_v to_o god_n through_o christ_n if_o it_o be_v sincere_a though_o it_o be_v imperfect_a let_v those_o who_o have_v the_o book_n see_v what_o christopher_n pezelius_n say_v upon_o this_o i_o will_v quote_v a_o few_o of_o his_o word_n 168._o word_n lex_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la nihil_fw-la novit_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la merito_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-la efficaciâ_fw-la filii_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr beneficiis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la qui_fw-la essunditur_fw-la in_o corda_fw-la credentium_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la nihil_fw-la igitur_fw-la express_v docet_fw-la de_fw-la auxilio_fw-la quomodo_fw-la fiant_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la bona_fw-la opera_fw-la deinde_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o immutabiliter_fw-la lex_fw-la requirit_fw-la integram_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sine_fw-la discrimine_fw-la renatis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la renatis_fw-la &_o damnat_fw-la immutabiliter_fw-la non_fw-la habentes_fw-la integram_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la
at_o evangelium_fw-la non_fw-la modo_fw-la auxilium_fw-la nobis_fw-la promittit_fw-la sed_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la renatos_fw-la pertinet_fw-la hanc_fw-la etiam_fw-la dulcissimam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d adhibet_fw-la quod_fw-la sicut_fw-la persona_fw-la gratis_o recipitur_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o obedientia_fw-la inchoata_fw-la quanquam_fw-la imperfecta_fw-la &_o contaminata_fw-la placeat_fw-la in_o reconciliatis_fw-la fide_fw-la propter_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la haec_fw-la doctrina_fw-la evangelii_n nisi_fw-la addatur_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la legalibus_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o repetuntur_fw-la &_o enarrantur_fw-la atque_fw-la etiam_fw-la sanciuntur_fw-la necessario_fw-la &_o immutabiliter_fw-la in_o concionibus_fw-la evangelicis_fw-la erit_fw-la doctrina_fw-la bonorum_fw-la operum_fw-la non_fw-la modo_fw-la manca_fw-la &_o mu_o ila_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la i●utilis_fw-la etc._n etc._n quart_n par_fw-fr objectionum_fw-la &_o resp_n theolog._n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la collectae_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptis_fw-la melanct._n opera_fw-la christoph_n pezelii_n edit_fw-la neapoli_fw-it nem._n an._n 1582._o p._n 167_o 168._o the_o law_n of_o itself_o know_v nothing_o either_o of_o the_o merit_n or_o efficacy_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o by_o christ_n be_v pour_v out_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o believer_n nothing_o therefore_o do_v it_o express_o teach_v of_o the_o help_n by_o which_o and_o of_o the_o way_n how_o good_a work_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o moreover_o the_o law_n do_v always_o and_o immutable_o require_v perfect_a obedience_n of_o all_o without_o discrimination_n regenerate_v and_o unregenerate_a and_o of_o itself_o immutable_o damn_v all_o that_o have_v not_o that_o perfect_a obedience_n but_o the_o gospel_n not_o only_o promise_v we_o help_v but_o as_o for_o the_o regenerate_a with_o respect_n to_o they_o it_o mitigate_v the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n with_o this_o sweet_a temper_n and_o moderation_n that_o as_o the_o person_n be_v free_o receive_v into_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n so_o the_o begin_v obedience_n though_o imperfect_a and_o pollute_a yet_o be_v please_v to_o god_n in_o person_n reconcile_v through_o faith_n for_o the_o mediator_n sake_n this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n unless_o it_o be_v add_v to_o the_o legal_a precept_n which_o be_v both_o repeat_v and_o preach_v and_o also_o be_v bring_v under_o a_o sanction_n and_o confirm_v necessary_o and_o immutable_o in_o gospel_n sermon_n the_o doctrine_n of_o good_a work_n will_v not_o only_o be_v lame_a and_o maim_a but_o it_o will_v also_o be_v unprofitable_a etc._n etc._n thus_o pezelius_n show_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o law_n precept_n as_o fortify_v with_o the_o sanction_n of_o the_o first_o law_n of_o work_n and_o the_o same_o precept_n as_o they_o be_v bring_v under_o a_o new_a sanction_n and_o have_v put_v on_o a_o new_a form_n in_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o last_o sense_n the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o be_v precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o the_o same_o pezelius_n in_o the_o same_o book_n have_v demonstrate_v at_o large_a against_o the_o flacian_o that_o over_o and_o beside_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o be_v now_o evangelize_v the_o gospel_n have_v some_o precept_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o itself_o and_o require_v evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n which_o the_o moral_a law_n by_o itself_o immediate_o do_v not_o require_v at_o all_o some_o of_o his_o word_n be_v 153._o be_v at_o nihil_fw-la cum_fw-la hoc_fw-la somnio_fw-la common_a habet_fw-la dicere_fw-la in_o evangelio_n mandatum_fw-la peculiare_a esse_fw-la non_fw-la patefactum_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la viz._n the_o side_n in_o christum_fw-la cum_fw-la qua_fw-la pugnat_fw-la incredulitas_fw-la in_o filium_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la fidei_fw-la i.e._n doctrinâ_fw-la evangelii_n non_fw-la tantùm_fw-la est_fw-la promissio_fw-la gratuita_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la dei_fw-la propter_fw-la filium_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la mandatum_fw-la quod_fw-la praecipit_fw-la ut_fw-la agnoscamus_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la &_o credamus_fw-la illi_fw-la promissioni_fw-la hoc_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la toto_fw-la genere_fw-la differt_fw-la a_o praeceptis_fw-la legalibus_fw-la quae_fw-la concionantur_fw-la de_fw-la morali_fw-la obedientiâ_fw-la ac_fw-la ut_fw-la puerile_a esset_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la lex_fw-la promissiones_fw-la habet_fw-la infer_v quia_fw-la evangelium_fw-la a_o lege_fw-la differat_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la ullam_fw-la promissionem_fw-la assignandam_fw-la evangelio_n sic_fw-la ingens_fw-la stupor_n est_fw-la sic_fw-la argumentari_fw-la lex_fw-la habet_fw-la mandata_fw-la ergo_fw-la nullum_fw-la peculiare_a mandatum_fw-la assignandum_fw-la est_fw-la evangelio_n ne_fw-la videatur_fw-la introduci_fw-la lex_fw-la nova_fw-la seu_fw-la lex_fw-la evangelica_n etc._n etc._n idem_fw-la in_o codem_fw-la libro_fw-la pag._n 152_o 153._o but_o it_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o this_o popish_a dream_n concern_v a_o new_a law_n in_o their_o sense_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a precept_n not_o reveal_v in_o the_o law_n to_o wit_n concern_v faith_n in_o christ_n to_o which_o be_v repugnant_a not_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n the_o mediator_n in_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o son_n the_o mediator_n but_o there_o be_v a_o precept_n which_o command_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o mediator_n and_o believe_v that_o promise_n this_o precept_n in_o its_o whole_a kind_n differ_v from_o the_o legal_a precept_n which_o preach_v of_o moral_a obedience_n and_o as_o it_o will_v be_v childish_a from_o this_o that_o the_o law_n have_v promise_n to_o infer_v that_o since_o the_o law_n differ_v from_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o promise_n to_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o gospel_n so_o it_o be_v great_a stupidity_n to_o argue_v thus_o the_o law_n have_v precept_n therefore_o no_o peculiar_a precept_n be_v to_o be_v assign_v unto_o the_o gospel_n lest_o a_o new_a law_n or_o a_o evangelical_n law_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v introduce_v etc._n etc._n see_v what_o follow_v there_o especial_o consult_v what_o he_o write_v in_o pag._n 100_o 101_o 102_o 109_o 110_o 111_o 112_o 113_o 114_o 126_o 127_o 128_o 129_o 135_o 136_o 149_o 150_o 151._o and_o in_o pag._n 82_o 83_o 84_o 85_o 86_o 87_o where_o he_o invincible_o prove_v against_o flacius_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n that_o beside_o the_o precept_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o be_v common_a both_o to_o the_o law_n of_o work_n and_o gospel_n of_o grace_n there_o be_v precept_n which_o by_o themselves_o immdiate_o require_v evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o that_o these_o precept_n be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o gospel_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o opinion_n which_o be_v late_o bring_v in_o among_o we_o that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n which_o require_v duty_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a error_n of_o flacius_n and_o his_o party_n which_o they_o broach_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o learned_a pious_a and_o prudent_a melancthon_n and_o which_o be_v confute_v and_o explode_v by_o the_o reform_a above_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o my_o 5_o withess_n be_v henry_n bullinger_n who_o though_o he_o be_v suborn_v to_o be_v a_o false_a witness_n against_o i_o yet_o be_v he_o a_o true_a witness_n that_o be_v as_o much_o for_o i_o in_o this_o cause_n as_o my_o heart_n can_v desire_v for_o thus_o he_o write_v on_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n heb._n 8.8_o for_o find_v fault_n with_o they_o he_o say_v behold_v the_o day_n come_v etc._n etc._n 1582._o etc._n quod_fw-la vero_fw-la hunc_fw-la attinet_fw-la locum_fw-la testamentum_fw-la hoc_fw-la foedus_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la dei_fw-la pactum_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la deus_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la svam_fw-la erga_fw-la nos_fw-la testatus_fw-la est_fw-la prorsusque_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la certis_fw-la convenit_fw-la conditionibus_fw-la coeterum_fw-la case_z conditione_n patribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la abrahae_fw-la imprimis_fw-la sic_fw-la praescripsit_fw-la ero_n deus_fw-la tuus_fw-la illa_fw-la rerum_fw-la omnisufficientia_fw-la ero_fw-la inquam_fw-la deus_fw-la tuus_fw-la &_o seminis_fw-la tui_fw-la post_fw-la te_fw-la in_fw-la fempiternum_fw-la tu_fw-la vero_fw-la ambula_fw-la coram_fw-la i_o &_o esto_fw-la integer_fw-la &_o haec_fw-la scederis_fw-la sive_fw-la pacti_fw-la conditione_n sunt_fw-la henr._n bullinger_n comment_fw-fr in_o epist_n ad_fw-la hebraeos_fw-la cap._n 8._o v._n 8._o pag._n 533._o edit_n tigur_n 1582._o as_o to_o what_o concern_v this_o place_n the_o testament_n be_v the_o covenant_n and_o that_o compact_a of_o god_n whereby_o god_n have_v testify_v his_o will_n towards_o we_o and_o have_v full_o agree_v with_o we_o upon_o certain_a condition_n and_o those_o condition_n he_o have_v thus_o prescribe_v unto_o our_o father_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n unto_o abraham_n say_v i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n that_o all-sufficieucy_a of_o all_o thing_n i_o say_v i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n after_o
that_o he_o may_v provide_v for_o the_o happiness_n of_o and_o may_v bountiful_o reward_v we_o his_o subject_n 2_o tim._n 4.8_o joh._n 10_o 28._o and_o that_o he_o may_v destroy_v all_o his_o ensmy_n be_v bring_v down_o and_o make_v his_o footstool_n ps_n 110.1_o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o section_n concern_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n there_o be_v these_o question_n and_o answer_n fide_fw-la answer_n q._n quid_fw-la nobis_fw-la promissum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o scedere_fw-la gratiae_fw-la r._n remissio_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la nova_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la q._n quadratus_n conditione_n haec_fw-la facta_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la promissio_fw-la r_o sub_n conditione_n fidei_fw-la &_o obedientiae_fw-la ex_fw-la fide_fw-la q._n what_o be_v promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n ans_fw-fr remission_n of_o sin_n a_o new_a righteousness_n and_o eternal_a life_n q._n under_o what_o condition_n be_v that_o promise_v make_v to_o we_o ans_fw-fr under_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n of_o faith_n john_n 3.16_o and_o 13.17_o gal._n 6.16_o rom._n 1.5_o thus_o the_o edenburgh-catechism_n write_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o college_n and_o school_n there_o by_o mr._n john_n adamson_n principal_n who_o be_v afterward_o a_o member_n of_o the_o general_n assembly_n at_o glasgow_n in_o the_o year_n 1638._o if_o i_o be_v not_o misinform_v and_o his_o name_n i_o see_v at_o st._n andrews_n in_o the_o list_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o member_n of_o that_o synod_n but_o that_o which_o be_v material_a be_v this_o that_o the_o catechism_n say_v christ_n be_v make_v a_o king_n that_o he_o may_v give_v we_o a_o royal_a law_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n this_o in_o such_o a_o way_n he_o can_v not_o do_v as_o mediatorial_n king_n unless_o the_o gospel-covenant_n whereof_o he_o be_v mediator_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n but_o that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n according_a to_o that_o catechism_n be_v evident_a from_o this_o that_o it_o assert_n the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v promise_v to_o we_o under_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n and_o prove_v its_o assertion_n by_o john_n 3.16_o and_o 13_o 17._o gal._n 6.16_o and_o rom._n 1.5_o my_o 8_o witness_n be_v the_o famous_a mr._n durham_n before_o mention_v his_o word_n in_o p._n 238._o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n say_v he_o be_v compare_v to_o free_a adoption_n or_o a_o man_n entitle_v of_o a_o stranger_n to_o his_o inheritance_n upon_o condition_n of_o his_o receive_n that_o and_o to_o marriage_n betwixt_o man_n and_o wife_n which_o be_v frequent_a in_o scripture_n not_o because_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n require_v not_o holiness_n and_o work_n but_o because_o it_o do_v not_o require_v they_o actual_o to_o precede_v a_o person_n be_v title_n to_o all_o the_o privilege_n covenant_v and_o do_v free_o entitle_v he_o to_o the_o same_o upon_o his_o entry_n therein_o as_o a_o wife_n be_v entitle_v to_o what_o be_v the_o husband_n be_v upon_o her_o marriage_n with_o he_o although_o afterward_o she_o be_v to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o that_o relation_n rather_o as_o duty_n call_v for_o by_o it_o than_o as_o condition_n of_o it_o hence_o we_o may_v call_v the_o covenant_n of_o work_n a_o servile_a covenant_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n a_o filial_a or_o conjugal_a covenant_n and_o therefore_o although_o holy_a duty_n be_v require_v in_o both_o yet_o there_o be_v difference_n and_o the_o one_o be_v of_o work_n and_o the_o other_o of_o grace_n thus_o that_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n where_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o he_o be_v for_o the_o gospel-covenant_n its_o have_a precept_n and_o require_v duty_n my_o 9th_o witness_n be_v the_o learned_a and_o holy_a mr._n rutherford_n who_o speak_v full_o to_o the_o point_n under_o consideration_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v faith_n in_o god_n and_o the_o moral_a law_n that_o be_v obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n in_o a_o evangelic_n way_n be_v command_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o also_o some_o duty_n touch_v the_o seal_n be_v therein_o contain_v again_o ibid._n p._n 92._o as_o the_o command_v and_o threaten_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n lie_v on_o a_o real_a obligation_n upon_o such_o as_o be_v only_o externaly_a in_o covenant_n either_o to_o obey_v or_o suffer_v so_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o covenant_n impose_v a_o engagement_n and_o obligation_n upon_o such_o to_o believe_v the_o promise_n 20._o promise_n rutherford_n treatise_n of_o the_o covevant_n of_o grace_n ed._n edinb_n an._n 1655._o p._n 20._o again_o ibid._n p._n 154._o law-obedience_n say_v he_o do_v much_o differ_v from_o gospel_n obedience_n as_o law-commands_a from_o gospel-commands_a again_o ibid._n p._n 189._o obj._n do_v not_o the_o law_n command_v the_o sinner_n offend_v god_n to_o mourn_v and_o be_v humble_v and_o confess_v ans_fw-fr it_o do_v but_o it_o enjoin_v not_o repentance_n as_o a_o way_n of_o life_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o life_n to_o the_o repenter_n nor_n do_v the_o law_n as_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n command_v justify_v faith_n and_o reliance_n upon_o god-redeemer_n or_o immanuel_n but_o rather_o as_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o as_o the_o law_n of_o thankfulness_n to_o a_o ransom_v redeem_v god_n the_o law_n do_v this_o though_o in_o a_o special_a covenant_n way_n the_o gospel_n command_v faith_n in_o christ._n again_o ibid._n p._n 191._o this_o i_o grant_v which_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n careful_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o way_n command_v faith_n and_o forbid_v unbelief_n i_o speak_v now_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o they_o be_v two_o covenant_n specifical_o and_o formal_o different_a again_o he_o put_v the_o question_n ib._n p._n 192._o 103._o whether_o do_v the_o lord_n mediator_n as_o mediator_n command_v the_o same_o good_a work_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o then_o answer_n according_a to_o that_o matter_n of_o the_o thing_n command_v quoad_fw-la rem_fw-la mandatam_fw-la he_o command_v the_o same_o and_o charge_n upon_o all_o and_o every_o one_o the_o moral_a duty_n even_o as_o mediator_n but_o simple_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o quoad_fw-la modum_fw-la mandandi_fw-la it_o shall_v not_o be_v needful_a to_o dispute_v whether_o they_o be_v command_v differ_v in_o nature_n for_o not_o only_o do_v the_o mediator_n command_v obedience_n upon_o his_o interpose_a authority_n as_o lawgiver_n and_o creator_n but_o also_o as_o lord_n redeemer_n upon_o the_o motive_n of_o gospel-constraining-love_n in_o which_o notion_n he_o call_v love_n the_o keep_n of_o his_o commandment_n if_o they_o love_v he_o john_n 14._o the_o new_a commandment_n of_o love_n final_o ib._n p._n 198_o 199._o he_o say_v the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n or_o gospel-obedience_n have_v less_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o obedience_n than_o that_o of_o adam_n or_o of_o the_o elect_a angel_n or_o that_o of_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a we_o be_v call_v obedient_a child_n and_o they_o be_v call_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n have_v take_v the_o moral_a law_n and_o make_v use_v of_o it_o in_o a_o evangelic_n way_n yet_o we_o be_v more_o as_o it_o be_v patient_n ●in_a obey_v gospel-commands_a not_o that_o we_o be_v mere_a patient_n as_o libertine_n teach_v for_o grace_n make_v we_o willing_a but_o we_o have_v both_o supernatural_a habit_n and_o influence_n of_o grace_n furnish_v to_o we_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v merit_v both_o to_o we_o and_o so_o in_o gospel_n obedience_n we_o offer_v more_o of_o the_o lord_n own_o and_o less_o of_o our_o own_o because_o he_o both_o command_n and_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o obey_v by_o all_o this_o and_o more_o that_o i_o can_v quote_v out_o of_o mr._n rutherford_n write_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n that_o require_v no_o duty_n or_o we_o at_o all_o my_o 10_o witness_n be_v the_o late_a reverend_n and_o learned_a doctor_n owen_n who_o memory_n i_o honour_v though_o it_o be_v say_v that_o i_o bestow_v some_o disadvantageous_a remark_n upon_o he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a for_o to_o tell_v the_o world_n that_o he_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v before_o confident_o write_v when_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o give_v he_o further_o light_n as_o he_o apprehend_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v to_o his_o disadvantage_n that_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a very_o much_o for_o his_o honour_n and_o plain_o show_v
priority_n be_v enough_o for_o that_o pag._n 33._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o i_o never_o write_v nor_o think_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n in_o any_o sense_n but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o mere_a natural_a power_n with_o which_o it_o be_v very_o well_o consistent_a that_o it_o be_v in_o our_o supernatural_a power_n which_o we_o receive_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o with_o his_o assistance_n free_o use_v in_o perform_v the_o say_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n of_o all_o honest_a man_n who_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o read_v and_o consider_v what_o they_o will_v find_v write_v in_o the_o apol._n pag._n 36._o last_o paragraph_n and_o pag._n 47._o at_o the_o end_n and_o pag._n 48._o from_o l._n 1._o to_o l._n 13._o and_o pag._n 49._o from_o l._n 9_o to_o 20._o and_o pag._n 50._o where_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o augustin_n and_o bradwardin_n i_o express_o show_v that_o the_o perform_n of_o the_o condition_n be_v in_o our_o power_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o have_v a_o subordinate_a dominion_n and_o power_n over_o our_o own_o act._n and_o last_o in_o pag._n 67._o i_o show_v from_o dr._n twiss_n that_o we_o not_o only_o have_v supernatural_a power_n from_o god_n to_o produce_v the_o act_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n but_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o we_o produce_v it_o we_o have_v a_o power_n a_o natural_a power_n not_o to_o produce_v it_o whence_o i_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o gracious_a evangelical_n condition_n free_o perform_v by_o we_o see_v our_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 10._o act._n 1._o now_o let_v any_o judge_n by_o this_o whether_o i_o do_v absolute_o deny_v the_o condition_n to_o be_v in_o our_o power_n nay_o though_o i_o deny_v it_o in_o one_o sense_n to_o be_v in_o our_o power_n yet_o in_o another_o sense_n i_o do_v most_o clear_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v in_o our_o power_n as_o for_o the_o condition_n it_o be_v not_o be_v uncertain_a nor_o meritorious_a it_o be_v true_a i_o do_v and_o do_v maintain_v that_o it_o be_v not_o uncertain_a with_o respect_n to_o god_n and_o the_o event_n nor_o be_v it_o in_o the_o least_o true_o and_o proper_o meritorious_a but_o i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o a_o condition_n evangelical_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o four_o place_n he_o say_v that_o i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n it_o be_v true_a i_o have_v deny_v and_o shall_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n in_o the_o sense_n explain_v at_o large_a from_o the_o end_n of_o pag._n 37._o to_o 41._o it_o be_v not_o so_o a_o legal_a condition_n as_o to_o have_v the_o same_o place_n and_o office_n in_o the_o new-covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o perfect_a and_o personal_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v to_o have_v have_v in_o the_o first_o old_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o infer_v from_o hence_o that_o because_o i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n in_o this_o sense_n therefore_o i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n in_o all_o and_o every_o sense_n whatsoever_o be_v a_o poor_a fallacious_a way_n of_o argue_v and_o how_o can_v this_o r._n b._n serious_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v ever_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n in_o any_o sense_n at_o all_o when_o as_o he_o know_v that_o i_o do_v all_o along_o call_v it_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n if_o then_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n i_o can_v choose_v but_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o federal_a condition_n and_o so_o if_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n i_o can_v choose_v but_o in_o some_o sense_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n but_o you_o may_v say_v in_o what_o sense_n do_v i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n why_o i_o answer_v look_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n faith_n for_o instance_n be_v the_o legal_a condition_n of_o it_o and_o so_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v now_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v mere_o and_o simple_o a_o law_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n proper_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o condition_n mere_o and_o simple_o legal_a as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o old_a law_n of_o work_n be_v but_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n gracious_o legal_a because_o it_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o be_v effectual_o enable_v to_o perform_v it_o by_o the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n this_o that_o brother_n may_v have_v easy_o perceive_v by_o our_o word_n to_o be_v our_o meaning_n if_o he_o have_v seek_v the_o truth_n sincere_o when_o he_o read_v our_o apology_n but_o though_o he_o style_v himself_o a_o seeker_n p._n 103._o yet_o it_o appear_v too_o evident_a by_o his_o parenthesis_n p._n 33._o l._n 29.30_o 31._o that_o he_o seek_v some_o other_o thing_n than_o the_o truth_n for_o there_o he_o bring_v i_o in_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n and_o that_o this_o law_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n or_o gospel_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o legal_a condition_n but_o where_o do_v i_o say_v so_o that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n i_o defy_v any_o man_n live_v to_o find_v those_o word_n or_o any_o word_n of_o the_o like_a import_n in_o all_o the_o apol._n i_o leave_v it_o to_o other_o who_o it_o may_v become_v to_o write_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o gospel_n or_o the_o covenant_n be_v a_o law_n and_o that_o law_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o so_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o itself_o for_o shame_v give_v over_o such_o little_a trick_n and_o have_v regard_n to_o truth_n and_o honesty_n but_o now_o be_v there_o nothing_o in_o the_o apo●_n that_o give_v occasion_n to_o fasten_v upon_o we_o such_o a_o notorious_a falsehood_n i_o answer_v i_o profess_v sincere_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o it_o all_o from_o beginning_n to_o end_n that_o can_v give_v any_o just_a occasion_n or_o so_o much_o as_o a_o colourable_a pretence_n to_o charge_v i_o with_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n or_o covenant_n and_o that_o that_o law_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n we_o have_v say_v indeed_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n pag._n 22._o l._n 35.36_o that_o this_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o to_o be_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n for_o the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o which_o prescribe_v and_o command_v the_o condition_n and_o which_o promise_v a_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n to_o the_o person_n who_o perform_v it_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o the_o condition_n itself_o here_o then_o some_o body_n have_v discover_v his_o ignorance_n and_o write_v he_o know_v not_o what_o or_o if_o not_o that_o he_o have_v discover_v somewhat_o worse_o and_o that_o which_o i_o forbear_v to_o call_v by_o its_o proper_a name_n because_o he_o may_v say_v that_o it_o be_v bitter_a language_n to_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n in_o plain_a term_n it_o be_v sweet_a unto_o some_o man_n public_o to_o misrepresent_v their_o brethren_n to_o the_o people_n for_o such_o end_n as_o they_o know_v best_a but_o it_o be_v bitter_a to_o they_o for_o to_o find_v themselves_o public_o reprove_v for_o it_o we_o desire_v all_o who_o it_o may_v concern_v to_o learn_v to_o understand_v our_o apol._n before_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o dispute_v against_o it_o and_o censure_v it_o and_o they_o may_v easy_o understand_v it_o if_o they_o will_v for_o it_o be_v purposely_o write_v in_o a_o plain_a stile_n that_o all_o may_v know_v what_o our_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o new-covenant_n see_v pag._n 68_o from_o lin_v 16._o to_o 21._o where_o we_o brief_o and_o plain_o distinguish_v between_o the_o absolute_a and_o conditional_a part_n of_o it_o and_o show_v what_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v as_o we_o have_v also_o do_v so_o large_o before_o that_o none_o can_v mistake_v our_o meaning_n unless_o they_o have_v very_o weak_a head_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o
may_v throw_v dirt_n at_o we_o in_o the_o dark_a his_o inference_n then_o fail_v that_o if_o faith_n for_o instance_n be_v not_o a_o condition_n in_o a_o law-sense_n it_o must_v be_v only_o in_o a_o logical_a or_o physical_a sense_n and_o so_o it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o proper_a condition_n for_o 1._o why_o may_v not_o some_o logical_a condition_n be_v a_o proper_a condition_n 2._o though_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o condition_n in_o one_o law-sense_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n in_o another_o law-sense_n it_o be_v not_o a_o condition_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o old_a law_n of_o work_n but_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o new_a evangelical_n law_n of_o grace_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o he_o say_v of_o logical_a and_o physical_a connexion_n in_o these_o proposition_n if_o a_o man_n be_v reasonable_a he_o be_v capable_a of_o learning_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o will_v be_v lay_v to_o the_o fire_n it_o will_v burn_v be_v whole_o impertinent_a to_o the_o present_a purpose_n for_o in_o these_o proposition_n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o connexion_n between_o the_o subject_n and_o the_o predicate_v arise_v from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o this_o conditional_a promise_n if_o thou_o sincere_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v the_o necessary_a truth_n of_o the_o connexion_n do_v not_o arise_v mere_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o from_o the_o lord_n be_v free_a and_o gracious_a will_n and_o positive_a law-constitution_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n rom._n 10.8_o 9_o and_o so_o faith_n be_v neither_o a_o mere_a logical_a nor_o physical_a condition_n but_o it_o be_v a_o moral_a legal_a condition_n in_o a_o very_a safe_a and_o proper_a sense_n it_o be_v not_o legal_a in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o it_o be_v legal_a in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o gracious_a evangelical_n condition_n what_o he_o talk_v p._n 33._o l._n ult_n and_o p._n 34._o of_o the_o orderliness_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o of_o the_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o justification_n and_o glory_n upon_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n do_v not_o one_o jot_n help_v he_o to_o break_v the_o force_n of_o our_o argument_n and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o covenant_n be_v not_o conditional_a and_o that_o the_o give_v of_o the_o benefit_n be_v not_o suspend_v till_o the_o condition_n be_v perform_v for_o we_o show_v in_o the_o apology_n that_o the_o covenant_n have_v indeed_o a_o order_n in_o it_o between_o the_o duty_n and_o the_o subsequent_a benefit_n but_o that_o that_o order_n be_v a_o conditional_a order_n constitute_v by_o the_o positive_a will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n positive_a will_n to_o suspend_v his_o give_v of_o the_o benefit_n for_o instance_n pardon_v of_o sin_n till_o we_o through_o his_o grace_n free_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o actual_a faith_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v actual_o pardon_v till_o we_o be_v adult_n have_v actual_o believe_v and_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v pardon_v but_o not_o before_o this_o we_o prove_v and_o our_o argument_n remain_v unanswered_a and_o we_o know_v they_o can_v never_o be_v solid_o answer_v we_o need_v no_o more_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v conditional_a though_o we_o be_v not_o without_o other_o argument_n and_o can_v tell_v he_o what_o it_o be_v like_a he_o know_v well_o enough_o in_o what_o book_n write_v by_o orthodox_n divine_n he_o may_v find_v a_o great_a many_o more_o argument_n to_o this_o purpose_n to_o tell_v people_n confident_o that_o because_o it_o be_v a_o testament_n it_o can_v have_v no_o condition_n be_v to_o deceive_v they_o for_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v a_o testament_n and_o yet_o have_v a_o gracious_a evangelical_n condition_n a_o man_n can_v make_v his_o own_o testament_n so_o as_o to_o prescribe_v proper_a condition_n in_o it_o and_o sometime_o do_v so_o sure_o then_o the_o lord_n can_v prescribe_v a_o condition_n in_o his_o testament_n and_o he_o have_v do_v it_o but_o as_o he_o be_v a_o gracious_a testator_n so_o the_o condition_n prescribe_v in_o his_o testament_n be_v gracious_a too_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o fundamental_a mistake_n of_o some_o brethren_n to_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o testament_n so_o absolute_a as_o not_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o proper_a covenant_n whereas_o in_o truth_n the_o gospel_n partake_v both_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o absolute_a testament_n and_o also_o of_o a_o conditional_a covenant_n and_o this_o it_o may_v very_o well_o do_v in_o different_a respect_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o absolute_a promise_n it_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o absolute_a testament_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o conditional_a promise_n it_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o conditional_a covenant_n and_o then_o the_o absolute_a promise_n of_o grace_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n make_v the_o conditional_a promise_n eventual_o sure_a to_o all_o the_o elect_a and_o thus_o the_o covenant_n be_v a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n indeed_o a_o covenant_n well_o order_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o sure_a 2_o sam._n 23.5_o but_o say_v that_o r._n b._n pag._n 33._o by_o condition_n they_o mean_v not_o a_o condition_n proper_o in_o a_o law_n or_o federal_a sense_n as_o we_o use_v the_o word_n in_o bargain_n between_o man_n and_o man._n answer_n what_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o we_o use_v not_o the_o word_n condition_n proper_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o humane_a law_n or_o covenant_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v a_o proper_a condition_n in_o another_o law-sense_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o divine_a law_n of_o grace_n this_o consequence_n we_o deny_v and_o so_o do_v mr._n fox_n and_o mr._n durham_n and_o it_o lie_v on_o that_o brother_n to_o prove_v it_o for_o we_o do_v not_o take_v his_o word_n for_o a_o proof_n again_o in_o pag._n 34._o he_o say_v that_o the_o conditional_a particle_n if_o use_v in_o testament_n do_v not_o suspend_v but_o demonstrate_v and_o design_v the_o thing_n promise_v other_o will_v say_v but_o demonstrate_v and_o describe_v the_o legatee_n and_o some_o certain_a time_n and_o manner_n of_o conveyance_n from_o whence_o he_o will_v infer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o conditional_a promise_n in_o the_o gospel_n i_o answer_v 1._o suppose_v that_o be_v true_a of_o humane_a testament_n which_o be_v pure_o testament_n and_o do_v no_o way_n partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o conditional_a covenant_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o must_v be_v true_a also_o in_o the_o divine_a testament_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o partake_v both_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o absolute_a testament_n and_o also_o of_o a_o conditional_a covenant_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o universal_o true_a of_o humane_a testament_n for_o i_o can_v make_v my_o testament_n so_o as_o to_o suspend_v the_o give_n of_o certain_a legacy_n to_o person_n name_v in_o it_o upon_o their_o perform_n of_o some_o condition_n so_o that_o if_o they_o perform_v the_o condition_n they_o shall_v have_v the_o legacy_n but_o not_o till_o then_o and_o if_o they_o never_o perform_v the_o condition_n they_o shall_v never_o have_v the_o legacy_n but_o that_o brother_n object_n further_o that_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apol._n by_o suspension_n understand_v a_o legal_a suspension_n it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o a_o legal_a condition_n which_o he_o have_v deny_v before_o for_o conditio_fw-la est_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la suspensio_fw-la ex_fw-la eventu_fw-la incerto_fw-la ei_fw-la opposito_fw-la and_o have_v a_o oblige_a influence_n on_o the_o promiser_n and_o confer_v a_o title_n of_o right_a to_o the_o benefit_n promise_v answer_n and_o we_o have_v show_v that_o this_o brother_n do_v foul_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apol._n to_o a_o sense_n quite_o different_a from_o that_o true_a sense_n which_o we_o profess_o and_o express_o give_v of_o the_o word_n legal_a condition_n see_v in_o pag._n 37.38_o etc._n etc._n the_o explication_n which_o we_o give_v of_o it_o at_o large_a on_o purpose_n to_o prevent_v man_n misunderstanding_n of_o we_o as_o this_o man_n do_v the_o explication_n begin_v thus_o which_o that_o our_o meaning_n to_o wit_n of_o a_o not_o legal_a but_o evangelical_n condition_n may_v be_v understand_v by_o all_o we_o explain_v thus_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o be_v condition_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v the_o same_o place_n and_o office_n in_o this_o new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o most_o perfect_a and_o
the_o scripture_n which_o be_v general_o think_v to_o contain_v conditional_a promise_n such_o as_o mark_v 16.16_o act._n 10.43_o luk._n 13.5_o rom._n 10.9_o etc._n etc._n he_o say_v dis_n pag._n 58._o be_v to_o assert_v that_o the_o import_n of_o they_o be_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o there_o be_v a_o unchangeable_a connexion_n between_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v indissoluble_o fasten_v with_o pardon_n justification_n and_o eternal_a life_n in_o the_o same_o person_n or_o that_o god_n justify_v and_o save_v no_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n but_o who_o at_o his_o own_o due_a appoint_a time_n he_o make_v a_o believer_n bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n and_o sanctify_v his_o nature_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o here_o indeed_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v grant_v but_o not_o the_o whole_a truth_n and_o with_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v grant_v there_o be_v intermix_v this_o great_a falsehood_n that_o all_o such_o scripture_n import_v no_o more_o than_o the_o foresay_a unchangeable_a connexion_n between_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o do_v real_o import_v more_o 1._o they_o import_v that_o the_o connexion_n be_v not_o only_o indissoluble_a but_o that_o it_o be_v also_o conditional_a for_o instance_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 10.9_o if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v import_v manifest_o that_o the_o connexion_n between_o faith_n and_o salvation_n be_v not_o only_o indissoluble_a but_o that_o it_o be_v likewise_o conditional_a as_o be_v clear_o prove_v in_o the_o apol._n pag._n 50.57_o 58_o 59_o 2._o such_o place_n of_o scripture_n not_o only_o import_v a_o indissoluble_a unchangeable_a connexion_n between_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o moreover_o import_v such_o a_o connexion_n between_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o blessing_n of_o it_o between_o its_o antecedent_n duty_n and_o subsequent_a blessing_n for_o instance_n faith_n be_v not_o only_o a_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o it_o be_v also_o a_o command_v duty_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o be_v write_v act._n 16.31_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v here_o faith_n be_v command_v as_o a_o necessary_a duty_n which_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o antecedent_o to_o our_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n and_o our_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n be_v suspend_v till_o we_o perform_v that_o duty_n so_o as_o that_o if_o we_o perform_v it_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v rom._n 10.9_o act._n 16.31_o but_o if_o we_o perform_v it_o not_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v save_v john_n 3.36_o and_o john_n 8.24_o and_o the_o lord_n have_v thus_o command_v faith_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o promise_v we_o salvation_n upon_o our_o believe_v and_o suspend_v his_o give_v we_o salvation_n until_o we_o through_o grace_n have_v perform_v the_o command_a duty_n of_o faith_n there_o want_v nothing_o to_o make_v our_o actual_a faith_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n and_o the_o connexion_n between_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o blessing_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v a_o conditional_a connexion_n two_o though_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o mr._n g._n be_v a_o autinomian_n by_o his_o principle_n yet_o i_o must_v say_v that_o what_o he_o assert_v to_o be_v the_o full_a import_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o foresay_a scripture_n do_v not_o seem_v sufficient_a to_o secure_v man_n from_o real_a antinomianism_n because_o a_o man_n may_v possible_o assert_v all_o this_o which_o he_o here_o assert_n and_o yet_o may_v not_o only_o be_v like_o a_o antinomian_a but_o may_v be_v a_o most_o real_a antinomian_n to_o make_v this_o appear_v consider_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o imply_v no_o contradiction_n for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v so_o drink_v with_o error_n as_o to_o persuade_v himself_o that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v indeed_o blessing_n which_o god_n give_v to_o man_n but_o that_o they_o be_v no_o duty_n require_v of_o men._n mr._n goodwin_n will_v make_v he_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v no_o duty_n require_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o may_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n make_v himself_o believe_v that_o as_o they_o be_v not_o duty_n require_v by_o the_o gospel_n so_o they_o be_v no_o duty_n require_v of_o he_o by_o the_o law_n and_o he_o may_v ground_v his_o false_a persuasion_n upon_o a_o false_a interpretation_n of_o rom._n 6.14_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n consider_v 2._o that_o the_o man_n be_v certain_o a_o most_o real_a antinomian_n if_o he_o be_v once_o of_o this_o persuasion_n that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v either_o by_o law_n or_o gospel_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o repent_v of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o lead_v a_o holy_a life_n but_o that_o without_o transgress_v any_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n under_o which_o he_o fancy_v he_o be_v not_o be_v elect_v and_o justify_v from_o eternity_n he_o may_v be_v a_o impenitent_a unbeliever_n and_o a_o unholy_a liver_n and_o as_o for_o the_o gospel_n mr._n goodwin_n have_v teach_v he_o that_o it_o have_v no_o precept_n and_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o he_o at_o all_o i_o hope_v my_o r._n b._n will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v not_o only_o like_a to_o the_o antinomian_a monster_n but_o that_o he_o real_o be_v a_o antinomian_a monster_n consider_v 3._o that_o this_o antinomian_a in_o consistency_n with_o his_o antinomian_a principle_n may_v assert_v this_o which_o mr._n g._n say_v be_v the_o full_a import_n of_o all_o the_o foresay_a scripture_n which_o most_o divine_v affirm_v but_o mr._n goodwin_n deny_v to_o contain_v any_o conditional_a promise_n for_o 1._o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o this_o antinomian_a that_o as_o salvation_n be_v a_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o god_n give_v to_o the_o elect_a though_o they_o be_v no_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v 2._o this_o antinomian_a may_v believe_v that_o though_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v no_o duty_n require_v yet_o be_v blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o god_n give_v to_o his_o elect_a he_o justify_v and_o save_v no_o man_n but_o who_o at_o his_o own_o due_a appoint_a time_n he_o make_v a_o believer_n bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n and_o sanctify_v his_o nature_n 3._o upon_o this_o the_o antinomian_n may_v assert_v that_o there_o be_v a_o unchangeable_a connexion_n between_o faith_n repentance_n holiness_n and_o salvation_n as_o blessing_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v indissoluble_o fasten_v with_o pardon_n justification_n and_o eternal_a life_n in_o the_o same_o person_n all_o this_o the_o man_n may_v assert_v and_o yet_o be_v a_o antinomian_a still_o for_o he_o may_v still_o hold_v that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n be_v blessing_n but_o no_o duty_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o they_o either_o by_o law_n or_o gospel_n from_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v necessary_o true_a which_o mr._n g._n say_v to_o wit_n that_o whosoever_o assert_n this_o connexion_n of_o blessing_n be_v no_o antinomian_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o like_v to_o such_o a_o execrable_a monster_n for_o i_o have_v show_v plain_o that_o a_o man_n may_v assert_v this_o and_o yet_o be_v a_o most_o real_a antinomian_n and_o hold_n that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o no_o duty_n either_o by_o law_n or_o gospel_n but_o say_v mr._n goodain_a what!_o be_v holiness_n the_o condition_n of_o obtain_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n no_o though_o it_o do_v natural_o dispose_v the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o meet_v for_o and_o capable_a of_o this_o blissful_a enjoyment_n i_o answer_v and_o be_v that_o so_o strange_a and_o wonderful_a a_o thing_n to_o hear_v of_o holiness_n its_o be_v call_v a_o condition_n require_v on_o our_o part_n in_o order_n to_o our_o obtain_n eternal_a life_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n be_v not_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o speech_n ordinary_a among_o our_o protestant_a divine_v but_o i_o distinguish_v holiness_n be_v not_o a_o meritorious_a condition_n of_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o our_o right_n to_o it_o or_o of_o the_o obtain_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o dispositive_a condition_n require_v of_o we_o in_o order_n to_o our_o obtain_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n for_o the_o alone_a meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n ay_o but_o say_v mr._n g._n holiness_n natural_o dispose_v the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o meet_v for_o that_o blissful_a enjoyment_n answer_v and_o as_o it_o dispose_v the_o soul_n for_o that_o blessedness_n from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n
it_o may_v be_v mr._n g._n will_v say_v that_o though_o these_o be_v protestant_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o right_a protestant_n for_o the_o word_n right_a seem_v to_o be_v put_v in_o on_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o evasion_n when_o press_v with_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o protestant_a divine_n who_o be_v for_o our_o interpretatation_n and_o against_o he_o but_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o divine_n i_o have_v name_v be_v not_o right_a protestant_n yet_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o beza_n be_v not_o a_o right_a protestant_n since_o he_o himself_o appeal_v to_o beza_n p._n 60._o and_o therefore_o to_o beza_n we_o will_v go_v who_o in_o his_o large_a annotation_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o write_v thus_o 27._o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d per_fw-la quam_fw-la legem_fw-la i._o e._n qua_fw-la doctrina_fw-la sicut_fw-la interdum_fw-la hebraeis_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d torah_n in_o genere_fw-la est_fw-la doctrina_fw-la quae_fw-la aliquid_fw-la praescribit_fw-la qua_fw-la ratione_fw-la evangelium_fw-la vocat_fw-la legem_fw-la fidei_fw-la i._n e._n doctrinam_fw-la quae_fw-la salutem_fw-la proponit_fw-la sub_fw-la conditione_n si_fw-la credideris_fw-la quam_fw-la et_fw-la ipsam_fw-la deus_fw-la that_fw-mi nobis_fw-la ut_fw-la praestare_fw-la possimus_fw-la oppositam_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la quae_fw-la justitiam_fw-la et_fw-la salutem_fw-la proponit_fw-la cum_fw-la conditione_n si_fw-la omne_fw-la feceris_fw-la quam_fw-la unus_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o sese_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la et_fw-la implere_fw-la potuit_fw-la et_fw-la implevit_fw-la etc._n etc._n beza_n in_o rom._n 3._o v._n 27._o by_o what_o law_n that_o be_v by_o what_o doctrine_n as_o sometime_o among_o the_o jew_n the_o word_n torah_n law_n signify_v in_o general_a a_o doctrine_n which_o prescribe_v any_o thing_n according_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o gospel_n the_o awe_n of_o faith_n i._n e._n a_o doctrine_n which_o propose_v salvation_n on_o condition_n if_o thou_o believe_v which_o very_a condition_n god_n also_o give_v we_o power_n to_o perform_v and_o this_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o law_n which_o propose_v righteousness_n and_o salvation_n with_o the_o condition_n if_o thou_o shall_v do_v all_o which_o christ_n alone_o ●n_v himself_o can_v and_o do_v perform_v for_o we_o thus_o beza_n in_o who_o word_n the_o world_n may_v see_v plain_o that_o 1._o he_o say_v the_o word_n law_n among_o the_o jew_n signify_v indeed_o a_o doctrine_n but_o a_o doctrine_n that_o prescribe_v something_o 2._o that_o the_o law_n of_o work_n be_v a_o doctrine_n that_o prescribe_v work_n of_o perfect_a obedience_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o life_n 3._o that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n or_o gospel_n be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o prescribe_v faith_n as_o the_o condition_n and_o which_o propose_v salvation_n upon_o condition_n of_o believe_v 4._o that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n none_o but_o christ_n have_v perform_v or_o can_v perform_v 5._o that_o god_n give_v we_o power_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o the_o condition_n which_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n require_v to_o justification_n and_o that_o in_o beza_n judgement_n the_o law_n and_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o order_n to_o justification_n be_v evident_a also_o by_o what_o follow_v where_o he_o say_v that_o it_o do_v flagitare_fw-la require_v faith_n of_o we_o and_o faith_n only_o as_o that_o whereby_o we_o apprehend_v and_o receive_v the_o righteousness_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o and_o free_o give_v unto_o we_o for_o our_o justification_n and_o although_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n yet_o he_o show_v how_o it_o exclude_v all_o boast_n now_o this_o be_v the_o very_a sense_n which_o we_o give_v of_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n ●nd_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o propose_v and_o promise_n to_o we_o the_o great_a blessing_n of_o free_a justification_n by_o christ_n impute_a righteousness_n upon_o condition_n if_o we_o believe_v which_o condition_n god_n give_v we_o power_n to_o perform_v this_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n with_o what_o conscience_n do_v my_o reverend_a brother_n tell_v the_o world_n in_o print_n that_o beza_n be_v for_o he_o against_o we_o and_o that_o beza_n give_v the_o same_o sense_n of_o rom._n 3.27_o which_o he_o give_v and_o of_o this_o he_o give_v no_o other_o reason_n but_o this_o that_o beza_n call_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n a_o doctrine_n which_o can_v be_v no_o argument_n of_o his_o deny_v that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n command_v faith_n because_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o call_v the_o law_n of_o work_n a_o doctrine_n likewise_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o the_o law_n of_o work_n command_v work_n here_o again_o the_o poverty_n of_o mr._n g's_o discourse_n appear_v and_o not_o only_o that_o but_o its_o nakedness_n too_o in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o want_v a_o cover_n to_o hide_v its_o shame_n and_o by_o this_o i_o hope_v man_n eye_n will_v be_v oppen_v to_o see_v what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o who_o thus_o shameful_o abuse_v beza_n by_o clip_v his_o tongue_n and_o not_o suffer_v he_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n but_o father_v upon_o he_o a_o opinion_n which_o be_v most_o evident_o contrary_a unto_o his_o word_n 2._o here_o likewise_o i_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o old_a geneva_n translation_n of_o our_o english_a bibles_n which_o be_v of_o a_o hundred_o year_n stand_v at_o least_o there_o be_v this_o short_a note_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o by_o what_o doctrine_n now_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n have_v this_o condition_n join_v with_o it_o if_o thou_o do_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n have_v this_o condition_n if_o thou_o believe_v although_o then_o of_o old_a our_o forefather_n by_o law_n of_o faith_n understand_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n yet_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n and_o require_v the_o condition_n of_o believe_v and_o that_o make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o evangelical_n law_n just_a as_o we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v what_o he_o talk_v in_o pag._n 60.61_o 62._o of_o all_o the_o popish_a commentator_n on_o rom._n 3.27_o and_o of_o estin_n the_o jesuit_n etc._n etc._n be_v nothing_o but_o ad_fw-la populum_fw-la phalerae_fw-la and_o be_v partly_o impertinent_a and_o partly_o ridiculous_a 2._o second_o he_o say_v that_o gal._n 6.2_o refuse_v to_o serve_v my_o design_n but_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o apology_n page_n 22._o line_n 16_o 17._o that_o my_o whole_a design_n in_o quote_v gal._n 6.2_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o law_n and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v call_v there_o notwithstanding_o of_o what_o mr._n g._n say_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o though_o the_o word_n law_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o import_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n yet_o they_o import_v a_o part_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o preceptive_a part_n for_o certain_o he_o that_o love_v his_o neighbour_n as_o christ_n love_v he_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n and_o he_o that_o so_o believe_v in_o christ_n do_v certain_o fullfil_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-govenant_a and_o by_o consequence_n he_o that_o love_v his_o neighbour_n as_o christ_n love_v he_o do_v fulfil_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n as_o to_o what_o mr._n g._n object_n that_o estin_n on_o the_o place_n affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o man_n as_o a_o legislator_n who_o they_o may_v obey_v i_o answer_v that_o dr._n owen_n affirm_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o his_o express_a formal_a word_n quote_v before_o in_o the_o remark_n on_o the_o seven_o chapter_n it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v not_o there_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o legislator_n from_o gal._n 6.2_o but_o that_o be_v no_o matter_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v a_o legislator_n and_o then_o he_o have_v a_o evangelical_n law_n and_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n i_o for_o my_o part_n do_v like_o it_o never_o the_o worse_o because_o a_o adversary_n believe_v it_o i_o wish_v our_o adversary_n both_o papist_n and_o arminian_o do_v with_o we_o receive_v not_o only_o that_o but_o all_o other_o truth_n if_o mr._n g._n say_v that_o the_o word_n gospel_n or_o gospel-covenant_n be_v not_o express_v in_o gal._n 6.2_o i_o answer_v nor_o do_v i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v but_o there_o be_v express_o the_o word_n law_n and_o i_o think_v that_o sufficient_a to_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o i_o quote_v that_o text._n and_o though_o i_o shall_v pass_v
only_o to_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o 5_o century_n the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v call_v a_o law_n the_o christian-law_n this_o mr._n g._n do_v not_o deny_v but_o insinuate_v that_o by_o christian-law_n salvian_n mean_v nothing_o but_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v no_o precept_n and_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o but_o if_o my_o r._n b._n once_o read_v over_o all_o salvian_n and_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v i_o hope_v he_o will_v never_o be_v so_o shameless_a as_o to_o deny_v plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n for_o if_o i_o be_v put_v to_o it_o i_o shall_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v prove_v by_o his_o express_a word_n that_o he_o call_v the_o gospel_n not_o only_o the_o christian-law_n but_o the_o new-law_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o new-law_n which_o have_v precept_n that_o oblige_v to_o duty_n thus_o i_o have_v justify_v my_o citation_n out_o of_o the_o four_o father_n justin_n martyr_n cyprian_n augustin_n and_o salvian_n and_o have_v confirm_v and_o strengthen_v their_o testimony_n by_o show_v that_o they_o prove_v what_o they_o be_v cite_v for_o and_o more_o too_o now_o we_o must_v see_v what_o exception_n mr._n g._n bring_v against_o my_o modern_a witness_n and_o 1._o he_o except_v against_o bradwardin_n because_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n i_o answer_v behold_v here_o the_o justice_n and_o fair_a deal_n of_o those_o man_n with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v they_o bring_v bradwardin_n to_o witness_v for_o they_o against_o we_o and_o then_o he_o be_v a_o good_a witness_n though_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n but_o when_o we_o bring_v he_o to_o witness_v for_o we_o against_o they_o than_o he_o be_v no_o good_a witness_n and_o his_o testimony_n signify_v nothing_o because_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n the_o truth_n be_v we_o have_v not_o mention_v bradwardin_n in_o this_o cause_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v first_o public_o summon_v by_o mr._n g_n good_a friend_n our_o accuser_n to_o witness_v against_o we_o and_o if_o they_o will_v confess_v that_o they_o do_v foolish_o in_o first_o mention_v he_o against_o we_o they_o shall_v hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o from_o we_o as_o a_o witness_n against_o they_o for_o i_o declare_v i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o value_n his_o testimony_n mere_o as_o it_o be_v his_o testimony_n and_o i_o think_v that_o in_o the_o apol._n i_o have_v show_v sufficient_a reason_n why_o no_o true_a christian_n shall_v value_v his_o testimony_n mere_o because_o it_o be_v his_o testimony_n and_o that_o with_o a_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la notwithstanding_o that_o high_a esteem_n which_o mr._n g._n say_v he_o have_v obtain_v among_o men._n and_o yet_o because_o it_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n unlawful_a to_o belie_v either_o the_o pope_n or_o devil_n i_o must_v forbear_v say_v either_o that_o bradwardin_n assert_v work_n do_v by_o grace_n to_o be_v strict_o and_o proper_o meritorious_a or_o that_o with_o incomparable_a strength_n and_o closeness_n of_o reason_n he_o refute_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n in_o all_o point_n till_o mr._n goodwin_n have_v clear_o prove_v both_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n for_o i_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v both_o true_a and_o as_o to_o one_o of_o they_o i_o give_v one_o reason_n of_o my_o doubt_n in_o the_o apology_n p._n 164._o and_o another_o in_o p._n 133._o two_o he_o endeavour_v to_o elude_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n by_o say_v that_o they_o only_o mean_v that_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o large_a and_o improper_a sense_n may_v be_v term_v a_o law_n because_o there_o be_v precept_n command_n and_o threating_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n answ_n ah_o poor_a write_n i_o will_v i_o have_v wherewithal_o to_o cover_v thy_o nakedness_n but_o that_o be_v out_o of_o my_o power_n for_o the_o leyden_n professor_n give_v no_o such_o reason_n why_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v term_v a_o law_n because_o there_o be_v precept_n command_n and_o threaten_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o they_o say_v express_o as_o cite_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 27._o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v sometime_o call_v a_o law_n because_o it_o also_o have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n mark_v you_o 1._o they_o do_v not_o say_v it_o may_v be_v improper_o call_v a_o law_n but_o that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o law_n 2._o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o law_n because_o there_o be_v precept_n command_n and_o threaten_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o because_o it_o also_o have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n that_o be_v plain_o that_o as_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o work_n have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n so_o also_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n three_o as_o the_o promise_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v its_o own_o so_o be_v the_o commandment_n and_o threaten_n of_o it_o its_o own_o but_o the_o promise_n be_v its_o own_o because_o they_o proper_o belong_v to_o it_o then_o also_o be_v the_o commandment_n and_o threaten_n be_v own_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n because_o they_o proper_o belong_v to_o it_o for_o the_o worthy_a and_o learned_a professor_n make_v no_o difference_n but_o say_v that_o commandment_n promise_n and_o threaten_n be_v all_o its_o own_o now_o this_o be_v the_o very_a true_a reason_n why_o i_o according_a to_o scripture_n call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n as_o for_o what_o mr._n g._n disc_n p._n 67._o cite_v out_o of_o polyander_n there_o it_o make_v nothing_o against_o what_o he_o say_v here_o in_o the_o passage_n now_o under_o consideration_n but_o at_o the_o most_o show_v that_o gospel_n be_v a_o word_n of_o various_a signification_n which_o i_o have_v free_o grant_v and_o full_o speak_v to_o before_o and_o as_o polyander_n renounce_v the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n opinion_n concern_v the_o new_a law_n so_o do_v i_o and_o my_o brethren_n renounce_v the_o selfsame_a opinion_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o orthodox_n ancient_n and_o modern_a divine_n we_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n and_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o other_o word_n a_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v command_n promise_n and_o threaten_n of_o its_o own_o three_o he_o endeavour_v to_o put_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o gomarus_n by_o say_v that_o he_o understand_v the_o gospel_n in_o its_o large_a acceptation_n when_o he_o call_v it_o a_o law_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o i_o and_o pretend_v to_o have_v make_v this_o out_o in_o the_o 34th_o page_n of_o his_o discourse_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v his_o reader_n answ_n in_o my_o remark_n and_o animadversion_n on_o his_o six_o chapter_n i_o have_v clear_o and_o full_o refute_v that_o part_n of_o his_o discourse_n and_o show_v how_o gross_o he_o abuse_v gomarus_n by_o wrest_v his_o word_n to_o a_o absurd_a sense_n which_o they_o be_v no_o way_n capable_a of_o to_o wit_n that_o there_o the_o word_n gospel_n be_v not_o take_v by_o gomarus_n for_o god_n covenant_n of_o grace_n only_o but_o for_o all_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o bible_n that_o be_v all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o prove_v from_o gomarus_n his_o own_o word_n that_o by_o the_o word_n gospel_n he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v understand_v there_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o that_o real_o he_o there_o understand_v by_o the_o gospel_n the_o very_a covenant_n of_o grace_n itself_o both_o discover_v to_o and_o make_v with_o man_n and_o record_v in_o the_o book_n both_o of_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o likewise_o that_o there_o he_o call_v the_o same_o covenant_n of_o grace_n god_n law_n because_o of_o the_o duty_n require_v in_o it_o and_o the_o condition_n prescribe_v by_o it_o to_o which_o i_o shall_v only_o add_v now_o that_o in_o the_o apology_n p._n 100_o i_o cite_v the_o 29_o position_n which_o gomarus_n lay_v down_o next_o before_o the_o 30_o that_o here_o be_v under_o consideration_n and_o in_o that_o 29_o position_n he_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v god_n covenant_n because_o it_o promulgate_n the_o mutual_a obligation_n of_o god_n and_o man_n concern_v the_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n upon_o their_o perform_v a_o certain_a condition_n and_o that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o covenant_n concern_v free_a salvation_n by_o christ_n because_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o mere_a grace_n publish_v and_o offer_v unto_o all_o man_n whatsoever_o on_o condition_n of_o true_a faith_n not_o only_a christ_n and_o perfect_a righteousness_n in_o he_o for_o reconciliation_n and_o eternal_a life_n but_o also_o he_o
of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o apostle_n do_v express_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o new_a law_n 3_o because_o many_o or_o our_o reform_a divine_n since_o the_o reformation_n have_v call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n the_o synod_n of_o dort_n do_v so_o call_v it_o with_o approbation_n as_o i_o have_v read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n see_v act._n synod_n dordrect_v part_n 2._o p._n 104._o and_o part_v 3._o p._n 124._o and_o 139._o and_o 208._o that_o excellent_a person_n mr._n hugh_n binning_n call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n in_o his_o sinner_n sanctuary_n on_o rom._n 8.2_o p._n 72._o and_o mr._n durham_n express_o call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n durham_n on_o the_o revelation_n first_o edit_n p._n 259._o for_o these_o reason_n i_o hold_v it_o very_o lawful_a to_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n and_o yet_o if_o my_o reverend_a brother_n please_v i_o will_v agree_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o term_n and_o with_o the_o proviso_n aforesaid_a to_o lay_v aside_o the_o word_n new_a and_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n and_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o agree_v to_o the_o term_n and_o condition_n beforementioned_a then_o be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o man_n who_o it_o may_v concern_v that_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n of_o i_o that_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n for_o i_o have_v offer_v to_o deny_v myself_o the_o use_n of_o my_o just_a liberty_n for_o peace_n sake_n and_o more_o i_o can_v do_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o therefore_o through_o grace_n will_v not_o do_v it_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n often_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n and_o i_o have_v prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n therefore_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n and_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o treatning_n and_o as_o i_o believe_v so_o i_o speak_v and_o write_v i_o impose_v on_o no_o man_n conscience_n and_o i_o hope_v no_o protestant_n will_v seek_v to_o impose_v upon_o i_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v my_o inward_a belief_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o intend_v through_o grace_n to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o that_o faith_n but_o as_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n new_a law_n simple_o and_o without_o any_o addition_n of_o something_o that_o may_v explain_v their_o meaning_n i_o be_o content_a on_o the_o term_n aforesaid_a to_o forbear_v it_o as_o beza_n desire_v but_o if_o my_o r._n brother_n do_v not_o agree_v to_o the_o term_n mention_v than_o i_o be_o at_o liberty_n and_o will_v endeavour_v to_o use_v my_o liberty_n as_o prudence_n and_o charity_n shall_v direct_v in_o call_v or_o not_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n for_o though_o i_o can_v forbear_v call_v it_o by_o that_o name_n yet_o i_o can_v believe_v nor_o say_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a so_o to_o call_v it_o i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o tertullian_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o his_o time_n i._n e._n near_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o before_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n be_v bear_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o creed_n universal_o believe_v by_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n that_o christ_n preach_v the_o new_a law_n and_o promise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whereby_o tertullian_n mean_v the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o that_o which_o require_v duty_n and_o prescribe_v condition_n unto_o man_n and_o promise_n blessing_n and_o benefit_n for_o christ_n sake_n unto_o those_o who_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n perform_v the_o duty_n and_o condition_n prescribe_v whereof_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a be_v faith_n in_o christ_n this_o be_v evident_a by_o what_o he_o write_v in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o jew_n chap._n 1._o p._n 122._o and_o chap._n 2._o p._n 125._o and_o chap._n 6._o p._n 131._o and_o in_o his_o four_o and_o five_o book_n against_o martion_n etc._n etc._n lib._n 5._o c._n 3._o his_o word_n in_o his_o book_n of_o prescription_n against_o heretic_n be_v as_o follow_v 1550._o follow_v regula_n est_fw-la autem_fw-la fidei_fw-la ut_fw-la jam_fw-la hinc_fw-la quid_fw-la defendamus_fw-la profiteamur_fw-la illa_fw-la scilicet_fw-la qua_fw-la creditur_fw-la unum_fw-la omnino_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la nec_fw-la alium_fw-la praeter_fw-la mundi_fw-la conditorem_fw-la qui_fw-la universa_fw-la ex_fw-la nihilo_fw-la produxerit_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la suum_fw-la primo_fw-la omnium_fw-la emissum_fw-la id_fw-la verbum_fw-la filius_fw-la ejus_fw-la appellatum_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la dei_fw-la vary_v visum_fw-la patriarchis_fw-la in_fw-la prophetis_fw-la semper_fw-la auditum_fw-la postremò_fw-la delatum_fw-la ex_fw-la spiritu_fw-la dei_fw-la et_fw-la virtute_fw-la in_o virginem_fw-la mariam_n carnem_fw-la factum_fw-la in_o utero_fw-la ejus_fw-la et_fw-la ex_fw-la ea_fw-la natum_fw-la hominem_fw-la et_fw-la esse_fw-la jesum_fw-la christum_fw-la exinde_fw-la praedicasse_fw-la novam_fw-la legem_fw-la et_fw-la novam_fw-la promissionem_fw-la regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la virtutes_fw-la fecisse_fw-la fixum_fw-la cruci_fw-la tertia_fw-la die_fw-la resurrexisse_fw-la in_o caele_n ereptum_fw-la sedisse_fw-la ad_fw-la dextram_fw-la patris_fw-la misisse_fw-la vicariam_fw-la vim_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la qui_fw-la credentes_fw-la agate_n venturum_fw-la cum_fw-la claritate_fw-la ad_fw-la sumendos_fw-la sanctos_fw-la in_o aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la et_fw-la promissorum_fw-la coelestium_fw-la fructum_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la prophanos_fw-la judicandos_fw-la igni_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la facta_fw-la utriusque_fw-la partis_fw-la resuscitatione_n cum_fw-la carnis_fw-la restitutione_n haec_fw-la regul●_n a_o christo_fw-la ut_fw-la probabitur_fw-la instituta_fw-la nulla_fw-la habet_fw-la a_o put_fw-mi nos_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la nisi_fw-la quas_fw-la haereses_fw-la inferun●_n et_fw-la quae_fw-la haereticos_fw-la faciunt_fw-la tertull._n lib._n the_o prescript_n adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la p._n 100_o edit_fw-la basil_n 1550._o but_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v now_o hereby_o profess_v what_o we_o defend_v be_v that_o to_o wit_n whereby_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n who_o produce_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o by_o his_o word_n who_o first_o before_o all_o creature_n proceed_v from_o he_o or_o be_v beget_v by_o he_o that_o that_o word_n call_v his_o son_n various_o appear_v to_o the_o patriach_n in_o god_n name_n be_v always_o hear_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o at_o last_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v make_v flesh_n in_o her_o womb_n and_o of_o she_o be_v bear_v a_o man_n and_o be_v jesus_n christ_n that_o afterward_o he_o preach_v the_o new_a law_n and_o new_a promise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wrought_v miracle_n be_v crucify_a rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n and_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right-hand_a of_o god_n that_o he_o send_v the_o vicarious_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o may_v influence_n and_o guide_n those_o who_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v come_v again_o in_o glory_n to_o take_v up_o the_o saint_n into_o the_o possession_n or_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a blessedness_n promise_v and_o to_o judge_n and_o condemn_v the_o profane_a unto_o eternal_a fire_n after_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o both_o party_n to_o wit_v the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a have_v restore_v their_o flesh_n or_o body_n to_o they_o this_o rule_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v it_o admit_v of_o no_o controversy_n among_o we_o christian_n but_o those_o which_o heresy_n introduce_v and_o which_o make_v man_n heretic_n finis_fw-la
remark_n on_o the_o r._n mr._n goodwin_n discourse_v of_o the_o gospel_n prove_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n answer_v his_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o rescue_v the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o many_o passage_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n both_o ancient_n and_o modern_a from_o the_o false_a gloss_n which_o he_o force_v upon_o they_o by_o william_n lorimer_n minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o gospel_n require_v both_o faith_n and_o repentance_n or_o new_a obedience_n against_o this_o the_o flaccian_a sectary_n keep_v a_o stir_n etc._n etc._n zach._n vrsin_n sum_n of_o christian_a religion_n english_a translation_n pag._n 131._o london_n 1645._o si_fw-mi conversus_fw-la fueris_fw-la &_o ingemueris_fw-la salvus_fw-la eris_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la testimonio_fw-la conditionali_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o praecepto_fw-la utitur_fw-la &_o promisso_fw-la dicens_fw-la quip_n si_fw-la conversus_fw-la fueris_fw-la etc._n etc._n ostendit_fw-la ex_fw-la conversionis_fw-la conditione_n promissionem_fw-la salutis_fw-la omnino_fw-la pendere_fw-la etc._n etc._n dicit_fw-la igitur_fw-la dominus_fw-la si_fw-la hoc_fw-la feceris_fw-la hoc_fw-la habebis_fw-la si_fw-mi parueris_fw-la praecepto_fw-la potieris_fw-la beneficio_fw-la fulgent_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la peceat_fw-la remissione_n cap._n 11._o london_n print_v for_o john_n laurence_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o poultry_n 1696._o errata_fw-la page_n 2._o line_n 39_o read_v not_o pr_v 3._o l._n 7._o r._n that_o it_o be_v p._n 5._o l._n 30._o r._n righteousness_n p._n 7._o l._n 46._o r._n that_o man_n must_v p._n 10._o l._n 23._o r._n falsum_fw-la p._n 10_o l._n 49._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 11._o l._n 9_o r._n to_o this_o p._n 48._o l._n 1._o r._n l0_n p._n 62_o l._n 49._o for_o at_o r._n ad_fw-la p._n 85._o l._n 48._o r._n tom._n 2._o p._n 87._o l._n 30._o r._n into_o p._n 88_o l._n 45._o r._n mutila_fw-la p._n 99_o l._n 45._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o l._n 48._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o thereby_o r._n whereby_o p._n 112_o l._n 17._o r._n bid_v p._n 113._o l._n 34._o for_o perculiar_a r._n peculiar_a p._n 119._o l._n 26._o for_o hus_o r._n thus_o p._n 130._o l._n ult_n r._n etiam_fw-la p._n 133._o l._n 23._o r._n we_o do_v not_o and_o l._n 49._o after_o scripturae_fw-la r._n occulta_fw-la autem_fw-la sit_fw-la eadem_fw-la quia_fw-la p._n 136._o l._n 49._o for_o ust_o r._n just_a p._n 139._o at_o the_o end_n for_o can_fw-mi r._n adjuvare_fw-la p._n 142._o l._n 33._o r._n internis_fw-la l._n 46._o r._n ipsis_fw-la p._n 148._o l._n 43._o r._n efficitur_fw-la et_fw-la hoc_fw-la i_o negare_fw-la dico_fw-la inquit_fw-la triglandius_n p._n 159._o l._n 43._o r._n law_n p._n 162._o l._n 32._o r._n at_o all_o p._n 163._o l._n 46._o r._n of_o jew_n ibid._n l._n 50._o r._n whereof_o p._n 166._o l._n 42._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 176._o l._n 12._o for_o hold_n r._n hold_v what_o other_o errata_fw-la may_v be_v in_o regard_n of_o a_o letter_n or_o wrong_v point_v the_o courteous_a reader_n be_v desire_v to_o mend_v they_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n those_o who_o have_v attentive_o read_v our_o apology_n and_o have_v see_v how_o full_o and_o clear_o we_o vindicate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o calumny_n wherewith_o the_o r._n b._n our_o accuser_n have_v asperse_v we_o in_o his_o letter_n of_o information_n may_v possible_o wonder_v to_o find_v the_o reverend_n mr._n goodwin_n come_v in_o to_o the_o accuser_n assistance_n and_o undertake_v to_o make_v good_a the_o same_o charge_n against_o we_o that_o we_o be_v corrupter_n of_o the_o old_a and_o preacher_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o people_n soul_n see_v the_o preface_n to_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o chap._n 4._o pag._n 25._o lin._n 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o and_o chap._n 9_o pag._n 74._o lin._n 11_o 12_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25_o 26_o 32_o 33._o but_o if_o they_o due_o consider_v mr._n goodwin_n principle_n they_o may_v cease_v wonder_v for_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v no_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v that_o it_o have_v neither_o precept_n nor_o conditional_a promise_n nor_o threaten_v of_o its_o own_o at_o all_o and_o so_o that_o it_o require_v no_o duty_n at_o all_o not_o so_o much_o as_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o consequent_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n the_o hold_v of_o this_o opinion_n he_o judge_v to_o be_v of_o high_a importance_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n see_v epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n pag._n 1._o lin_v 15_o 16._o for_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v afraid_a that_o if_o the_o gospel_n have_v any_o precept_n of_o its_o own_o and_o require_v any_o duty_n or_o threaten_v any_o sinner_n then_o be_v be_v undo_v and_o that_o if_o 54._o if_o see_v his_o disc_n p._n 54._o christ_n as_o mediator_n be_v judge_n than_o he_o shall_v be_v condemn_v now_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o wonder_n at_o all_o that_o a_o man_n of_o such_o principle_n do_v accuse_v we_o and_o make_v a_o clamour_n against_o we_o as_o dangerous_a person_n for_o indeed_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o his_o church_n through_o the_o mediator_n jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v not_o only_o absolute_a promise_n but_o have_v also_o precept_n conditional_a promise_n and_o threaten_n of_o its_o own_o that_o it_o require_v some_o duty_n and_o that_o those_o who_o neglect_v to_o perform_v such_o duty_n be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n not_o only_o against_o the_o moral_a law_n but_o against_o the_o gospel_n also_o we_o do_v likewise_o believe_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n do_v belong_v to_o a_o mediator_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v both_o mediator_n and_o judge_n and_o that_o as_o judge_v he_o will_v condemn_v some_o yea_o many_o impenitent_a unbeliever_n for_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o contradictory_n opposition_n between_o the_o gospel_n which_o we_o stand_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o with_o a_o resolution_n through_o grace_n so_o to_o do_v 38._o do_v see_v mark_n 8.36_o 37_o 38._o and_o the_o gospel_n that_o mr._n goodwin_n will_v obtrude_v upon_o the_o world_n which_o we_o think_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o true_a gospel_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v the_o error_n of_o flacius_n illyricus_n which_o be_v condemn_v and_o explode_v by_o famous_a orthodox_n divine_v of_o the_o reform_a church_n long_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o i_o hope_v the_o reverend_a mr_n trail_n will_v yet_o join_v with_o we_o in_o condemn_v that_o error_n of_o the_o flacian_o as_o no_o part_n of_o christ_n gospel_n but_o a_o very_a gross_a and_o dangerous_a mistake_n especial_o as_o improve_v by_o mr._n goodwin_n but_o whether_o he_o will_v do_v so_o or_o not_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o late_a reverend_n and_o learned_a dr._n owen_n and_o his_o worthy_a successor_n mr._n clarkson_n be_v of_o the_o same_o faith_n with_o we_o and_o be_v on_o our_o side_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o 1._o dr._n owen_n in_o his_o 3d_o volume_n on_o the_o hebrew_n pa._n 220._o li._n 4_o 5_o 6._o say_v that_o the_o first_o promise_n gen._n 3.15_o have_v in_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o covenant_n ground_v on_o a_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o require_v obedience_n in_o all_o that_o receive_v the_o promise_n and_o pag._n 221._o on_o heb._n 8.6_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o new_a covenant_n be_v now_o so_o bring_v in_o as_o to_o become_v the_o entire_a rule_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n obedience_n and_o worship_n in_o all_o thing_n this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d establish_v say_v we_o but_o it_o be_v reduce_v into_o a_o fix_a state_n of_o a_o law_n or_o ordinance_n etc._n etc._n again_o p_o 222._o every_o covenant_n say_v the_o dr._n that_o be_v propose_v unto_o man_n and_o accept_v by_o they_o require_v somewhat_o to_o be_v perform_v on_o their_o part_n otherwise_o it_o be_v no_o covenant_n again_o in_o pag._n 22●_n i_o dr._n owen_n do_v not_o say_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v absolute_a without_o condition_n if_o by_o condition_n we_o intend_v the_o duty_n of_o obedience_n which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o covenant_n and_o then_o from_o pag._n 235_o etc._n etc._n the_o dr._n in_o many_o particular_n assign_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o old_a sinai_n covenant_n as_o such_o and_o the_o new_a gospel-covenant_n when_o he_o give_v the_o five_o difference_n he_o say_v that_o the_o new_a covenant_n have_v for_o its_o precept_n the_o decalogue_n with_o some_o positive_a law_n and_o for_o its_o promise_n they_o be_v
most_o of_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a blessing_n thus_o dr._n owen_n in_o which_o passage_n and_o other_o that_o i_o have_v cite_v out_o of_o his_o write_n he_o agree_v with_o we_o exact_o and_o assert_n what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n as_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o 2._o mr._n clarkson_n in_o his_o book_n of_o sermon_n and_o discourse_n on_o several_a divine_a subject_n new_o print_v 1696_o and_o commend_v to_o the_o reader_n by_o the_o reverend_n mr._n how_o and_o mr._n mead._n in_o the_o sermon_n on_o luke_n 13.3_o pag._n 10._o his_o observation_n be_v that_o repentance_n be_v a_o evangelical_n duty_n a_o gospel_n a_o new_a covenant_n duty_n this_o shall_v not_o be_v question_v by_o those_o who_o either_o believe_v what_o the_o gospel_n deliver_v or_o understand_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v evangelical_n but_o since_o it_o be_v deny_v let_v we_o prove_v it_o and_o then_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o twelve_o argument_n after_o this_o in_o p._n 12_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o application_n of_o this_o doctrine_n he_o say_v it_o reprove_v those_o who_o reject_v this_o duty_n as_o legal_a certain_o those_o who_o find_v not_o this_o in_o the_o gospel_n have_v find_v another_o gospel_n beside_o that_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n preach_v but_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n lest_o whilst_o they_o will_v go_v to_o heaven_n in_o a_o way_n of_o their_o own_o that_o way_n prove_v a_o by_o path_n and_o lead_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o death_n instead_o of_o the_o place_n of_o joy_n no_o way_n but_o christ_n will_v bring_v to_o heaven_n and_o that_o have_v three_o stage_n faith_n repentance_n and_o obedience_n he_o that_o will_v sit_v down_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o and_o never_o enter_v upon_o the_o second_o will_v never_o reach_v heaven_n indeed_o he_o that_o walk_v not_o in_o all_o walk_v not_o in_o any_o he_o be_v delude_v mislead_v by_o a_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la a_o false_a fire_n and_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o undeceive_v he_o will_v fall_v into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o in_o p._n 20._o he_o say_v no_o repentance_n no_o pardon_n it_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o it_o be_v the_o condition_n without_o which_o no_o remission_n solomon_n will_v not_o ask_v pardon_n but_o upon_o this_o condition_n 2_o chro._n 6.26_o 27._o nor_o do_v the_o lord_n answer_v he_o but_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n chap._n 7.14_o in_o fine_a for_o understand_v the_o matter_n he_o be_v there_o treat_v of_o he_o desire_v we_o to_o observe_v three_o proposition_n 1._o prop._n all_o sin_n be_v pardon_v upon_o the_o first_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n but_o though_o all_o be_v then_o pardon_v yet_o not_o all_o alike_o therefore_o observe_v 2._o sin_n past_a and_o repent_v of_o be_v pardon_v absolute_o because_o the_o condition_n be_v present_a and_o where_o the_o condition_n be_v present_a that_o which_o be_v conditional_a become_v absolute_a 3._o future_a sin_n or_o sin_n unrepented_a of_o be_v but_o pardon_v to_o a_o believer_n conditional_o because_o the_o condition_n of_o pardon_n be_v not_o in_o be_v be_v future_a he_o have_v not_o yet_o repent_v for_o those_o sin_n etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o reverend_n learned_a and_o pious_a mr._n clarkson_n see_v what_o follow_v there_o immediate_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o wilful_a sin_n which_o believer_n fall_v into_o after_o conversion_n though_o at_o first_o conversion_n they_o be_v pardon_v virtual_o and_o conditional_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o pardon_v formal_o and_o absolute_o they_o be_v not_o actual_o pardon_v till_o the_o guilty_a believer_n have_v actual_o renew_v his_o faith_n and_o repentance_n now_o these_o two_o worthy_a minister_n of_o christ_n dr._n owen_n and_o mr._n clarkson_n be_v no_o amyraldian_n and_o since_o we_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o this_o point_n and_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o they_o teach_v before_o we_o mr._n goodwin_n in_o his_o preface_n do_v very_o impertinent_o mention_v the_o opposition_n make_v to_o amyrald_n in_o france_n preface_n see_v the_o end_n of_o his_o preface_n and_o it_o be_v not_o fair_a nor_o just_a to_o do_v it_o with_o a_o manifest_a design_n to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o he_o dangerous_o err_v in_o this_o point_n and_o we_o with_o he_o for_o to_o hold_v the_o gospel-covenant_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o so_o to_o be_v be_v none_o of_o amyrald_n singular_a or_o erroneous_a opinion_n for_o which_o he_o be_v tax_v by_o his_o adversary_n beyond_o the_o sea_n nay_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v one_o of_o his_o singular_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v common_a to_o his_o adversary_n with_o he_o and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a they_o and_o he_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n in_o believe_v the_o gospel-covenant_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o aforesaid_a some_o of_o they_o i_o know_v be_v but_o whether_o they_o be_v all_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la agree_v in_o this_o or_o not_o for_o i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o know_v they_o all_o yet_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o reveal_v truth_n that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v a_o law_n a_o law_n of_o grace_n especial_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o elect_n all_o christian_n ought_v to_o agree_v to_o it_o and_o to_o receive_v it_o with_o faith_n and_o love_n notwithstanding_o all_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o now_o that_o it_o be_v a_o reveal_v truth_n i_o think_v i_o have_v clear_o prove_v in_o the_o follow_a remark_n and_o animadversion_n on_o mr._n goodwin_n book_n and_o have_v also_o answer_v all_o his_o objection_n against_o it_o that_o my_o proof_n and_o answer_n be_v good_a solid_a and_o sufficient_a i_o be_o full_o convince_v and_o firm_o persuade_v in_o my_o own_o mind_n yet_o i_o desire_v no_o man_n to_o believe_v it_o upon_o my_o bare_a word_n but_o advise_v all_o man_n who_o be_v concern_v and_o into_o who_o hand_n my_o book_n shall_v come_v to_o read_v consider_v and_o then_o judge_v of_o my_o proof_n and_o answer_n and_o believe_v as_o they_o will_v answer_v to_o god_n according_a to_o the_o evidence_n which_o i_o have_v offer_v for_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v assert_v in_o this_o matter_n i_o have_v purposely_o avoid_v imitate_v my_o reverend_a brother_n declamatory_n way_n of_o write_v because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o good_a a_o way_n to_o clear_v up_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o inform_v the_o judgement_n as_o it_o be_v to_o engage_v the_o affection_n to_o a_o opinion_n or_o party_n and_o whether_o with_o or_o without_o judgement_n all_o be_v one_o to_o some_o who_o design_n be_v only_o to_o make_v or_o strengthen_v a_o party_n i_o sincere_o protest_v that_o i_o do_v not_o write_v for_o such_o a_o end_n and_o therefore_o i_o use_v no_o such_o mean_n i_o likewise_o remember_v that_o justin_n martyr_n in_o his_o paraenetical_a discourse_n to_o the_o greek_n pag._n 32._o say_v that_o such_o a_o rhetorical_a declamatory_n way_n of_o write_v be_v 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proper_a unto_o those_o who_o design_n to_o cheat_v people_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o steal_v it_o away_o from_o they_o and_o john_n picus_n earl_n of_o mirandula_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o hermolaus_n barbarus_fw-la say_v that_o vir_fw-la that_o si_fw-mi non_fw-la desipit_fw-la audiror_fw-la a_o fucato_fw-la sermone_fw-la quid_fw-la sperat_fw-la alìud_fw-la quam_fw-la insidias_fw-la tribus_fw-la maximè_fw-la persuadetur_fw-la vitâ_fw-la docentis_fw-la veritate_fw-la rei_fw-la sobrietate_fw-la orationis_fw-la hermol_n barbaro_n epist_n 4._o in_o vol._n epist_n illu_v vir_fw-la if_o a_o hearer_n and_o so_o if_o a_o reader_n be_v not_o a_o fool_n what_o do_v he_o expect_v but_o to_o be_v ensnare_v by_o a_o fair_a paint_a speech_n but_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n that_o be_v most_o fit_a and_o proper_a mean_n whereby_o to_o move_v and_o persuade_v the_o mind_n of_o man._n 1_o the_o good_a life_n of_o the_o teacher_n 2._o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n teach_v 3._o a_o sober_a plain_a unaffected_a way_n of_o speech_n in_o teach_v this_o be_v the_o way_n the_o lord_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n of_o old_a use_v to_o persuade_v man_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o practice_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o do_v after_o their_o example_n have_v renounce_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o dishonesty_n not_o walk_v in_o craftiness_n 4.2_o 2_o cor._n 4.2_o nor_o handle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n deceitful_o we_o shall_v by_o manifestation_n of_o the_o truth_n commend_v ourselves_o to_o every_o man_n conscience_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n this_o i_o have_v sincere_o desire_v and_o endeavour_v to_o do_v as_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o see_v i_o and_o will_v judge_v i_o i_o have_v labour_v not_o to_o corrupt_v the_o gospel_n nor_o suffer_v it_o
be_v awake_a and_o in_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o his_o reason_n how_o then_o it_o come_v to_o be_v in_o this_o reverend_a brother_n book_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_o state_v of_o the_o controversy_n i_o do_v not_o understand_v but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o i_o nor_o any_o of_o my_o reverend_a brethren_n that_o i_o know_v do_v not_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n in_o that_o sense_n we_o do_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n join_v with_o mr._n goodwin_n in_o deny_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v condition_n of_o obtain_v its_o blessing_n what_o we_o say_v be_v that_o god_n have_v make_v the_o perform_n of_o the_o duty_n require_v by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n law_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o obtain_v its_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o that_o not_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o performance_n or_o of_o the_o duty_n perform_v but_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n three_o in_o state_v the_o controversy_n he_o deny_v that_o the_o gospel_n law_n of_o grace_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v any_o sanction_n either_o promissory_a of_o life_n and_o happiness_n unto_o those_o who_o perform_v the_o condition_n or_o minatory_n of_o punishment_n to_o those_o who_o neglect_v it_o now_o here_o i_o must_v differ_v from_o he_o and_o affirm_v what_o he_o deny_v but_o 1._o i_o affirm_v it_o with_o this_o difference_n between_o the_o promissory_a and_o minatory_a sanction_n that_o the_o gospel_n primary_o and_o principal_o promise_v its_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n to_o those_o who_o perform_v its_o condition_n and_o do_v but_o secondary_o threaten_v punishment_n against_o those_o who_o neglect_v to_o perform_v it_o design_v thereby_o to_o restrain_v man_n from_o the_o sin_n of_o not_o perform_v the_o condition_n and_o to_o bind_v they_o over_o to_o punishment_n only_o on_o supposition_n that_o they_o do_v not_o perform_v the_o condition_n 2._o i_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o gospel_n promise_v life_n and_o happiness_n unto_o those_o who_o perform_v its_o condition_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o promise_v it_o precise_o for_o the_o performance_n sake_n but_o only_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n as_o it_o threaten_v punishment_n unto_o those_o who_o neglect_v to_o perform_v the_o condition_n and_o that_o for_o the_o very_a neglect_n of_o perform_v it_o heb._n 2.3_o ephes_n 5.6_o col._n 3.6_o some_o i_o be_o afraid_a will_v be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o mr._n goodwin_n stumble_v on_o the_o threshold_n at_o his_o first_o set_v out_o and_o mistate_v the_o controversy_n be_v a_o bad_a omen_n for_o he_o then_o in_o pass_v from_o his_o first_o to_o his_o second_o chapter_n he_o promise_v first_o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v little_a to_o my_o purpose_n to_o catch_v eager_o at_o the_o word_n law_n wherever_o i_o can_v meet_v with_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o write_n of_o men._n answ_n by_o this_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o do_v not_o consider_v nor_o understand_v what_o my_o purpose_n be_v for_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noon_n day_n that_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n who_o charge_v we_o with_o novelty_n in_o call_v the_o gospel_n covenant_n a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v gross_o mistake_v and_o that_o in_o confident_o affirm_v against_o we_o that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n but_o of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n he_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o his_o brethren_n and_o assert_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n this_o be_v my_o purpose_n and_o design_n as_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o apology_n p._n 24._o and_o it_o be_v so_o i_o appeal_v to_o all_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n if_o they_o have_v but_o common_a honesty_n also_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o very_o much_o to_o my_o purpose_n to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o by_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a orthodox_n christian_n and_o modern_a protestant_a divine_n that_o law_n and_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n apply_v to_o and_o affirm_v of_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n and_o yet_o i_o need_v not_o eager_o to_o catch_v at_o the_o word_n law_n for_o it_o occur_v so_o frequent_o in_o ancient_a write_n that_o a_o man_n who_o read_v they_o can_v avoid_v meet_v with_o it_o it_o offer_v itself_o to_o he_o almost_o at_o every_o turn_n and_o now_o mr._n g._n join_v with_o we_o against_o our_o accuser_n and_o do_v further_a prove_v he_o to_o have_v be_v gross_o mistake_v by_o show_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o a_o new_a word_n but_o of_o a_o old_a ill_a meaning_n on_o the_o contrary_n he_o demonstrate_v it_o to_o be_v a_o old_a word_n but_o pretend_v that_o now_o among_o we_o it_o have_v a_o new_a and_o ill_a meaning_n by_o this_o the_o people_n may_v see_v if_o they_o will_v but_o open_v their_o eye_n how_o well_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o two_o brethren_n against_o we_o do_v agree_v the_o first_o say_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n the_o second_o who_o come_v to_o defend_v he_o and_o enforce_v his_o charge_n against_o we_o say_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o old_a word_n of_o a_o new_a but_o ill_a meaning_n but_o it_o seem_v however_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o their_o testimony_n be_v yet_o they_o must_v be_v both_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a against_o we_o for_o neither_o of_o these_o brethren_n will_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v mistake_v and_o have_v do_v we_o wrong_n no_o they_o be_v both_o in_o the_o right_a though_o the_o one_o say_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a meaning_n and_o the_o other_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o old_a word_n of_o a_o new_a meaning_n but_o it_o may_v be_v some_o will_v reply_v that_o they_o both_o agree_v at_o least_o that_o it_o be_v a_o word_n of_o a_o ill-meaning_n answ_n true_o but_o 1._o for_o all_o that_o agreement_n they_o yet_o refute_v one_o another_o for_o the_o first_o accuser_n say_v that_o the_o old_a meaning_n be_v ill_a but_o reverend_a mr._n goodwin_n maintain_v that_o the_o old_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n be_v good_a and_o pretend_v that_o the_o new_a only_o be_v ill_a 2._o if_o these_o two_o brethren_n do_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o word_n itself_o whether_o it_o be_v old_a or_o new_a but_o the_o one_o say_v it_o be_v new_a and_o the_o other_o say_v it_o be_v old_a and_o therefore_o one_o of_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v mistake_v we_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v mistake_v about_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n and_o in_o say_v that_o be_v a_o word_n of_o a_o ill_a meaning_n because_o it_o be_v much_o more_o difficult_a to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o true_a or_o false_a right_a or_o wrong_a meaning_n of_o a_o word_n then_o to_o know_v the_o word_n itself_o whether_o it_o be_v late_o invent_v or_o have_v be_v of_o very_o ancient_a usage_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n remark_n on_o the_o second_o chapter_n in_o this_o chapter_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o various_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n law_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o word_n law_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n use_v for_o the_o gospel_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o a_o doctrine_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o i_o free_o grant_v and_o never_o yet_o deny_v that_o the_o word_n law_n be_v capable_a of_o a_o various_a meaning_n nor_o do_v i_o in_o the_o apology_n from_o the_o bare_a sound_n of_o the_o word_n abstract_o consider_v so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o argue_v for_o one_o particular_a determinate_a sense_n exclusive_a of_o all_o other_o i_o only_o say_v p._n 22._o that_o our_o brethren_n shall_v not_o dislike_v our_o calling_n the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o law_n because_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n call_v it_o so_o express_o and_o this_o mr._n goodwin_n do_v now_o confess_v to_o be_v true_a likewise_o p._n 24._o from_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 3.27_o and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v by_o grace_n rom._n 4.16_o i_o argue_v that_o he_o have_v in_o effect_n and_o by_o implication_n call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v no_o innovator_n in_o call_v it_o so_o after_o he_o 2._o mr._n g._n can_v never_o prove_v that_o because_o the_o word_n law_n be_v of_o a_o various_a signification_n and_o sometime_o signify_v a_o doctrine_n that_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v use_v for_o the_o gospel_n it_o signify_v nothing_o but_o a_o speculative_a doctrine_n or_o narrative_n
clemens_n alexandrinus_n eusebius_n chrysostom_n origen_n theodoret_n with_o photius_n to_o show_v that_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d law_n they_o signify_v a_o doctrine_n but_o these_o quotation_n serve_v only_o ad_fw-la pompam_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la pugnam_fw-la for_o they_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o impertinent_o allege_v against_o i_o and_o do_v not_o prove_v any_o thing_n that_o i_o deny_v except_o two_o word_n out_o of_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n of_o which_o by_o and_o by_o for_o 1._o i_o grant_v that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n as_o eusebius_n apposite_o call_v it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n and_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n of_o the_o great_a grace_n that_o ever_o be_v as_o we_o tell_v the_o world_n in_o the_o apology_n p_o 28._o out_o of_o bishop_n andrews_n yea_o i_o grant_v and_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n because_o it_o both_o prescribe_v and_o require_v purity_n and_o likewise_o be_v a_o mean_n through_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n of_o effect_v and_o work_v purity_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o moreover_o because_o the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n which_o it_o promise_v be_v first_o promise_v of_o pure_a grace_n and_z afterward_o according_a to_o promise_v be_v of_o pure_a free_a grace_n give_v unto_o man_n through_o jesus_n christ_n this_o i_o assert_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 22._o and_o passim_fw-la 2._o neither_o there_o not_o any_o where_o else_o do_v i_o ever_o say_v or_o think_v that_o i_o know_v of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d law_n do_v always_o signify_v a_o system_fw-la of_o precept_n and_o command_n and_o so_o origen_n testimony_n make_v nothing_o against_o i_o 3._o i_o assent_v likewise_o to_o every_o thing_n he_o have_v quote_v out_o of_o theodoret_n on_o isa_n 2._o and_o 4._o to_o all_o cite_v out_o of_o chrysostom_n on_o psal_n 49._o and_o 5._o as_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o photius_n it_o be_v as_o the_o rest_n impertinent_o allege_v and_o i_o be_o so_o for_o from_o oppose_v it_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o have_v myself_o upon_o the_o matter_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 201_o and_o there_o show_v plain_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o law_n be_v vacate_v to_o a_o believer_n without_o be_v perfect_o dissolve_v and_o cease_v without_o be_v disannul_v and_o how_o christ_n by_o fulfil_v and_o perform_v it_o have_v entire_o remove_v it_o so_o that_o it_o can_v possible_o condemn_v a_o penitent_a believer_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n whereunto_o i_o now_o add_v that_o photius_n there_o seem_v plain_o to_o understand_v by_o law_n not_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o work_n make_v with_o man_n before_o and_o break_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n but_o the_o old_a moysaicall_a covenant_n or_o the_o legal_a dark_a dispensation_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n under_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n and_o so_o the_o word_n of_o photius_n do_v very_o fit_o express_v the_o lord_n abolish_n that_o legal_a dark_a way_n and_o introduce_v the_o evangelical_n clear_a way_n of_o administer_a the_o same_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o how_o it_o shall_v make_v against_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n i_o do_v not_o comprehend_v 8.6_o see_v heb._n 8.6_o for_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v plain_o to_o insinuate_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n now_o in_o its_o new_a christian_a constitution_n and_o more_o gracious_a form_n of_o administration_n be_v indeed_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n 6_o and_o last_o we_o come_v to_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n out_o of_o who_o write_n mr._n goodwin_n quote_v two_o short_a sentence_n as_o first_o that_o according_a to_o clemens_n the_o law_n be_v the_o light_n of_o our_o way_n answ_n and_o what_o then_o do_v that_o militate_fw-la against_o my_o principle_n nothing_o less_o for_o that_o i_o firm_o believe_v not_o because_o clemens_n say_v so_o but_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v so_o as_o it_o be_v write_v prov._n 6.23_o the_o commandment_n be_v a_o lamp_n and_o the_o law_n be_v light_n it_o be_v confess_v then_o that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o light_n of_o our_o way_n and_o so_o be_v the_o gospel_n too_o yea_o and_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o great_a light_n of_o the_o two_o and_o what_o can_v any_o reasonable_a man_n make_v of_o this_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v its_o own_o precept_n if_o the_o gospel_n have_v its_o own_o precept_n will_v that_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v the_o light_n of_o our_o way_n i_o think_v that_o in_o all_o reason_n the_o contrary_n will_v follow_v to_o wit_n that_o if_o the_o precept_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n be_v a_o light_n of_o our_o way_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v they_o be_v that_o then_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o it_o have_v any_o be_v and_o must_v be_v also_o a_o light_n of_o our_o way_n that_o direct_v and_o instruct_v we_o how_o we_o ought_v to_o walk_v now_o under_o the_o christian_a form_n of_o administer_a the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 2._o he_o quote_v clemens_n say_v 22._o disc_n p._n 22._o that_o a_o law_n be_v a_o true_a and_o good_a opinion_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o this_o he_o call_v clemens_n his_o definition_n of_o a_o law_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o this_o clementin_n definition_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o any_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n and_o goodness_n whereby_o say_v he_o any_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n and_o goodness_n may_v be_v signify_v but_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n and_o goodness_n therefore_o this_o clementin_n definition_n of_o a_o law_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o good_a opinion_n answ_n this_o reverend_a brother_n by_o several_a passage_n in_o his_o discourse_n and_o by_o this_o among_o the_o rest_n seem_v to_o be_v much_o in_o love_n with_o definition_n and_o who_o can_v blame_v he_o since_o aristotle_n say_v of_o old_a that_o 3._o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ari●●or_n 2._o metaphys_n cap._n 3._o we_o know_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o definition_n and_o here_o in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n meet_v with_o two_o or_o three_o pretty_a word_n they_o so_o please_v his_o fancy_n that_o he_o present_o imagine_v they_o to_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v so_o much_o in_o love_n with_o to_o wit_n a_o definition_n a_o definition_n than_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o have_v thus_o get_v a_o definition_n of_o a_o law_n he_o be_v sure_a thereby_o to_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o law_n for_o according_a to_o aristotle_n a_o definition_n 8._o definition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aristot_n 2_o post_n cap._n 8._o show_v we_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o a_o thing_n now_o this_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o law_n according_a to_o mr._n goodwin_n that_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o good_a opinion_n of_o a_o thing_n i_o demand_v of_o he_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o god_n law_n or_o of_o man_n law_n if_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o man_n law_n than_o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v utter_o impertinent_a for_o our_o controversy_n be_v not_o about_o man_n law_n but_o god_n law_n and_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o man_n law_n be_v the_o definition_n of_o god_n law_n 2._o if_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o god_n law_n then_o according_a to_o mr._n goodwin_n god_n true_a and_o good_a opinion_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v his_o law_n for_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o the_o thing_n define_v be_v real_o and_o objective_o the_o same_o and_o differ_v only_o in_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n of_o expression_n upon_o this_o i_o can_v move_v many_o question_n that_o will_v puzzle_v my_o reverend_a brother_n to_o answer_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v answer_v and_o resolve_v upon_o supposition_n that_o god_n true_a and_o good_a opinion_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v his_o law_n but_o i_o will_v spare_v he_o and_o only_o ask_v he_o this_o question_n whether_o he_o hold_v that_o god_n be_v a_o opinator_n that_o he_o have_v a_o opinion_n of_o thing_n and_o know_v they_o opinative_o if_o he_o deny_v then_o how_o can_v god_n opinion_n be_v his_o law_n if_o he_o have_v no_o opinion_n and_o be_v no_o opinator_n if_o he_o affirm_v that_o god_n be_v a_o opinator_n that_o he_o have_v a_o opinion_n of_o thing_n and_o know_v they_o opinative_o then_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o god_n knowledge_n of_o thing_n at_o least_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o his_o law_n be_v found_v upon_o probable_a
it_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o i_o that_o be_v enough_o to_o my_o purpose_n 2_o if_o by_o no_o more_o than_o a_o doctrine_n he_o understand_v no_o more_o than_o a_o absolute_a promise_n or_o no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a speculative_a doctrine_n or_o narrative_n that_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n than_o i_o say_v that_o his_o two_o quotation_n out_o of_o cyprian_a and_o augustin_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o word_n law_n they_o there_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o a_o doctrine_n in_o that_o sense_n for_o 1._o by_o his_o own_o confession_n cyprian_a in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n of_o goulartius_n his_o edition_n call_v our_o saviour_n instruction_n how_o to_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n a_o evangelical_n law_n but_o i_o hope_v he_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n instruction_n how_o to_o administer_v that_o ordinance_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a promise_n or_o a_o mere_a speculative_a doctrine_n that_o oblige_v christian_n to_o no_o duty_n nay_o cyprian_n himself_o as_o quote_v and_o translate_v by_o mr._n goodwin_n say_v that_o he_o be_v to_o send_v epistle_n to_o his_o brethren_n that_o the_o evangelical_n law_n and_o the_o declare_a doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v observe_v and_o that_o the_o brethren_n may_v not_o depart_v from_o what_o christ_n have_v teach_v and_o practise_v this_o evangelical_n law_n then_o according_a to_o bless_a cyprian_a be_v a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o practise_v according_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o example_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v a_o positive_a law_n that_o oblige_v to_o duty_n 2._o for_o augustin_n if_o he_o tell_v we_o as_o mr._n g._n say_v pag._n 27._o of_o his_o discourse_n that_o by_o the_o word_n law_n we_o may_v apprehend_v not_o mere_o a_o statute_n but_o any_o other_o doctrine_n because_o he_o style_v not_o only_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n but_o the_o prophet_n in_o who_o write_n there_o be_v so_o many_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o that_o name_n i_o answer_v that_o make_v nothing_o against_o i_o for_o 1._o when_o i_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n i_o never_o mean_v a_o mere_a statute_n exclusive_a of_o gracious_a promise_n so_o far_o be_v i_o from_o such_o a_o meaning_n that_o i_o say_v express_o it_o be_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 22._o apol._n p._n 22._o that_o be_v it_o be_v that_o part_n which_o prescribe_v the_o condition_n and_o gracious_o promise_v a_o benefit_n for_o christ_n sake_n to_o the_o performer_n of_o the_o condition_n again_o i_o say_v express_o in_o page_n 33._o that_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o the_o believer_n together_o with_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o lively_a faith_n be_v the_o very_a thing_n which_o dr._n twiss_n and_o we_o after_o he_o call_v the_o law_n according_a to_o which_o god_n proceed_v etc._n etc._n 2_o if_o the_o prophet_n be_v style_v by_o the_o name_n of_o law_n in_o who_o write_n be_v so_o many_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n together_o with_o precept_n oblige_v the_o duty_n then_o may_v the_o gospel_n itself_o without_o offence_n be_v term_v a_o law_n in_o which_o there_o be_v both_o gracious_a promise_n and_o excellent_a precept_n yet_o 3_o it_o be_v incumbent_n upon_o mr._n goodwin_n to_o prove_v that_o in_o augustin_n judgement_n or_o that_o in_o real_a truth_n the_o prophet_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o law_n precise_o because_o there_o be_v gracious_a promise_n in_o they_o and_o not_o at_o all_o because_o there_o be_v many_o excellent_a divine_a precept_n in_o they_o be_v there_o not_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o yet_o i_o trow_v those_o five_o book_n be_v not_o call_v the_o law_n precise_o because_o of_o the_o evangelical_n promise_v that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o not_o because_o they_o contain_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o legal_a precept_n give_v by_o moses_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n augustin_n in_o his_o fifteen_o and_o last_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n take_v occasion_n from_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o god_n be_v call_v love_n 1_o john_n 4.16_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o various_a acceptation_n of_o the_o word_n law_n and_o say_v that_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v more_o general_o for_o all_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o for_o the_o prophet_n or_o psalm_n and_o sometime_o more_o special_o and_o proper_o for_o the_o law_n give_v at_o sinai_n now_o this_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o militate_v against_o any_o thing_n i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o apology_n for_o i_o can_v grant_v with_o augustin_n that_o the_o word_n law_n be_v sometime_o use_v in_o a_o more_o general_a comprehensive_a sense_n and_o at_o other_o time_n in_o a_o more_o special_a restrain_a sense_n and_o yet_o consistent_o enough_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o law_n in_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n thus_o i_o have_v brief_o show_v that_o this_o whole_a chapter_n be_v impertinent_a but_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o it_o to_o his_o purpose_n against_o i_o yet_o there_o be_v something_o in_o it_o to_o my_o purpose_n against_o he_o for_o page_n 26_o 27._o of_o his_o discourse_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o law_n be_v a_o doctrine_n 8._o see_v also_o his_o serm._n on_o the_o q._n death_n p._n 7_o 8._o which_o teach_v we_o what_o be_v best_a for_o we_o to_o do_v if_o we_o will_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o those_o who_o be_v wise_a than_o ourselves_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n say_v he_o i_o will_v easy_o grant_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n for_o it_o be_v the_o instruction_n of_o god_n who_o wisdom_n be_v beyond_o all_o denial_n infinite_o superior_a to_o we_o to_o our_o perish_a soul_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n in_o this_o sense_n then_o certain_o it_o be_v a_o practical_a doctrine_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n do_v not_o the_o infinite_o wise_a god_n his_o instruct_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n oblige_v our_o conscience_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o have_v it_o not_o the_o force_n and_o effect_n of_o a_o law_n i_o bless_v god_n i_o own_o its_o oblige_a force_n and_o it_o be_v and_o i_o hope_v ever_o shall_v be_v a_o law_n to_o i_o a_o gracious_a evangelical_n law_n and_o i_o hope_v my_o r._n brother_n will_v in_o time_n do_v so_o likewise_o since_o he_o say_v that_o thrice_o bless_a be_v that_o person_n who_o god_n enlighten_v grace_n have_v make_v so_o wise_a as_o to_o follow_v it_o remark_n on_o the_o six_o chapter_n section_n i._o some_o preliminary_a consideration_n necessary_a for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o our_o protestant_a writer_n and_o the_o clear_a answer_v of_o mr._n g_o be_v quotation_n from_o their_o write_n for_o the_o better_a clear_n up_o of_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n and_o scatter_v of_o the_o mist_n which_o my_o r._n brother_n have_v cast_v before_o people_n eye_n in_o this_o chapter_n it_o will_v be_v expedient_a to_o premise_v some_o thing_n before_o i_o come_v to_o answer_v his_o quotation_n from_o the_o write_n of_o protestant_n divine_n and_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o word_n gospel_n signify_v good_a or_o glad_a tiding_n it_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o and_o affirm_v of_o several_a part_n of_o supernatural_a reveal_v religion_n as_o 1._o god_n eternal_a decree_n to_o save_v for_o christ_n sake_n a_o select_a number_n of_o lose_a sinner_n of_o mankind_n as_o reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n be_v gospel_n for_o it_o be_v good_a and_o glad_a tiding_n to_o the_o visible_a church_n 2._o the_o absolute_a prophecy_n and_o promise_n to_o send_v christ_n into_o the_o world_n to_o redeem_v man_n and_o to_o seek_v and_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v be_v gospel_n also_o for_o it_o be_v good_a and_o glad_a tiding_n the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o christ_n being_n actual_o come_v into_o the_o world_n 3_o the_o absolute_a promise_n to_o take_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o stone_n and_o to_o give_v a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n to_o give_v the_o redeem_a save_v faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v gospel_n also_o since_o it_o be_v good_a and_o glad_a tiding_n now_o we_o never_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n in_o any_o of_o these_o three_o sense_n be_v a_o law_n command_v we_o to_o do_v any_o duty_n or_o perform_v any_o condition_n but_o 4._o the_o word_n gospel_n in_o a_o more_o large_a and_o comprehensive_a sense_n be_v take_v for_o the_o entire_a covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o his_o church_n through_o the_o mediator_n his_o son_n
promise_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n yea_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n yet_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o 1._o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n 2._o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o promise_n be_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o free_o grant_v that_o the_o evangelical_n promise_v be_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v they_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o part_n and_o they_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o it_o too_o but_o what_o then_o ergo_fw-la they_o be_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n i_o utter_o deny_v that_o consequence_n and_o i_o know_v mr._n g._n can_v prove_v it_o to_o eternity_n nor_o do_v luther_n affirm_v it_o so_o far_o be_v luther_n from_o affirm_v it_o there_o that_o in_o the_o same_o place_n a_o little_a before_o the_o word_n quote_v by_o mr._n goodwin_n he_o say_v express_o as_o follow_v d.g._n follow_v hic_fw-la altera_fw-la pars_fw-la scripturae_fw-la adest_fw-la promissa_fw-la dei_fw-la quae_fw-la annunciant_fw-la gloriam_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o dicunt_fw-la si_fw-la vis_fw-la legem_fw-la implere_fw-la non_fw-la concupiscere_fw-la sicut_fw-la lex_fw-la exigit_fw-la en_fw-fr tibi_fw-la crede_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la promittuntur_fw-la tibi_fw-la gratia_fw-la justititia_fw-la pax_fw-la libertas_n &_o omne_fw-la si_fw-la credis_fw-la habebis_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la carebis_fw-la lutherus_n de_fw-fr libertate_fw-la christ_n ubi_fw-la citatur_fw-la a_o d.g._n here_n be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o promise_v of_o god_n which_o declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o say_v if_o thou_o will_v fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o not_o covet_v as_o the_o law_n require_v behold_v here_o for_o thou_o believe_v in_o christ_n in_o who_o be_v promise_v unto_o thou_o grace_n righteousness_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o thing_n if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v have_v they_o if_o thou_o believe_v not_o thou_o shall_v want_v they_o thus_o luther_n in_o which_o testimony_n of_o he_o we_o have_v these_o thing_n observable_a 1._o that_o the_o part_n of_o god_n word_n which_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o which_o contain_v the_o promise_n of_o grace_n righteousness_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o and_o so_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n 2._o this_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o gospel_n say_v unto_o man_n crede_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la believe_v in_o christ_n now_o that_o be_v certain_o a_o precept_n or_o command_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o precept_n or_o command_n in_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n 3_o this_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o gospel_n say_v si_fw-la credis_fw-la habebis_fw-la if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v have_v they_o to_o wit_n grace_n righteousness_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o now_o that_o be_v as_o certain_o a_o conditional_a promise_n 4._o this_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o gospel_n say_v si_fw-la non_fw-la credis_fw-la carebis_fw-la if_o thou_o do_v not_o believe_v thou_o shall_v want_v they_o that_o be_v thou_o shall_v want_v grace_n righteousness_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o conditional_a threaten_v mr._n goodwin_n may_v with_o as_o much_o truth_n and_o modesty_n deny_v that_o it_o be_v light_a at_o noon_n day_n as_o to_o deny_v that_o this_o be_v a_o conditional_a threaten_v to_o wit_n if_o a_o man_n to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v do_v not_o believe_v he_o shall_v want_v grace_n righteousness_n peace_n liberty_n and_o all_o here_o than_o we_o see_v clear_o by_o the_o word_n of_o luther_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v both_o precept_n promise_v and_o threaten_v which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o i_o believe_v and_o from_o whence_o i_o conclude_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o without_o all_o precept_n be_v evident_a by_o many_o other_o passage_n in_o luther_n little_a treatise_n of_o christian_a liberty_n i_o instance_n only_o in_o one_o at_o present_a and_o it_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o small_a tract_n his_o word_n be_v so_o supra_fw-la so_o sic_fw-la christus_fw-la johan_n 6.29_o cum_fw-la judaei_n interregarent_a quid_fw-la facerent_fw-la ut_fw-la operaxentur_fw-la opera_fw-la dei_fw-la operum_fw-la multitudine_fw-la quâ_fw-la illos_fw-la videbat_fw-la turgere_fw-la repulsâ_fw-la unum_fw-la eye_n praescribit_fw-la dicens_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la credatis_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la quem_fw-la misit_fw-la ille_fw-la hunc_fw-la enim_fw-la pater_fw-la signavit_fw-la deus_fw-la lutherus_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la christ_n in_o john_n 6.29_o when_o the_o jew_n ask_v what_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o they_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n have_v reject_v the_o multitude_n of_o work_n with_o the_o opinion_n whereof_o he_o see_v they_o swell_v or_o puff_v up_o he_o prescribe_v they_o one_o say_v this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v for_o he_o have_v god_n the_o father_n sealed_n but_o you_o may_v say_v how_o do_v luther_n come_v to_o say_v that_o the_o promise_n be_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n as_o well_o as_o promise_n i_o answer_v luther_n say_v so_o because_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o gospel_n have_v not_o only_o absolute_a but_o conditional_a promise_n and_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n always_o imply_v a_o precept_n which_o prescribe_v the_o condition_n beside_o that_o the_o promise_v absolute_a and_o conditional_a be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o may_v well_o enough_o give_v it_o its_o denomination_n from_o the_o principal_a part_n especial_o when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o so_o express_v his_o sense_n as_o to_o show_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o exclude_v all_o precept_n and_o threaten_n from_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n thus_o the_o learned_a and_o pious_a rutherford_n 21.5_o rutherford_n covenant_n of_o life_n open_v part_v 1_o chap._n 26._o p._n 21.5_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n say_v he_o though_o it_o want_v not_o precept_n especial_o it_o be_v his_o command_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o stand_v most_o by_o promise_n and_o this_o covenant_n get_v the_o name_n of_o a_o promise_n or_o the_o promise_n act_n 2.39_o rom._n 9.8_o compare_v with_o act_n 3.25_o gen._n 12.3_o this_o may_v suffice_v for_o answer_v to_o what_o my_o r_n brother_n quote_v out_o of_o that_o small_a tract_n of_o luther_n concern_v christian_a liberty_n which_o though_o mr._n goodwin_n do_v most_o high_o commend_v and_o praise_v yet_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o practise_v the_o liberty_n there_o allow_v in_o its_o full_a latitude_n for_o assure_o that_o little_a book_n if_o we_o shall_v follow_v its_o advice_n will_v set_v we_o beyond_o canterbury_n and_o teach_v we_o how_o we_o may_v be_v the_o pope_n humble_a servant_n without_o any_o danger_n to_o our_o soul_n provide_v we_o be_v as_o we_o most_o certain_o be_v full_o persuade_v in_o our_o own_o mind_n that_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o almost_o infinite_a command_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o bishop_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n that_o this_o be_v true_a there_o need_v no_o plain_a proof_n than_o that_o which_o luther_n there_o give_v we_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n supra_fw-la word_n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la ergo_fw-la hanc_fw-la scientiam_fw-la haberet_fw-la facile_fw-la se_fw-la posset_n gerere_fw-la citra_fw-la periculum_fw-la in_fw-la infinitis_fw-la illis_fw-la mandatis_fw-la &_o praeceptis_fw-la papae_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la monasteriorum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la principum_fw-la &_o magistratuum_fw-la quae_fw-la aliqui_fw-la stulti_fw-la pastor_n sic_fw-la urgent_a quasi_fw-la ad_fw-la justitiam_fw-la &_o salutem_fw-la sint_fw-la necessaria_fw-la appellantes_fw-la praecepta_fw-la eoclesiae_fw-la cum_fw-la sint_fw-la nihil_fw-la minus_fw-la christianus_n libre_fw-la sic_fw-la dicet_fw-la ego_fw-la jejimabo_fw-la orabo_fw-la hoc_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la faciam_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la homines_fw-la mandatume_v non_fw-it quod_fw-la mihi_fw-la illo_fw-la sit_fw-la opus_fw-la ad_fw-la justitiam_fw-la aut_fw-la salutem_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la morem_fw-la geram_fw-la papae_fw-la episcopo_fw-la communitati_fw-la illi_fw-la &_o illi_fw-la magistratui_fw-la aut_fw-la proximo_fw-la ad_fw-la exemplum_fw-la faciam_fw-la etc._n etc._n lutherus_n ibid._n de_fw-la libertate_fw-la christ_n ultra_fw-la medium_n &_o non_fw-la procul_fw-la a_o fine_a videat_fw-la etiam_fw-la eruditus_fw-la lector_fw-la lutheri_fw-la expositionem_fw-la verborum_fw-la apostoli_fw-la 2._o ad_fw-la phil._n v._n 6_o 7_o 8._o &_o sibi_fw-la caveat_n ibid._n paulo_fw-la supra_fw-la if_o then_o any_o man_n have_v this_o knowledge_n he_o may_v easy_o behave_v himself_o so_o as_o to_o avoid_v danger_n in_o those_o infinite_a mandate_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o pope_n bishop_n monastery_n church_n prince_n and_o magistrate_n which_o some_o foolish_a pastor_n so_o urge_v and_o press_v as_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o
be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o declare_v and_o proclaim_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v free_o in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n only_o 32._o see_v disc_n p._n 32._o all_o which_o be_v very_o true_a but_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o gospel_n do_v that_o and_o more_o too_o it_o declare_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v free_o in_o christ_n by_o faith_n alone_o because_o it_o be_v faith_n alone_o which_o receive_v apprehend_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n this_o we_o hold_v as_o zanchy_a do_v but_o withal_o zanchy_a hold_v and_o we_o after_o he_o do_v hold_v also_o that_o the_o gospel_n require_v of_o we_o repentance_n towards_o god_n faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o a_o studious_a care_n to_o observe_v whatsoever_o christ_n have_v command_v to_o which_o add_v what_o zanchy_a believe_v as_o well_o as_o we_o that_o the_o gospel_n promise_v grace_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o when_o through_o grace_n we_o do_v so_o it_o further_a promise_n we_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o christ_n sake_n alone_o and_o nothing_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o our_o declare_v know_v sense_n of_o that_o word_n his_o three_o testimony_n out_o of_o zanchy_a be_v yet_o more_o impertinent_a to_o wit_n 33._o see_v disc_n p._n 33._o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o joyful_a preach_v of_o that_o eternal_a and_o free_a love_n of_o god_n this_o be_v eternal_a election_n towards_o we_o in_o his_o belove_a son_n christ_n for_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o mr._n g_z can_z just_o infer_v from_o this_o sentence_n of_o zanchy_a to_o his_o purpose_n against_o we_o this_o we_o grant_v to_o be_v true_a as_o be_v say_v in_o our_o first_o preliminary_n consideration_n that_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n eternal_a decree_n to_o save_v through_o christ_n a_o select_a number_n of_o lose_a sinner_n of_o mankind_n be_v gospel_n because_o it_o be_v good_a and_o glad_a tiding_n to_o the_o church_n but_o what_o then_o dare_v mr._n g_o infer_v that_o because_o it_o be_v gospel_n therefore_o no_o other_o thing_n be_v gospel_n then_o it_o seem_v by_o his_o logic_n one_o may_v prove_v that_o one_o part_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v the_o whole_a thing_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a thing_n be_v but_o one_o part_n of_o it_o but_o i_o forbear_v to_o expose_v such_o weak_a argue_v if_o therefore_o the_o joyful_a preach_v of_o god_n free_a election_n through_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o though_o this_o part_n do_v not_o require_v faith_n and_o repentance_n yet_o another_o part_n of_o it_o may_v and_o real_o do_v require_v they_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o zanchy_a as_o be_v clear_o prove_v in_o the_o apology_n by_o his_o express_a formal_a word_n quote_v out_o of_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a religion_n 3d._n vol._n of_o his_o work_n p._n 509._o and_o since_o it_o come_v in_o my_o way_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o book_n of_o the_o learned_a zanchy_a i_o will_v here_o give_v the_o world_n a_o further_a account_n of_o it_o and_o of_o his_o faith_n out_o of_o it_o the_o book_n be_v entitle_v jerom_n zanchy_a his_o faith_n concern_v the_o christian_a religion_n it_o contain_v a_o full_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n which_o he_o write_v in_o the_o seventieth_n year_n of_o his_o age_n and_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o family_n he_o publish_v it_o and_o dedicate_v it_o to_o count_n ulysses_n martinengus_n it_o be_v a_o excellent_a judicious_a confession_n of_o faith_n i_o have_v see_v it_o in_o quarto_n and_o octavo_fw-la and_o in_o folio_n with_o his_o other_o work_n and_o now_o i_o have_v it_o by_o i_o in_o octavo_n print_v at_o newstad_n 1585._o with_o annotation_n of_o his_o own_o write_n upon_o it_o for_o further_a clear_v of_o matter_n in_o it_o i_o have_v diligent_o read_v it_o and_o have_v quote_v some_o passage_n out_o of_o it_o in_o the_o apology_n i_o will_v now_o quote_v some_o more_o out_o of_o it_o both_o to_o make_v mr._n g._n ashamed_a if_o possible_a and_o so_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n for_o abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o zanchy_a to_o the_o deceive_a of_o the_o people_n and_o also_o to_o confirm_v what_o i_o quote_v out_o of_o he_o in_o the_o apology_n thus_o then_o zanchy_a write_v in_o chap._n 13._o pag._n 101._o sect._n 6._o edition_n in_o octavo_n 6._o octavo_n evangelium_fw-la haec_fw-la tria_fw-la tantùm_fw-la requirit_fw-la primùm_fw-la ut_fw-la serio_fw-la dolore_fw-la etc._n etc._n zanch_n de_fw-fr relig._n christ_n cap._n 13._o p._n 101._o sect._n 6._o the_o gospel_n require_v only_o these_o three_o thing_n first_o that_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o serious_a grief_n etc._n etc._n as_o quote_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 99_o and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n to_o wit_n 102._o he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ad_fw-la tria_fw-la autem_fw-la omne_fw-la christi_fw-la mandata_fw-la referuntur_fw-la nimirum_fw-la ut_fw-la abnegatâ_fw-la impietate_fw-la &_o saecularibus_fw-la desideriis_fw-la sobrie_n quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la just_a quoad_fw-la proximum_fw-la &_o piè_fw-la quoad_fw-la deum_fw-la vivamus_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la saeculo_fw-la expectantes_fw-la bonam_fw-la spem_fw-la &_o adventum_fw-la gloriae_fw-la magni_fw-la dei._n hanc_fw-la credimus_fw-la summam_fw-la esse_fw-la corum_fw-la quae_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la exigit_fw-la christus_fw-la suâ_fw-la evangelicâ_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la eòque_fw-la illos_fw-la esse_fw-la verè_fw-la evangelicos_fw-la verèque_fw-la christianos_n qui_fw-la in_fw-la horum_fw-la studium_fw-la serio_fw-la incumbunt_fw-la idem_fw-la ibid._n but_o all_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n be_v refer_v to_o three_o to_o wit_n that_o have_v deny_v or_o renounce_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n we_o shall_v live_v sober_o with_o respect_n to_o ourselves_o just_o with_o respect_n to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o godly_a with_o respect_n to_o god_n in_o this_o present_a world_n look_v for_o the_o bless_a hope_n and_o the_o glorious_a come_v of_o the_o great_a god_n this_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n require_v of_o we_o by_o his_o evangelical_n doctrine_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v true_o evangelic_n and_o true_o christian_a who_o serious_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o study_n and_o practice_n of_o those_o thing_n again_o in_o pag._n 103._o sect_n 7._o ibid._n 7._o credimus_fw-la non_fw-la parvum_fw-la discrimen_fw-la esse_fw-la inter_fw-la legem_fw-la &_o evangelium_fw-la 1._o quia_fw-la legis_fw-la materia_fw-la tantùm_fw-la sunt_fw-la mandata_fw-la additis_fw-la irrevocabilibus_fw-la maledictionibus_fw-la si_fw-la vel_fw-la minimâ_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la ea_fw-la violentur_fw-la habet_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o promissiones_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la terrenarum_fw-la verùm_fw-la etiam_fw-la aeternarum_fw-la benedictionum_fw-la sed_fw-la omnes_fw-la cum_fw-la conditione_n perfectissimae_fw-la obedientiae_fw-la nullas_fw-la autem_fw-la gratuitas_fw-la at_o verò_fw-la evangelium_fw-la propriè_fw-la felix_fw-la oft_o nuncium_fw-la christum_fw-la redemptorem_fw-la peccata_fw-la gratis_o remittentem_fw-la &_o servantem_fw-la gratis_o etiam_fw-la proponens_fw-la nihilque_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la exigens_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la consequendam_fw-la nisi_fw-la veram_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la fidem_fw-la quae_fw-la sine_fw-la poenitentiâ_fw-la sineque_fw-la study_v faciendae_fw-la divinae_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la i.e._n vivendi_fw-la sobriè_fw-la justè_fw-la &_o piè_fw-la ut_fw-la supra_fw-la explicatum_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la idem_fw-la ibid._n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n first_o because_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o law_n be_v only_a commandment_n whereunto_o be_v add_v irrevocable_a curse_n if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o least_o part_n violate_v it_o have_v indeed_o promise_v also_o and_o that_o not_o only_o of_o earthly_a but_o of_o eternal_a blessing_n but_o all_o with_o the_o condition_n of_o most_o perfect_a obedience_n but_o it_o have_v no_o gracious_a or_o merciful_a promise_n at_o all_o but_o now_o the_o gospel_n be_v proper_o happy_a and_o glad_a tiding_n propose_v christ_n the_o redeemer_n as_o forgive_a sin_n free_o and_o as_o free_o likewise_o save_v sinner_n and_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n but_o a_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v without_o repentance_n and_o without_o a_o endeavour_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o live_v sober_o just_o and_o godly_a as_o be_v explain_v before_o now_o here_o observe_v 1._o that_o zanchy_a say_v that_o the_o gospel_n take_v in_o its_o proper_a sense_n require_v faith_n of_o we_o and_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o salvation_n 2._o that_o though_o he_o say_v it_o require_v nothing_o but_o faith_n yet_o he_o do_v no_o more_o contradict_v i_o than_o he_o do_v contradict_v himself_o for_o as_o he_o say_v so_o i_o say_v that_o it_o
manifest_o false_a that_o dr._n whitaker_n hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v such_o a_o narrative_a and_o declaration_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v no_o duty_n at_o all_o not_o so_o much_o as_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n reason_n translate_v into_o english_a by_o richard_n stock_n and_o print_v at_o london_n 1606._o in_o page_n 252_o 253._o he_o write_v thus_o now_o you_o campian_n add_v the_o decalogue_n belong_v not_o to_o christian_n god_n do_v not_o care_n for_o our_o work_n touch_v the_o decalogue_n and_o work_n 27.26_o gal._n 3.10_o deut._n 27.26_o this_o answer_n i_o whitaker_n make_v you_o brief_o in_o the_o law_n the_o old_a covenant_n be_v contain_v do_v this_o and_o live_v curse_v be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o the_o law_n promise_v life_n to_o they_o which_o obey_v the_o law_n in_o all_o thing_n they_o that_o offend_v in_o anything_o to_o they_o it_o threaten_v death_n and_o damnation_n a_o hard_a condition_n and_o which_o no_o man_n can_v ever_o satisfy_v christ_n do_v propose_v to_o we_o another_o condition_n much_o easy_a believe_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v 16.16_o mark_v 16.16_o by_o this_o new_a covenant_n the_o old_a be_v abrogate_a so_o as_o whosoever_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v free_v from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o that_o believe_v be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n rom._n 6.14_o and_o gal._n 5.18_o what_o need_v many_o word_n christian_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n but_o not_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o thus_o whitaker_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o believe_v a_o conditional_a gospel_n and_o that_o it_o require_v of_o we_o the_o performance_n of_o its_o conditoon_n in_o order_n to_o our_o be_v free_v from_o the_o condition_n and_o deliver_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o here_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v that_o under_o queen_n elizabeth_n whilst_o dr._n whitaker_n be_v regius_n professor_n in_o cambridge_n there_o be_v one_o dr._n peter_n baro_n a_o frenchman_n who_o be_v for_o some_o time_n margaret_n professor_n and_o have_v preach_v and_o afterward_o print_v a_o latin_a sermon_n on_o rom._n 3.28_o and_o have_v therein_o affirm_v as_o mr._n goodwin_n do_v that_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o not_o by_o the_o gospel_n as_o his_o word_n be_v interpret_v he_o be_v thereupon_o and_o on_o the_o account_n of_o some_o other_o prelection_n also_o suppose_v to_o be_v a_o innovator_n and_o he_o fall_v under_o suspicion_n of_o incline_v to_o those_o doctrine_n afterward_o call_v arminian_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n under_o the_o displeasure_n of_o dr._n whitaker_n who_o be_v a_o strict_a calvinist_n whereupon_o he_o resign_v his_o place_n and_o remove_v to_o london_n but_o they_o do_v not_o leave_v he_o so_o for_o there_o be_v a_o book_n write_v against_o his_o latin_a sermon_n aforesaid_a by_o e._n h._n one_o of_o dr._n whitaker_n party_n and_o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1592._o wherein_n the_o anonymous_n author_n treat_v he_o very_o rude_o much_o at_o the_o rate_n as_o some_o of_o late_o have_v treat_v their_o brethren_n among_o we_o but_o that_o which_o be_v to_o my_o purpose_n be_v that_o the_o zealous_a e._n h._n in_o his_o little_a book_n which_o i_o have_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la ejusque_fw-la ortu_fw-la &_o naturâ_fw-la maintain_v against_o baro_n that_o justify_v faith_n be_v not_o command_v by_o the_o old_a moral_a law_n but_o by_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n to_o wit_n the_o gospel_n to_o one_o of_o baro_n argument_n he_o answer_v thus_o 1592._o thus_o o_o miseram_fw-la &_o caecam_fw-la consequentiam_fw-la quasi_fw-la verò_fw-la non_fw-la aliam_fw-la jam_fw-la inde_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la temporum_fw-la praeter_fw-la hanc_fw-la perfectissimam_fw-la decalogi_fw-la nec_fw-la minus_fw-la perfectam_fw-la promissionis_fw-la scilicet_fw-la &_o aquavitae_fw-la legem_fw-la tulerit_fw-la quâ_fw-la populum_fw-la suum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la credere_fw-la sibique_fw-la omnem_fw-la fidem_fw-la habere_fw-la jusserit_fw-la e._n h._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ejusque_fw-la ortu_fw-la &_o naturâ_fw-la pag._n 44_o 45._o lond._n 1592._o o_fw-la miserable_a and_o blind_a consequence_n as_o if_o forsooth_o god_n have_v not_o from_o the_o beginning_n give_v another_o law_n beside_o that_o most_o perfect_a law_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n no_o less_o perfect_a than_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o law_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o life_n whereby_o he_o command_v his_o people_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o to_o repose_v all_o their_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o and_o after_o he_o have_v in_o pag._n 52_o 53_o 54._o discourse_v at_o large_a of_o this_o law_n of_o promise_n and_o life_n and_o have_v both_o show_v it_o to_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n he_o add_v these_o word_n ecce_fw-la tibi_fw-la baro_n legem_fw-la quâ_fw-la fides_fw-la praecipitur_fw-la behold_v here_o baro_n thou_o have_v a_o law_n a_o law_n of_o grace_n whereby_o faith_n be_v command_v now_o by_o these_o word_n of_o e._n h._n one_o of_o dr._n whitaker_n party_n and_o by_o the_o doctor_n own_o word_n it_o plain_o appear_v that_o he_o and_o the_o other_o orthodox_n divine_v of_o cambridge_n under_o q._n elizabeth_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o but_o such_o a_o narrative_a and_o declaration_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o no_o not_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o mr._n g._n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o they_o rather_o some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o as_o for_o instance_n mr._n perkins_n and_o this_o e._n h._n go_v the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n and_o hold_v that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v command_v only_o by_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o baro_n who_o as_o be_v think_v hold_v as_o my_o reverend_a brother_n do_v that_o it_o be_v command_v only_o by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n be_v cry_v down_o as_o a_o innovator_n and_o unsound_a divine_a and_o at_o last_o constrain_v to_o resign_v his_o place_n and_o leave_v the_o university_n to_o all_o this_o i_o shall_v add_v that_o dr._n nowell_n dean_n of_o paul_n who_o be_v dr._n whitaker_n uncle_n and_o prolocutor_n in_o the_o convocation_n 1562._o where_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o we_o have_v subscribe_v be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v write_v a_o latin_a catechism_n which_o by_o public_a order_n be_v common_o teach_v in_o the_o grammar-school_n throughout_o england_n and_o in_o that_o catechism_n it_o be_v express_o affirm_v that_o evangelium_fw-la requirit_fw-la sidem_fw-la the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n 3._o christ._n piet._n prima_fw-la institutio_fw-la ad_fw-la usum_fw-la scholarum_fw-la latin_a scripta_fw-la cantab._n 1626._o pag._n 3._o now_o this_o be_v the_o catechism_n which_o in_o all_o probability_n whitaker_n learned_a when_o he_o be_v a_o boy_n at_o school_n and_o it_o be_v not_o very_o likely_a that_o when_o he_o be_v afterward_o regius_n professor_n in_o cambridge_n he_o have_v so_o far_o forget_v his_o catechism_n as_o to_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v such_o a_o narrative_a and_o declaration_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v no_o duty_n at_o all_o not_o so_o much_o as_o faith_n in_o christ_n eleven_o mr._n g_o suborn_v gomarus_n to_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o i_o but_o certain_o of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n gomarus_n be_v the_o unfit_a to_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o witness_v against_o i_o because_o as_o be_v show_v from_o his_o own_o formal_a express_a word_n quote_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 27._o he_o have_v speak_v my_o sense_n so_o clear_o that_o after_o i_o have_v set_v down_o his_o word_n and_o reason_n why_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n yea_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o immediate_o add_v these_o word_n and_o true_o this_o be_v excellent_o say_v by_o gomarus_n no_o man_n we_o think_v can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n why_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n whence_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o i_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n no_o otherwise_o than_o as_o gomarus_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v such_o before_o i_o be_v bear_v and_o then_o gomarus_n his_o own_o express_a word_n show_v 30._o gom._n oper._n part._n 3._o disp_n 14._o thes_n 30._o that_o he_o hold_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n from_o the_o prescription_n or_o appointment_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o duty_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n because_o of_o the_o benefit_n promise_v in_o it_o both_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o scripture-testimony_n now_o to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o gomarus_n
orthodox_n divine_v but_o i_o suppose_v wittichius_n mean_v only_o that_o save_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v not_o require_v as_o antecedent_o necessary_a in_o order_n of_o time_n but_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v assoon_o as_o we_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o so_o i_o agree_v with_o he_o or_o it_o may_v be_v he_o mean_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o necessarium_fw-la justificationis_fw-la praerequisitum_fw-la ut_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la opus_fw-la a_o necessary_a praerequisite_a unto_o justification_n consider_v simple_o as_o a_o work_n and_o so_o i_o likewise_o agree_v with_o he_o for_o though_o faith_n be_v real_o a_o inward_a heart_n work_v and_o though_o it_o be_v pray_fw-mi require_v as_o necessary_a unto_o justification_n yet_o it_o be_v neither_o praerequire_v nor_o require_v unto_o justification_n simple_o and_o precise_o as_o a_o work_n and_o under_o that_o formal_a consideration_n but_o only_o as_o the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n or_o as_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o receive_v apply_v and_o trust_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n alone_o unto_o justification_n thus_o i_o have_v examine_v and_o answer_v mr._n g_o be_v second_v set_v of_o testimony_n and_o show_v that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o right_o understand_v make_v against_o i_o what_o he_o write_v in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o six_o chapter_n have_v in_o effect_n and_o upon_o the_o matter_n 41._o diso_n p._n 41._o be_v answer_v before_o and_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o confound_v the_o notion_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v entire_o distinct_a in_o their_o nature_n and_o idea_n for_o if_o one_o take_v the_o gospel_n in_o his_o sense_n for_o a_o bundle_n of_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n of_o what_o god_n in_o christ_n will_v do_v without_o require_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o we_o free_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v no_o law_n at_o all_o to_o we_o in_o any_o proper_a sense_n but_o now_o the_o world_n know_v very_o well_o or_o may_v know_v by_o our_o apology_n that_o that_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o in_o truth_n the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v declare_v we_o mean_v by_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o we_o through_o christ_n which_o comprehend_v not_o only_o absolute_a but_o conditional_a promise_n also_o and_o which_o prescribe_v to_o we_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o tell_v we_o we_o must_v through_o grace_n perform_v it_o or_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o benefit_n promise_v in_o this_o true_a proper_a comprehensive_a sense_n the_o gospel_n be_v indeed_o a_o law_n to_o we_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o not_o a_o law_n of_o work_n for_o as_o have_v be_v say_v though_o it_o require_v duty_n of_o we_o which_o be_v indeed_o work_v yet_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n do_v not_o require_v they_o of_o we_o under_o that_o formal_a notion_n as_o work_n to_o be_v justify_v and_o glorify_v by_o and_o for_o they_o but_o 1._o it_o require_v evangelical_n repentance_n not_o as_o a_o work_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o and_o for_o either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n but_o as_o a_o condition_n in_o the_o subject_a or_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v necessary_a to_o dispose_v and_o qualify_v he_o for_o justification_n by_o and_o for_o christ_n righteousness_n only_o 2._o it_o require_v true_a faith_n in_o christ_n not_o as_o a_o work_n to_o be_v justify_v for_o it_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n but_o as_o the_o only_a condition_n or_o instrumental_a mean_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v receive_v apply_v and_o trust_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o righteonsness_n as_o the_o only_a righteousness_n whereby_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o god_n justice_n 3_o it_o require_v obedience_n flow_v from_o faith_n obedience_n i_o say_v to_o the_o whole_a reveal_v will_n of_o god_n not_o simple_o as_o obedience_n or_o work_v for_o which_o we_o be_v glorify_v but_o as_o evangelical_o sincere_a and_o grow_v up_o to_o perfection_n as_o a_o testimony_n of_o our_o thankfulness_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o justification_n as_o a_o mean_n of_o glorify_v god_n of_o credit_v our_o holy_a religion_n of_o edify_v our_o neighbour_n and_o of_o evidence_v the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o final_o as_o a_o condition_n necessary_a by_o the_o constitution_n of_o god_n to_o prepare_v and_o qualify_v we_o for_o obtain_v possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n for_o the_o alone_a meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n so_o that_o the_o gospel_n thus_o require_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o a_o law_n of_o work_n but_o of_o grace_n especial_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n that_o we_o do_v these_o thing_n require_v and_o that_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o do_v they_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n give_v according_a to_o the_o promise_n and_o that_o when_o through_o grace_n we_o have_v do_v they_o than_o god_n of_o his_o rich_a mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n give_v we_o for_o christ_n sake_n the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n promise_v to_o those_o who_o do_v the_o duty_n require_v second_o as_o to_o what_o my_o reverend_a brother_n say_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o minatory_a sanction_n that_o no_o threaten_v do_v proper_o belong_v to_o it_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o if_o one_o take_v the_o gospel_n as_o he_o do_v for_o a_o bundle_n of_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n than_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o in_o that_o sense_n it_o have_v no_o minatory_a sanction_n no_o threaten_v do_v proper_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o declare_v that_o i_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v nor_o can_v deliberate_o think_v that_o a_o threaten_v be_v any_o part_n of_o it_o either_o proper_o or_o improper_o as_o take_v in_o that_o too_o narrow_a limit_a sense_n for_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n of_o what_o god_n in_o christ_n will_v do_v for_o we_o without_o require_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o but_o 2._o take_v the_o gospel_n in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o i_o take_v it_o for_o the_o entire_a gospel-covenant_n which_o god_n have_v not_o only_o declare_v to_o but_o make_v with_o his_o church_n through_o the_o mediator_n jesus_n christ_n than_o my_o answer_n be_v that_o though_o the_o gospel_n take_v oven_n in_o this_o comprehensive_a sense_n for_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o we_o through_o christ_n shall_v have_v no_o threaten_v proper_o belong_v to_o it_o yet_o that_o will_v not_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o it_o be_v proper_o enough_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o 1._o as_o it_o prescribe_v to_o we_o its_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o 2._o as_o it_o promise_v grace_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o perform_v its_o condition_n 3._o as_o it_o promise_v to_o we_o great_a and_o gratuitous_a benefit_n upon_o our_o perform_v its_o condition_n through_o grace_n 3._o i_o answer_v that_o over_o and_o beside_o the_o threaten_v of_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n which_o mr._n g._n fancy_n that_o the_o gospel_n promise_n do_v borrow_v and_o employ_v in_o its_o own_o service_n the_o gospel-covenant_n have_v as_o plain_o appear_v to_o i_o its_o own_o additional_a threaten_v which_o i_o think_v be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o though_o a_o threaten_v do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel-covenant_n as_o a_o gospel-covenant_n primary_o and_o principal_o yet_o it_o belong_v to_o it_o secondary_o and_o less_o principal_o to_o wit_n as_o it_o be_v a_o covenant_n make_v with_o sinner_n to_o restrain_v they_o from_o sin_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o unto_o faith_n and_o repentance_n the_o primary_n design_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v indeed_o to_o promise_v gratuitous_a benefit_n to_o sinner_n comply_v with_o its_o term_n require_v and_o it_o be_v but_o its_o secondary_a design_n to_o threaten_v punishment_n in_o case_n of_o noncompliance_a and_o then_o further_o even_o this_o threaten_n of_o punishment_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o primary_n design_n be_v not_o to_o bring_v the_o punishment_n on_o the_o sinner_n but_o it_o be_v to_o restrain_v from_o sin_n and_o so_o preserve_v from_o punishment_n and_o that_o the_o punishment_n threaten_v be_v actual_o inflict_v upon_o any_o who_o be_v call_v and_o command_v to_o comply_v with_o the_o term_n of_o the_o covenant_n but_o do_v not_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v through_o their_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n as_o it_o be_v by_o accident_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o primary_n design_n of_o the_o evangelical-covenant_n as_o such_o and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n have_v its_o
fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n but_o with_o a_o sanction_n that_o promise_v justification_n and_o salvation_n not_o for_o the_o duty_n sake_n but_o for_o christ_n sake_n only_o now_o both_o his_o proposition_n be_v false_a no_o wonder_n that_o the_o inference_n he_o draw_v from_o they_o be_v ridiculous_a insignificant_a and_o of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o against_o i_o for_o i_o do_v free_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacious_a way_n of_o reason_v to_o argue_v from_o the_o mere_a ambiguity_n of_o a_o word_n that_o have_v several_a signification_n but_o that_o be_v not_o nor_o be_v it_o my_o way_n of_o argue_v and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n as_o i_o have_v true_o represent_v it_o and_o as_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o apology_n itself_o the_o ridiculous_a demonstration_n to_o wit_n a_o law_n be_v a_o law_n the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n i_o say_v this_o ridiculous_a demonstration_n which_o mr._n goodwin_n in_o pag_n 41._o will_v lay_v at_o my_o door_n returns_z home_n to_o himself_o and_o call_v he_o its_o true_a father_n and_o just_o it_o may_v for_o assure_o it_o be_v a_o brat_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n and_o breed_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o fond_a of_o it_o calling_z it_o a_o pretty_a way_n of_o argue_v and_o say_v without_o doubt_n it_o be_v unanswerable_a and_o yet_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o this_o pretty_a little_a rogue_n as_o the_o image_n of_o his_o brain_n that_o beget_v it_o and_o if_o we_o strip_v the_o baby_n of_o its_o identick_a dress_n or_o fool_n coat_n it_o be_v very_o easy_o answer_v for_o be_v form_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o discourse_n concern_v the_o various_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n law_n it_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o a_o mere_a nominal_a law_n that_o require_v nothing_o be_v a_o real_a proper_a law_n that_o require_v something_o but_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o mere_a nominal_a law_n that_o require_v nothing_o therefore_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o real_a proper_a law_n that_o require_v something_o the_o proposition_n be_v that_o which_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v father_n upon_o i_o but_o i_o just_o disow_v it_o as_o none_o of_o i_o and_o so_o i_o do_v by_o the_o other_o identical_a proposition_n a_o law_n be_v a_o law_n let_v this_o brother_n prove_v if_o he_o can_v by_o any_o good_a consequence_n that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n express_v or_o employ_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o apology_n i_o be_o so_o well_o assure_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n there_o that_o i_o defy_v he_o or_o any_o man_n to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a that_o there_o it_o be_v and_o by_o and_o by_o we_o shall_v find_v himself_o clear_v i_o of_o that_o imputation_n and_o blame_v i_o for_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n because_o it_o have_v precept_n require_v duty_n fortify_v with_o a_o sanction_n of_o promise_n and_o threaten_n which_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o either_o this_o brother_n assert_n that_o which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v false_a or_o else_o that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o write_v he_o know_v not_o what_o the_o proposition_n then_o or_o major_a be_v the_o birth_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v beget_v against_o his_o conscience_n as_o bastard_n use_v to_o be_v let_v he_o look_v to_o it_o i_o assert_v nothing_o pro_fw-la or_o con_v in_o that_o matter_n as_o for_o the_o assumption_n or_o second_o proposition_n he_o will_v not_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v his_o own_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n a_o mere_a nominal_a law_n which_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o for_o it_o be_v the_o great_a thing_n he_o contend_v for_o with_o all_o his_o may_v throughout_o his_o book_n now_o it_o appear_v thus_o that_o the_o argument_n be_v his_o own_o much_o good_a may_v it_o do_v he_o and_o his_o cause_n which_o the_o world_n may_v know_v to_o be_v a_o very_a good_a one_o by_o this_o token_n that_o it_o be_v support_v by_o such_o pretty_a honest_a device_n and_o thus_o the_o pretty_a unanswerable_a argument_n be_v easy_o answer_v when_o strip_v of_o its_o identical_a dress_n for_o both_o proposition_n be_v false_a the_o major_a proposition_n be_v self_n evident_o false_a when_o strip_v of_o its_o identical_a dress_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o baby_n to_o be_v strip_v of_o its_o fool_n coat_n my_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v his_o own_o and_o he_o may_v do_v with_o his_o own_o what_o he_o please_v the_o minor_a i_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a and_o shall_v further_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v false_a before_o we_o have_v do_v and_o therefore_o though_o the_o conclusion_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n conclude_v be_v very_o true_a according_a to_o the_o logic_n rule_n ex_fw-la falsis_fw-la verum_fw-la yet_o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o formal_o true_a as_o it_o be_v conclude_v and_o because_o it_o be_v conclude_v and_o infer_v from_o such_o false_a premise_n but_o he_o pretend_v in_o pag._n 42._o to_o have_v provide_v a_o proper_a remedy_n against_o this_o malady_n of_o argue_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o a_o word_n of_o various_a signification_n by_o clear_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n law_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v large_o do_v but_o cvi_fw-la bono_fw-mi to_o what_o good_a purpose_n be_v all_o that_o waste_n of_o time_n paper_n and_o ink_n since_o it_o do_v not_o reach_v i_o at_o all_o for_o i_o defy_v he_o to_o show_v i_o where_o in_o the_o apology_n i_o do_v ever_o so_o much_o as_o once_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o proper_a law_n from_o the_o mere_a sound_n of_o the_o word_n law_n which_o be_v of_o a_o various_a signification_n but_o though_o i_o do_v not_o so_o argue_v yet_o my_o r._n b._n have_v assume_v to_o himself_o the_o liberty_n of_o argue_v from_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n gospel_n almost_o throughout_o his_o whole_a discourse_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v so_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o to_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o turpe_fw-la est_fw-la igitur_fw-la doctori_fw-la quum_fw-la culpa_fw-la redarguit_fw-la ipsum_fw-la i_o think_v it_o have_v be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o have_v clear_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o ambiguous_a word_n gospel_n so_o as_o to_o have_v show_v that_o in_o holy_a scripture_n or_o the_o write_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a divine_n it_o be_v never_o take_v for_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n the_o mediator_n include_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o it_o but_o always_o and_o every_o where_n for_o a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n or_o promise_n which_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o we_o at_o all_o if_o my_o reverend_a brother_n have_v do_v this_o he_o have_v do_v his_o work_n and_o have_v answer_v i_o effectual_o and_o have_v make_v i_o his_o proselyte_n too_o but_o i_o do_v not_o blame_v he_o for_o not_o do_v this_o because_o it_o be_v plain_o impossible_a to_o be_v do_v but_o what_o if_o my_o purpose_n and_o design_n in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o apology_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o argue_v and_o prove_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n as_o 1._o to_o instruct_v our_o accuser_n who_o seem_v not_o to_o know_v our_o principle_n and_o to_o let_v he_o know_v what_o we_o real_o mean_v by_o a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n 2_o to_o rebuke_v he_o for_o say_v ignorant_o that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n and_o to_o prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o credible_a witness_n ancient_a and_o modern_a that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v no_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n but_o that_o he_o in_o say_v so_o against_o we_o the_o subscriber_n be_v a_o false_a witness_n against_o his_o brethren_n and_o to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v my_o purpose_n and_o design_n there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o to_o read_v the_o apology_n page_n 20_o 21_o 22_o 24._o 3._o further_n what_o if_o for_o the_o instruction_n and_o information_n of_o our_o accuser_n i_o tell_v he_o and_o the_o world_n plain_o 1._o that_o god_n most_o free_o make_v the_o covenant_n and_o enact_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n with_o we_o through_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o that_o god_n by_o this_o law_n of_o grace_n both_o oblige_v and_o encourage_v we_o to_o certain_a duty_n and_o also_o by_o the_o promise_v of_o it_o oblige_v himself_o to_o justify_v and_o glorify_v we_o for_o christ_n sake_n if_o we_o perform_v the_o duty_n prescribe_v and_o comply_v with_o the_o term_n enjoin_v 3._o what_o if_o i_o plain_o declare_v that_o by_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n
with_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o bless_a bread_n and_o wine_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n death_n till_o he_o come_v to_o this_o i_o shall_v subjoin_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o late_a reverend_n and_o learned_a dr._n owen_n and_o then_o pass_v on_o from_o deut._n 18_o ver_fw-la 18_o 19_o he_o infer_v that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v a_o law_n giver_n his_o word_n be_v 224._o be_v dr._n owen_n one_a vol._n on_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o hebrew_n exercitat_fw-la 17._o pag._n 224._o the_o prophet_n here_o foretell_v be_v to_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o moses_n wherein_o he_o be_v peculiar_a and_o exempt_v from_o comparison_n with_o all_o other_o prophet_n which_o be_v to_o build_v on_o his_o foundation_n without_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n which_o he_o have_v reveal_v or_o change_v any_o thing_n therein_o in_o that_o be_v the_o prophet_n here_o promise_v to_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o that_o be_v he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o our_o apostle_n prove_v and_o declare_v chap._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o moses_n be_v the_o great_a law_n giver_n by_o who_o god_n reveal_v his_o mind_n and_o will_n as_o to_o his_o whole_a worship_n whilst_o the_o church-state_n institute_v by_o he_o be_v to_o continue_v such_o a_o prophet_n be_v the_o messiah_n to_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n so_o as_o to_o abolish_v the_o old_a and_o to_o institute_n new_a rite_n of_o worship_n this_o raise_n up_o of_o a_o prophet_n like_v unto_o moses_n declare_v that_o the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n as_o to_o his_o worship_n and_o the_o church_n obedience_n be_v not_o yet_o reveal_v have_v it_o so_o be_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o prophet_n like_o unto_o moses_n to_o lay_v new_a foundation_n as_o he_o have_v do_v thus_o the_o doctor_n now_o as_o i_o have_v distinguish_v of_o faith_n so_o i_o distinguish_v of_o repentance_n as_o there_o be_v a_o faith_n in_o god_n which_o most_o certain_o be_v command_v by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n itself_o immediate_o so_o there_o be_v a_o repentance_n towards_o god_n which_o be_v also_o command_v by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n itself_o immediate_o this_o i_o never_o deny_v but_o always_o believe_v and_o in_o our_o apology_n pag._n 200._o we_o plain_o enough_o profess_v this_o our_o belief_n in_o these_o word_n heathen_n who_o never_o hear_v nor_o can_v hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n for_o want_v of_o a_o objective_a revelation_n of_o it_o they_o live_v and_o die_v without_o repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o true_a god_n under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n against_o the_o law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n will_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n but_o not_o by_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o can_v not_o know_v rom_n 2.12_o these_o word_n plain_o show_v that_o our_o judgement_n be_v that_o heathen_n be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n against_o the_o law_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o true_a god_n nor_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n although_o they_o have_v not_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o no_o gospel-promise_a to_o assure_v they_o of_o pardon_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o their_o unbelief_n and_o impenitency_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n together_o with_o their_o other_o sin_n against_o the_o same_o law_n and_o from_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o my_o reverend_a brother_n seven_o chapter_n be_v altogether_o impertinent_a and_o that_o i_o be_o not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o it_o mr._n goodwin_n here_o fight_v against_o a_o man_n of_o straw_n of_o his_o own_o make_n and_o set_v up_o and_o valiant_o run_v he_o down_o again_o and_o i_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o envy_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o such_o a_o victory_n but_o though_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n do_v oblige_v all_o mankind_n of_o ripe_a year_n to_o a_o natural_a legal_a repentance_n that_o be_v 1._o to_o be_v hearty_o sorry_a for_o have_v offend_v god_n their_o creator_n and_o preserver_n by_o break_v his_o law_n which_o they_o be_v under_o and_o outward_o also_o to_o express_v the_o inward_a sorrow_n of_o their_o heart_n 2_o to_o hate_v their_o sin_n as_o a_o great_a evil_n in_o itself_o and_o the_o procure_a cause_n of_o evil_a unto_o men._n 3._o not_o to_o act_v their_o sin_n over_o again_o but_o to_o abstain_v from_o sin_n and_o to_o keep_v god_n natural_a moral_a law_n for_o the_o future_a yet_o there_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o repentance_n which_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v all_o mankind_n unto_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o be_v a_o evangelical_n repentance_n which_o arise_v from_o a_o apprehension_n and_o persuasion_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o christ_n to_o all_o such_o as_o be_v true_o penitent_a and_o to_o ourselves_o if_o we_o do_v or_o shall_v true_o repent_v this_o be_v a_o repentance_n towards_o god_n consider_v not_o mere_o as_o our_o creator_n preserver_n and_o ruler_n but_o as_o in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n unto_o himself_o and_o as_o rule_v gracious_o and_o merciful_o by_o christ_n so_o that_o it_o have_v a_o formal_a object_n different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o other_o natural_a legal_a repentance_n and_o it_o have_v likewise_o a_o different_a habitude_n and_o relation_n unto_o god_n and_o be_v carry_v out_o unto_o he_o after_o a_o different_a manner_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o give_v it_o another_o form_n and_o to_o make_v it_o formal_o to_o differ_v from_o the_o foresay_a natural_a legal_a repentance_n moreover_o it_o have_v another_o office_n and_o use_v assign_v to_o it_o for_o it_o be_v constitute_v and_o ordain_v by_o god_n through_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n dispositive_a of_o the_o subject_a to_o be_v pardon_v or_o a_o mean_n to_o prepare_v and_o qualify_v we_o for_o receive_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n and_o for_o his_o righteousness_n only_o apprehend_v apply_v and_o trust_v to_o by_o faith_n now_o such_o a_o repentance_n as_o this_o a_o true_a evangelical_n repentance_n consider_v under_o this_o formal_a notion_n as_o arise_v from_o the_o foresay_a persuasion_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o christ_n to_o the_o true_o penitent_a and_o as_o a_o condition_n or_o mean_n to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v for_o pardon_n and_o as_o have_v pardon_n insure_v to_o it_o by_o promise_n through_o christ_n i_o say_v repentance_n of_o this_o kind_n and_o consider_v under_o this_o notion_n be_v command_v and_o require_v by_o the_o gospel-law_n or_o covenant_n first_o direct_o and_o immediate_o and_o then_o by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n mediate_o and_o by_o consequence_n as_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v upon_o term_n of_o save_v pardon_v mercy_n to_o the_o true_o penitent_a so_o the_o gospel_n or_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n make_v true_a repentance_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o term_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n or_o mean_n to_o dispose_v and_o qualify_v we_o for_o pardon_v mercy_n and_o make_v pardon_v sure_a to_o we_o by_o promise_n through_o christ_n upon_o our_o repentance_n as_o also_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o god_n by_o gospel_n that_o require_v the_o say_v dispositive_a condition_n that_o command_v we_o to_o repent_v that_o we_o may_v certain_o obtain_v the_o promise_a pardon_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n that_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noon_n to_o all_o that_o be_v not_o blind_a through_o unbelief_n for_o do_v not_o the_o evangelical_n prophet_n say_v isai_n 55.7_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v or_o he_o will_v multiply_v to_o pardon_n it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n for_o that_o covenant_n be_v so_o far_o from_o require_v repentance_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o admit_v of_o repentance_n as_o any_o mean_n to_o such_o a_o end_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v by_o and_o by_o from_o mr._n caryll_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n it_o must_v be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o there_o be_v no_o medium_fw-la no_o three_o that_o can_v have_v any_o place_n here_o
gospel_n require_v repentance_n of_o we_o in_o order_n to_o pardon_v of_o sin_n seem_v to_o be_v like_o those_o of_o who_o lactantius_n of_o old_a in_o the_o seven_o book_n and_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o institution_n say_v that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v our_o doctrine_n nec_fw-la si_fw-la solemn_a quidem_fw-la ipsum_fw-la gestemus_fw-la in_o manibus_fw-la no_o not_o though_o we_o carry_v before_o they_o even_o the_o sun_n itself_o in_o our_o hand_n that_o be_v though_o we_o bring_v they_o the_o clear_a evidence_n imaginable_a 11.19_o matth._n 11.19_o but_o however_o it_o be_v with_o such_o person_n yet_o wisdom_n be_v and_o will_v be_v justify_v of_o her_o child_n as_o for_o luther_n since_o he_o approve_v and_o subscribe_v the_o augsburg_n confession_n we_o may_v from_o it_o take_v a_o estimate_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o beside_o that_o chemnicius_n in_o his_o common_a place_n page_z 219_o 220._o show_n out_o of_o luther_n first_o disputation_n against_o the_o antinomian_o that_o he_o also_o hold_v that_o repentance_n take_v entire_o in_o its_o essential_a perfection_n be_v require_v by_o the_o gospel_n i_o wish_v luther_n have_v be_v something_o more_o accurate_a in_o the_o handle_n of_o that_o matter_n but_o as_o it_o be_v it_o suffice_v to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o evangelical_n repentance_n be_v require_v by_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n only_o and_o not_o at_o all_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o believe_v that_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o evangelical_n be_v from_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o from_o the_o law_n and_o so_o the_o lutheran_n general_o except_o the_o flacian_o if_o there_o be_v yet_o any_o of_o that_o sect_n remain_v in_o germany_n maintain_v that_o evangelical_n repentance_n as_o evangelical_n be_v require_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o i_o wonder_v not_o at_o all_o to_o find_v they_o unanimous_a in_o this_o so_o far_o as_o i_o be_o acquaint_v with_o their_o write_n because_o after_o melancthon_n they_o hold_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n yea_o to_o be_v the_o essentiate_a form_n of_o evangelical_n repentance_n i_o be_o not_o indeed_o of_o their_o mind_n in_o this_o yet_o i_o think_v it_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o though_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o very_a essential_a form_n itself_o of_o evangelical_n repentance_n yet_o it_o contribute_v much_o towards_o the_o give_v its_o specifical_a form_n and_o the_o make_v it_o true_o evangelical_n and_o without_o faith_n it_o will_v not_o be_v evangelical_n calvin_n and_o his_o follower_n differ_v from_o the_o lutheran_n in_o this_o that_o they_o make_v not_o faith_n to_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o repentance_n but_o hold_v they_o to_o be_v two_o distinct_a grace_n co-existent_a and_o influential_a the_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o that_o calvin_n believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o gospel_n require_v of_o we_o evangelical_n repentance_n in_o order_n to_o pardon_n of_o sin_n i_o plain_o prove_v from_o his_o write_n which_o be_v quote_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 92_o 93._o if_o any_o shall_v object_v that_o calvin_n on_o rom._n 10._o ver_fw-la 8._o write_v thus_o 10.8_o thus_o colligimus_fw-la sicut_fw-la lex_fw-la opera_fw-la exiglt_fw-la evangelium_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la postulare_fw-la nisi_fw-la ut_fw-la fidem_fw-la afferant_fw-la homines_fw-la ad_fw-la recipiendam_fw-la dei_fw-la gratiam_fw-la calvin_n comment_fw-fr in_o rom._n 10.8_o we_o gather_v that_o as_o the_o law_n require_v work_n to_o wit_n unto_o justification_n so_o the_o gospel_n require_v nothing_o but_o that_o man_n bring_v faith_n to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o make_v altogether_o for_o we_o for_o 1._o here_o calvin_n say_v express_o that_o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n than_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o 2._o calvin_n here_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n require_v nothing_o but_o faith_n to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o so_o we_o say_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n for_o we_o have_v tell_v the_o world_n in_o our_o apology_n that_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a receptive_a condition_n of_o justification_n that_o be_v it_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v as_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v receive_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n to_o our_o own_o soul_n for_o our_o justification_n as_o for_o repentance_n it_o be_v not_o of_o that_o nature_n it_o be_v not_o natural_o sit_v for_o nor_o be_v it_o by_o god_n appoint_v and_o ordain_v to_o that_o use_n and_o office_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n but_o it_o be_v only_o fit_v for_o and_o ordain_v unto_o this_o use_n and_o office_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n or_o condition_n dispositive_a of_o the_o subject_n man_n which_o be_v to_o be_v pardon_v and_o justify_v and_o this_o calvin_n do_v not_o here_o deny_v and_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o elsewhere_o he_o affirm_v and_o maintain_v it_o as_o we_o do_v as_o for_o the_o follower_n of_o calvin_n i_o may_v be_v large_a in_o show_v that_o general_o they_o except_o a_o few_o cocceian_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n require_v evangelical_n repentance_n in_o order_n to_o pardon_n of_o sin_n but_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o at_o present_a with_o a_o few_o clear_a irrefragable_a testimony_n have_v mention_v zanchy_a and_o sharpius_n before_o i_o pass_v they_o and_o begin_v with_o vrsin_n and_o pareus_n who_o word_n be_v these_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o three_o difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o gospel_n require_v both_o faith_n and_o repentance_n or_o new_a obedience_n and_o so_o be_v the_o preach_v both_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o repentance_n against_o this_o flacian_a sectary_n keep_v a_o stir_n and_o reason_n after_o this_o sort_n obj._n there_o be_v no_o precept_n or_o command_n belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o the_o law_n the_o preach_v of_o repentance_n be_v a_o precept_n or_o commandment_n therefore_o the_o preach_a of_o repentance_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o the_o law_n answer_v we_o deny_v the_o major_n if_o it_o be_v general_o mean_v for_o this_o precept_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o gospel_n 131._o zacharias_n ursinus_n his_o sum_n of_o christian_a religion_n enlarge_v by_o pareus_n in_o latin_a and_o translate_v into_o english_a and_o print_v at_o london_n a_o 1645._o pag._n 131._o that_o it_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o to_o embrace_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n and_o now_o be_v justify_v to_o begin_v new_a obedience_n or_o that_o righteousness_n which_o the_o law_n require_v of_o we_o repl._n yea_o but_o the_o law_n also_o will_v we_o to_o believe_v god_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a unto_o the_o gospel_n to_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v answer_v both_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n command_v faith_n and_o conversion_n to_o god_n but_o diverse_o etc._n etc._n thus_o vrsin_n and_o pareus_n tell_v we_o plain_o what_o their_o judgement_n be_v and_o by_o consequence_n what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o old_a calvinist_n be_v in_o germany_n for_o this_o their_o large_a catechism_n be_v general_o receive_v and_o teach_v in_o school_n of_o the_o reform_a both_o in_o germany_n and_o elsewhere_o as_o in_o scotland_n etc._n etc._n another_o instance_n of_o this_o nature_n we_o have_v in_o wendelin_n a_o zealous_a calvinist_n who_o in_o his_o systema_fw-la majus_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 19_o thes_n 7._o write_v thus_o 755._o thus_o mandatum_fw-la amplectendi_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la cum_fw-la side_n etiam_fw-la conjungit_fw-la resipiscentiam_fw-la secundum_fw-la illud_fw-la johannis_n baptistae_fw-la marc._n 1.15_o resipiscite_fw-la &_o credit_n evangelio_n sic_fw-la ipse_fw-la deus_fw-la de_fw-la coelo_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la patefacit_fw-la &_o verâ_fw-la fide_fw-la amplecti_fw-la jubet_fw-la matth._n 17.5_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la filius_fw-la ille_fw-la meus_fw-la dilectus_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la acquiesco_fw-la ipsum_fw-la audite_fw-la hanc_fw-la resipiscentiam_fw-la quatenus_fw-la salutaris_n ad_fw-la deum_fw-la conuersio_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sanctificatio_fw-la inchoata_fw-la vel_fw-la continuata_fw-la ad_fw-la evangelium_fw-la pertinere_fw-la patet_fw-la quod_fw-la 4._o argumentis_fw-la probat_fw-la m._n frid._n wendelin_n christ_n theolog._n system_fw-la maj._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 19_o thes_n 7._o pag._n 754_o 755._o the_o command_n to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v the_o mediator_n join_v repentance_n also_o with_o faith_n according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n the_o baptist_n mark_v 1.15_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n so_o god_n himself_o from_o heaven_n reveal_v the_o mediator_n and_o command_v to_o embrace_v he_o with_o a_o true_a faith_n matth._n 17.5_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v you_o he_o this_o repentance_n as_o it_o be_v a_o save_a conversion_n unto_o god_n that_o be_v
it_o be_v make_v one_o article_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n and_o then_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v in_o part_n by_o say_v fear_v god_n and_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o plain_a obvious_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o they_o must_v be_v violent_o wrest_v to_o put_v another_o sense_n upon_o they_o the_o dutch_a annotator_n therefore_o faithful_o give_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n when_o in_o their_o annotation_n on_o rev._n 14.7_o they_o say_v in_o these_o word_n this_n be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n voice_n whereby_o the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v warn_v and_o exhort_v to_o honour_n fear_v and_o serve_v god_n only_o in_o christ_n i_o may_v cite_v many_o other_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o old_a too_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n of_o we_o but_o these_o be_v sufficient_a and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o every_o sincere_a lover_n and_o seeker_n of_o truth_n will_n or_o may_v easy_o find_v by_o the_o divine_a testimony_n aforesaid_a take_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o the_o gospe-covenant_n in_o its_o new_a and_o most_o evangelical_n form_v of_o administration_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n without_o any_o precept_n but_o that_o as_o it_o have_v promise_n so_o it_o have_v precept_n belong_v to_o it_o which_o require_v duty_n of_o we_o and_o of_o all_o to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v thus_o have_v finish_v my_o first_o proof_n from_o divine_a testimony_n i_o pass_v to_o my_o second_o proof_n from_o humane_a testimony_n and_o before_o i_o proceed_v any_o further_a i_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v remember_v that_o i_o do_v not_o argue_v from_o humane_a testimony_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v my_o argument_n from_o divine_a testimony_n or_o to_o prove_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n that_o i_o and_o my_o reverend_a brethren_n be_v not_o innovator_n nor_o singular_a in_o our_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o our_o belief_n that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n which_o require_v duty_n since_o long_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v other_o holy_a man_n and_o eminent_a minister_n of_o christ_n and_o bright_a shine_a light_n in_o christ_n church_n have_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n just_a as_o we_o do_v and_o have_v believe_v according_a to_o scripture_n what_o we_o believe_v at_o this_o day_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n and_o do_v oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n this_o be_v premise_v to_o prevent_v misunderstanding_n of_o we_o i_o come_v to_o produce_v my_o humane_a witness_n which_o i_o divide_v into_o two_o rank_n or_o class_n the_o 1._o of_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o 2_o of_o modern_a divine_n and_o i_o begin_v with_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n father_n testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o because_o i_o will_v be_v brief_a i_o shall_v cite_v but_o few_o and_o yet_o i_o shall_v bring_v as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o may_v suffice_v to_o prove_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o question_n my_o first_o witness_n be_v justin_n martyr_n who_o in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n the_o jew_n call_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n as_o we_o christian_n have_v it_o in_o its_o last_o and_o excellent_a form_n of_o administration_n 292._o administration_n justin_n martyr_n dialog_n cum_fw-la tryphone_n edit_n paris_n 1633._o p._n 292._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o commandment_n whereby_o he_o plain_o declare_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o new_a covenant_n have_v precept_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n which_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o again_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o dialogue_n he_o call_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o gospel-covenant_n 351._o gospel-covenant_n justin_n martyr_n ibid._n p._n 351._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o mandate_n or_o precept_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n because_o it_o have_v precept_n that_o require_v duty_n and_o then_o two_o page_n after_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v call_v and_o we_o be_v the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v object_v that_o justin_n martyr_n in_o pag._n 351._o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o testament_n or_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o in_o pag._n 228._o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v give_v the_o eternal_a and_o last_o law_n unto_o we_o and_o the_o sure_a testament_n or_o covenant_n after_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o law_n nor_o precept_n nor_o commandment_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v say_v so_o but_o than_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o his_o speech_n be_v not_o and_o can_v be_v proper_a but_o figurative_a it_o be_v only_o by_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n that_o justin_n call_v christ_n by_o the_o name_n of_o covenant_n or_o testament_n and_o therein_o he_o do_v but_o follow_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 351._o justin_n ibid._n p._n 351._o and_o also_o quote_v the_o 42.6_o and_o 49.8_o of_o isaiah_n where_o it_o be_v write_v i_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v thou_o christ_n for_o a_o covenant_n of_o the_o people_n look_v then_o how_o the_o word_n of_o isaiah_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o the_o same_o way_n be_v the_o word_n of_o justin_n to_o be_v understand_v now_o for_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o isaiah_n let_v they_o who_o please_v consult_v the_o dutch_a annotation_n on_o isa_n 42.6_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o for_o a_o covenant_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v for_o a_o mediator_n of_o the_o covenant_n etc._n etc._n and_o pool_n annotation_n on_o isa_n 42.6_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o for_o a_o covenant_n of_o the_o people_n to_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o christ_n be_v call_v mal._n 3.1_o or_o the_o mediator_n in_o and_o by_o who_o my_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v make_v and_o confirm_v with_o mankind_n and_o the_o same_o pool_n on_o isa_n 49.8_o say_v that_o to_o be_v give_v for_o a_o covenant_n of_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v the_o mediator_n and_o surety_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o be_v make_v between_o god_n and_o they_o as_o christ_n be_v call_v heb._n 7.22_o and_o 8.6_o to_o renew_v and_o confirm_v the_o covenant_n which_o the_o messiah_n be_v say_v to_o do_v dan._n 9.27_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n by_o which_o god_n and_o man_n be_v reconcile_v and_o unite_a one_o to_o another_o and_o therefore_o he_o may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o covenant_n by_o a_o know_a metonymy_n which_o be_v very_o usual_a in_o such_o case_n thus_o the_o learned_a pool_n and_o by_o this_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o to_o understand_v justin_n when_o he_o call_v christ_n the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n to_o wit_n that_o by_o a_o metonymy_n he_o call_v he_o the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n because_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n and_o surety_n of_o it_o he_o be_v the_o ratifier_n and_o confirmer_n of_o it_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n or_o messenger_n of_o it_o he_o be_v not_o the_o covenant_n then_o in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n that_o be_v a_o figment_n as_o ridiculous_a and_o contradictious_a as_o transubstantiation_n but_o he_o be_v the_o covenant_n by_o a_o figure_n call_v metonymy_a and_o that_o justin_n so_o mean_v be_v plain_a because_o when_o he_o speak_v proper_o without_o a_o figure_n he_o call_v christ_n passim_fw-la christ_n justin_n ibid._n pag._n 229_o 231._o &_o passim_fw-la the_o new_a lawgiver_n as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 24._o and_o call_v the_o covenant_n his_o law_n and_o covenant_n and_o so_o manifest_o distinguish_v the_o law_n and_o covenant_n from_o he_o it_o be_v therefore_o the_o new_a covenant_n itself_o which_o justin_n proper_o call_v the_o new_a law_n the_o mandate_n the_o precept_n and_o say_v that_o 228._o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d justin_n mart._n ibid._n pag._n 228._o after_o the_o say_a covenant_n there_o be_v no_o law_n nor_o precept_n nor_o commandment_n by_o which_o word_n he_o give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o testament_n be_v the_o last_o law_n precept_n and_o commandment_n after_o which_o god_n give_v no_o other_o to_o the_o son_n of_o men._n much_o more_o i_o can_v allege_v out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n but_o that_o may_v be_v do_v another_o time_n as_o i_o see_v occasion_n at_o present_a i_o need_v not_o desire_v any_o more_o of_o my_o first_o witness_n my_o second_o witness_n be_v irenaeus_n who_o say_v 21._o say_v pater_fw-la familias_fw-la dominus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la universae_fw-la domni_fw-la paternae_fw-la dominatur_fw-la seruis_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o adhuc_fw-la
that_o though_o he_o be_v a_o fallible_a man_n as_o we_o all_o be_v yet_o he_o be_v in_o that_o a_o humble_a man_n and_o a_o sincere_a lover_n of_o truth_n and_o i_o wish_v mr._n g._n may_v follow_v his_o example_n for_o assure_o it_o will_v be_v more_o for_o his_o reputation_n and_o honour_n than_o obstinate_o to_o persist_v in_o the_o flacian_a error_n which_o some_o it_o seem_v have_v draw_v he_o into_o and_o since_o he_o profess_v to_o have_v so_o great_a a_o esteem_n for_o dr._n owen_n i_o desire_v he_o and_o all_o that_o be_v concern_v to_o consider_v what_o i_o shall_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o doctor_n be_v vindication_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o biddle's_n socinian_n catechism_n his_o word_n be_v take_v the_o word_n law_n strict_o in_o reference_n to_o a_o covenant_n end_n that_o he_o who_o perform_v it_o shall_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o performance_n thereof_o so_o we_o may_v say_v 384._o say_v dr._n owen_n be_v answer_n to_o biddle_n be_v catechism_n pag._n 384._o he_o to_o wit_n christ_n give_v the_o law_n original_o as_o god_n but_o as_o mediator_n he_o give_v no_o such_o law_n or_o no_o law_n in_o that_o sense_n but_o reveal_v full_o and_o clear_o our_o justification_n with_o god_n upon_o another_o account_n again_o if_o they_o the_o socinian_o shall_v say_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o reveal_v the_o ten_o commandment_n because_o he_o promulge_v they_o anew_o with_o new_a motive_n reason_n and_o encouragement_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o say_v also_o that_o what_o he_o call_v a_o new_a commandment_n be_v not_o so_o term_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o but_o its_o new_a enforcement_n by_o christ_n we_o grant_v 3●8_n grant_v ibid._n p._n 3●8_n christ_n reveal_v that_o law_n by_o moses_n with_o its_o new_a covenant-ends_a as_o he_o be_v the_o great_a prophet_n of_o his_o church_n by_o his_o spirit_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o this_o smalcius_n deny_v again_o that_o there_o be_v precept_n and_o promise_n attend_v the_o new_a covenant_n be_v grant_v but_o that_o it_o consist_v in_o any_o addition_n of_o precept_n to_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n carry_v on_o in_o the_o same_o tenor_n with_o it_o with_o other_o promise_n be_v a_o figment_n direct_o destructive_a of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n and_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n ibid._n page_n 393._o and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n he_o say_v that_o moses_n be_v a_o mediator_n of_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n proper_o and_o formal_o so_o call_v and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n live_v under_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v a_o no_o less_o pernicious_a figment_n than_o the_o former_a the_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v do_v this_o and_o live_v on_o perfect_a obedience_n you_o shall_v have_v life_n mercy_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v utter_a stranger_n to_o that_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o by_o it_o the_o holy_a ghost_n tell_v we_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v the_o church_n of_o old_a have_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n rom._n 9.5_o gen._n 3.15_o and_o 12.3_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n ger._n 15.6_o rom._n 4._o gal._n 3._o obtain_v mercy_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o lord_n isa_n 42.24_o have_v the_o spirit_n for_o conversion_n regeneration_n and_o sanctification_n ezek._n 11.9_o and_o 36.26_o expect_v and_o obtain_v salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n thing_n as_o remote_a from_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n as_o the_o east_n from_o the_o west_n it_o be_v true_a the_o administration_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o they_o live_v under_o be_v dark_a legal_a and_o low_a in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o we_o now_o be_v admit_v unto_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o covenant_n wherein_o they_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o that_o wherein_o we_o find_v acceptance_n be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o justification_n of_o abraham_n their_o father_n the_o pattern_n of_o we_o rom._n 4.4_o 5._o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o book_n chap._n 33._o p._n 652._o the_o doctor_n say_v n._n 3._o nor_o do_v biddle_n inform_v we_o what_o he_o intend_v by_o keep_v the_o command_v of_o god_n whether_o a_o exact_a perfect_a and_o every_o way_n complete_a keep_n of_o they_o up_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o all_o thing_n circumstance_n and_o concernment_n of_o they_o or_o whether_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o in_o a_o universal_a sincerity_n accept_v before_o god_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v intend_v never_o 4._o what_o commandment_n they_o be_v which_o he_o chief_o respect_n and_o under_o what_o consideration_n whether_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o such_o or_o whether_o the_o gospel-gommands_a of_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o the_o place_n 1_o john_n 5.3_o and_o mat._n 11.30_o from_o whence_o he_o answer_v do_v respect_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a page_n doctorr_n owen_n 5_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n not_o as_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n nor_o in_o a_o absolute_a perfection_n of_o obedience_n and_o correspondency_n to_o the_o law_n but_o sincere_o and_o upright_o unto_o acceptation_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o obedience_n it_o require_v through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o a_o thing_n possible_a but_o easy_a pleasant_a and_o delightful_a thus_o we_o say_v that_o a_o person_n regenerate_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o yield_v to_o he_o in_o answer_n to_o they_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o in_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v require_v yea_o it_o be_v to_o he_o a_o easy_a and_o pleasant_a thing_n so_o to_o do_v this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o dr._n owen_n be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n have_v no_o precept_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a absolute_a promise_n or_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o he_o say_v the_o quite_o contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o have_v precept_n as_o well_o as_o promise_n and_o that_o it_o require_v of_o we_o sincere_a obedience_n in_o order_n to_o our_o obtain_n possession_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o heavenly_a glory_n i_o can_v bring_v many_o more_o very_o many_o worthy_a and_o orthodox_n modern_a divine_n to_o bear_v testimony_n to_o the_o point_n under_o consideration_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n but_o these_o be_v enough_o at_o present_a therefore_o i_o shall_v forbear_v mention_v any_o more_o except_o the_o late_a reverend_n and_o ingenious_a mr._n gilbert_n who_o in_o his_o short_a discourse_n concern_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o pardon_v of_o it_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o second_o page_n grant_v express_o that_o there_o be_v both_o gospel-precept_n and_o gospel-sin_n and_o tell_v we_o 1._o that_o gospel_n precept_n be_v main_o the_o same_o for_o substance_n with_o those_o of_o the_o law_n but_o not_o exact_v their_o observance_n with_o the_o same_o rigour_n namely_o for_o justification_n and_o i_o add_v nor_o yet_o for_o salvation_n 2._o that_o gospel-sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n of_o such_o gospel-precept_n thus_o i_o have_v prove_v both_o by_o many_o clear_a testimony_n of_o god_n and_o also_o of_o good_a man_n ancient_a and_o modern_a that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v not_o without_o all_o precept_n it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o but_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n and_o require_v of_o we_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o its_o evangelical_n precept_n in_o a_o evangelical_n way_n for_o our_o due_a keep_n of_o covenant_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o order_n to_o our_o obtain_v the_o consummate_v life_n and_o happiness_n through_o christ_n promise_v in_o the_o covenant_n now_o from_o the_o foresay_a consideration_n and_o testimony_n of_o god_n and_o good_a man_n it_o will_v not_o be_v difficult_a to_o gather_v a_o short_a and_o clear_a answer_n to_o my_o reverend_a brother_n reason_n and_o argument_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n as_o have_v no_o precept_n and_o require_v no_o duty_n at_o all_o sect_n iii_o and_o first_o he_o argue_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o precept_n they_o be_v design_v say_v he_o pag._n 42._o as_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o action_n they_o instruct_v we_o what_o to_o do_v they_o draw_v the_o line_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o set_v the_o limit_n
kind_n but_o though_o we_o be_v agree_v in_o this_o yet_o we_o do_v differ_v and_o shall_v differ_v about_o the_o consequence_n for_o i_o do_v utter_o deny_v that_o it_o follow_v by_o any_o good_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o unchangeable_a and_o his_o moral_a law_n perfect_a in_o its_o kind_n if_o the_o gospel_n have_v any_o precept_n and_o if_o god_n have_v ever_o give_v to_o man_n any_o new_a positive_a law_n since_o he_o first_o create_v he_o with_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n write_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o good_a reason_n that_o i_o deny_v mr._n goodwin_n consequence_n as_o utter_o false_a and_o blasphemous_a for_o 1_o according_a to_o his_o own_o principle_n god_n make_v unto_o man_n a_o new_a promise_n do_v not_o impeach_v his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o absolute_a unchangeableness_n for_o in_o pag._n 49._o he_o say_v that_o repentance_n be_v a_o duty_n to_o which_o man_n be_v tie_v before_o any_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v make_v and_o before_o god_n have_v reveal_v any_o thought_n of_o favour_n to_o he_o or_o any_o purpose_n of_o grace_n in_o that_o first_o promise_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n break_v the_o serpent_n head_n in_o these_o word_n he_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o when_o god_n first_o create_v man_n and_o give_v he_o the_o moral_a law_n he_o have_v not_o then_o make_v he_o any_o promise_n of_o gospel_n grace_n and_o mercy_n but_o the_o first_o promise_n of_o that_o nature_n be_v make_v to_o man_n after_o the_o fall_n and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o mr._n goodwin_n dare_v say_v that_o god_n make_v that_o new_a promise_n to_o man_n do_v impeach_v his_o wisdom_n as_o defective_a or_o infer_v any_o change_n in_o his_o nature_n or_o will_n and_o if_o a_o new_a promise_n do_v not_o than_o i_o say_v that_o no_o more_o do_v a_o new_a precept_n impeach_v god_n wisdom_n as_o defective_a or_o infer_v any_o change_n in_o his_o nature_n or_o will_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v say_v against_o a_o new_a precept_n as_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o infinity_n of_o god_n wisdom_n and_o his_o unchangeableness_n but_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v against_o a_o new_a promise_n and_o if_o i_o dare_v give_v myself_o leave_v to_o prat_v bold_o and_o blasphemous_o against_o a_o new_a gospel_n promise_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v but_o to_o take_v what_o mr._n g._n say_v against_o a_o new_a gospel_n precept_n and_o with_o the_o vary_a of_o a_o few_o word_n apply_v it_o to_o a_o new_a gospel-promise_a and_o i_o thereby_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o the_o wisdom_n and_o immutability_n of_o god_n to_o make_v a_o new_a gospel-promise_a just_a as_o he_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o his_o wisdom_n and_o unchangeableness_n to_o give_v a_o new_a gospel-precept_n for_o my_o part_n i_o dare_v not_o imitate_v mr._n g._n in_o his_o way_n of_o reason_v here_o but_o there_o want_v not_o infidel_n too_o many_o who_o by_o his_o way_n of_o disprove_v a_o new_a gospel_n precept_n will_v endeavour_v to_o disprove_v a_o new_a gospel-promise_a and_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v after_o the_o example_n of_o my_o r._n b._n that_o for_o god_n to_o make_v a_o new_a gospel-promise_a after_o the_o first_o legal_a covenant_n of_o work_n and_o the_o legal_a promise_n imply_v in_o it_o will_v argue_v that_o his_o wisdom_n be_v deficient_a as_o not_o know_v at_o first_o all_o that_o be_v good_a for_o man_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v promise_v to_o he_o and_o believe_v by_o he_o etc._n etc._n 2._o god_n give_v a_o new_a precept_n to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n which_o be_v real_o different_a from_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n for_o instance_n the_o command_v not_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n etc._n etc._n gen._n 2.17_o be_v such_o a_o precept_n this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o mr._n g._n have_v in_o effect_n confess_v it_o pag._n 47._o for_o there_o he_o say_v that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n regard_v the_o act_n of_o eat_v the_o fatal_a fruit_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o that_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a before_o the_o prohibition_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o new_a precept_n which_o come_v after_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v real_o distinct_a from_o it_o there_o he_o confess_v 1._o that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v not_o at_o first_o and_o by_o itself_o immediate_o forbid_v the_o act_n of_o eat_v the_o foresay_a fruit._n 2._o that_o therefore_o it_o remain_v still_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a to_o eat_v or_o not_o to_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n till_o the_o new_a precept_n be_v give_v 3._o that_o it_o be_v the_o new_a precept_n gen._n 2.17_o which_o first_o by_o itself_o immediate_o prohibit_v the_o eat_n of_o it_o and_o oblige_v man_n not_o to_o eat_v it_o and_o that_o without_o this_o it_o will_v have_v still_o remaind_v indifferent_a notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v or_o can_v say_v now_o if_o before_o the_o fall_n god_n give_v man_n a_o new_a positive_a precept_n which_o first_o oblige_v he_o to_o a_o certain_a duty_n and_o forbid_v the_o commission_n of_o the_o contrary_a sin_n and_o if_o this_o new_a positive_a precept_n require_v duty_n and_o forbid_a sin_n be_v then_o very_o well_o consistent_a both_o with_o the_o wisdom_n and_o unchangeableness_n of_o god_n and_o also_o with_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n though_o it_o and_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n be_v two_o thing_n real_o distinct_a i_o say_v if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o before_o the_o fall_n i_o put_v my_o r._n brother_n to_o prove_v that_o after_o the_o fall_n it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o god_n infinite_a wisdom_n and_o immutability_n and_o with_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o moral_a law_n to_o give_v unto_o man_n any_o new_a gospel-precept_n which_o shall_v oblige_v he_o to_o duty_n whereunto_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v he_o before_o if_o mr._n g._n continue_v to_o affirm_v this_o he_o must_v prove_v it_o for_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o god_n give_v a_o new_a gospel_n precept_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o his_o wisdom_n and_o immutability_n and_o with_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o he_o can_v never_o prove_v that_o inconsistency_n no_o more_o than_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o inconsistent_a with_o god_n wisdom_n and_o immutability_n and_o with_o his_o moral_a law_n perfection_n to_o give_v unto_o adam_n before_o the_o fall_n the_o new_a positive_a precept_n of_o not_o eat_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n after_o he_o have_v write_v the_o say_a moral_a natural_a law_n in_o his_o heart_n at_o his_o first_o creation_n if_o he_o say_v as_o in_o effect_n he_o do_v that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v adam_n not_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n because_o it_o command_v he_o to_o obey_v god_n in_o whatever_o he_o shall_v require_v and_o so_o god_n require_v adam_n by_o a_o new_a positive_a precept_n to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v the_o say_a fruit_n be_v well_o consistent_a with_o his_o wisdom_n and_o with_o his_o moral_a law_n perfection_n i_o answer_v that_o my_o r._n b._n may_v see_v if_o he_o will_v open_v his_o eye_n that_o this_o make_v against_o he_o and_o for_o i_o for_o 1._o he_o must_v and_o he_o do_v grant_v that_o the_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o that_o fruit_n be_v first_o require_v by_o a_o new_a positive_a precept_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n command_v any_o such_o abstinence_n so_o that_o it_o command_v the_o say_a abstinence_n only_o mediate_o and_o by_o consequence_n after_o that_o it_o be_v first_o immediate_o command_v by_o the_o new_a positive_a precept_n superad_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 2._o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o it_o be_v our_o profess_a belief_n that_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n the_o general_a law_n of_o our_o creation_n do_v command_v we_o to_o obey_v god_n in_o whatever_o he_o require_v of_o we_o by_o any_o new_a special_a gospel_n precept_n yet_o do_v god_n first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n require_v our_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o new_a gospel-precept_n immediate_o and_o then_o by_o mean_n of_o that_o special_a new_a gospel-precept_n the_o general_a law_n of_o our_o creation_n come_v to_o take_v hold_n of_o our_o conscience_n with_o respect_n thereunto_o and_o oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v god_n therein_o so_o that_o here_o be_v two_o precept_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o in_o different_a way_n first_o there_o be_v the_o
the_o same_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o all_o the_o difference_n be_v only_o make_v by_o that_o which_o be_v the_o circumstance_n though_o a_o deplorable_a one_o of_o our_o own_o person_n this_o be_v another_o great_a mistake_n for_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n in_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n be_v not_o altogether_o the_o same_o with_o the_o object_n of_o justify_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n since_o the_o fall_n and_o the_o object_n not_o be_v the_o same_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o same_o but_o be_v different_a in_o proportion_n to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o object_n moreover_o as_o the_o objective_a cause_n so_o the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v different_a for_o the_o medicinal_a grace_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o justify_v faith_n since_o the_o fall_n be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n from_o that_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o the_o author_n of_o innocent_a nature_n thereby_o man_n be_v enable_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n before_o the_o 17._o the_o see_v rutherford_n covenant_n of_o life_n open_v p._n 49._o lin_v 16_o 17._o fall_n and_o see_v justify_v faith_n in_o christ_n since_o the_o fall_n have_v both_o a_o different_a efficient_a cause_n and_o a_o different_a object_n together_o with_o a_o different_a habitude_n unto_o its_o object_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v specifical_o distinct_a from_o the_o faith_n which_o adam_n have_v in_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n for_o the_o different_a specification_n of_o act_n arise_v from_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n and_o object_n of_o the_o say_a act_n and_o from_o the_o different_a way_n of_o their_o be_v conversant_a about_o their_o respective_a object_n it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a different_a circumstance_n of_o our_o case_n since_o the_o fall_n that_o cause_v the_o difference_n of_o our_o justify_v faith_n now_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o adam_n then_o before_o the_o fall_n but_o it_o be_v 1._o the_o difference_n of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n or_o of_o that_o spiritual_a influence_n of_o grace_n which_o cause_v our_o justify_v faith_n in_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o object_n which_o be_v not_o now_o god_n formal_o and_o simple_o consider_v as_o god_n the_o creator_n and_o preserver_n and_o ruler_n of_o innocent_a nature_n but_o next_o and_o immediate_o it_o be_v christ_n consider_v as_o god-man_n and_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o ultimate_o it_o be_v god_n justify_v penitent_a believer_n by_o and_o for_o the_o alone_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n 3._o it_o be_v the_o difference_n of_o our_o faith_n its_o habitude_n and_o relation_n from_o such_o a_o different_a cause_n to_o such_o a_o different_a object_n these_o three_o difference_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o different_a faith_n but_o it_o do_v by_o no_o logic_n follow_v from_o hence_o that_o every_o difference_n of_o circumstance_n in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o lapse_v nature_n since_o the_o first_o apostasy_n will_v make_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n and_o kind_a now_o our_o justify_v faith_n be_v thus_o different_a from_o the_o faith_n of_o adam_n before_o the_o fall_n it_o may_v very_o well_o and_o it_o real_o do_v fall_v under_o a_o different_a positive_a precept_n such_o as_o that_o act_v 16.31_o and_o yet_o i_o never_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v also_o require_v this_o faith_n but_o it_o do_v not_o require_v it_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n require_v it_o 4._o four_o whereas_o from_o page_n 48_o to_o 54._o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o because_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n oblige_v all_o man_n to_o a_o natural_a legal_a repentance_n therefore_o it_o do_v also_o of_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v they_o to_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n and_o that_o this_o it_o do_v so_o as_o that_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o require_v of_o christian_n and_o oblige_v they_o unto_o the_o say_v evangelical_n repentance_n in_o all_o his_o discourse_n there_o he_o gross_o mistake_v in_o draw_v his_o consequence_n which_o do_v not_o come_v natural_o but_o be_v forcible_o draw_v against_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o and_o therefore_o i_o utter_o deny_v his_o consequence_n and_o affirm_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o over_o and_o beside_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n there_o be_v evangelical_n precept_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v of_o we_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n consider_v under_o this_o formal_a notion_n as_o arise_v from_o the_o persuasion_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o christ_n to_o the_o true_o penitent_a and_o as_o a_o mean_n to_o prepare_v and_o dispose_v we_o for_o pardon_n and_o as_o have_v pardon_n insure_v to_o it_o by_o promise_n through_o christ_n to_o such_o a_o repentance_n thus_o consider_v the_o moral_a natural_a law_n do_v not_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v never_o deny_v by_o we_o but_o that_o mediate_o it_o do_v oblige_v we_o to_o it_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o oblige_v we_o to_o obey_v the_o positive_a precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o require_v such_o a_o repentance_n of_o man_n to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v 5._o five_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o page_n 51._o that_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n not_o only_o urge_v the_o unregenerate_a to_o repentance_n but_o also_o move_v they_o to_o build_v their_o hope_n of_o life_n upon_o it_o that_o be_v a_o very_a gross_a and_o dangerous_a mistake_n for_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n for_o unregenerate_a man_n or_o indeed_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o to_o build_v their_o hope_n of_o life_n upon_o their_o repentance_n sure_o then_o the_o holy_a law_n of_o god_n do_v not_o move_v they_o to_o it_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v move_v they_o to_o sin_n which_o be_v false_a and_o border_n upon_o blasphemy_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v not_o move_v man_n to_o any_o such_o thing_n it_o rather_o move_v sinner_n to_o despair_v of_o ever_o obtain_v life_n by_o and_o for_o their_o repentance_n or_o any_o thing_n they_o do_v or_o can_v do_v and_o since_o as_o mr._n g._n say_v p._n 51._o the_o gospel_n instruct_v we_o to_o put_v our_o whole_a and_o entire_a confidence_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n alone_o where_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n i●_n superad_v to_o that_o of_o the_o law_n there_o the_o law_n be_v a_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o christ_n and_o objective_o move_v they_o not_o to_o seek_v nor_o hope_v for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o thing_n do_v by_o themselves_o but_o rather_o to_o seek_v and_o hope_v for_o life_n and_o salvation_n only_o in_o christ_n and_o on_o the_o alone_a account_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o death_n thus_o i_o have_v refute_v his_o first_o grand_a assertion_n which_o he_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n to_o prove_v in_o his_o seven_o chapter_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o precept_n and_o require_v no_o obedience_n i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o have_v precept_n and_o require_v duty_n and_o obedience_n of_o all_o those_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o have_v answer_v his_o objection_n against_o the_o truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o believe_v by_o the_o faithful_a orthodox_n minister_n and_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n sect_n iv_o his_o second_o assertion_n be_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o threaten_n this_o i_o have_v refute_v before_o in_o my_o remark_n on_o his_o six_o chap._n but_o as_o i_o say_v there_o i_o must_v make_v some_o further_a animadversion_n on_o it_o here_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n for_o the_o clear_n up_o of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o matter_n consider_v then_o that_o the_o gospel-govenant_a have_v some_o threaten_n against_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o unregenerate_a to_o who_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o other_o threaten_n against_o regenerate_a believer_n first_o the_o gospel-covenant_n have_v some_o threaten_n against_o unregenerate_a unbeliever_n to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o the_o design_n and_o use_v of_o such_o threaten_n be_v to_o bring_v man_n off_o from_o their_o unbelief_n and_o to_o move_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o he_o in_o covenant_n that_o by_o he_o they_o may_v be_v save_v both_o from_o the_o punishment_n threaten_v in_o the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o also_o from_o that_o further_a degree_n of_o punishment_n threaten_v in_o the_o gospel_n against_o all_o that_o neglect_n and_o refuse_v to_o accept_v and_o make_v use_n of_o the_o sovereign_n and_o save_a remedy_n provide_v by_o god_n and_o offer_v in_o
threaten_n for_o as_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v be_v save_v so_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o contrary_a proposition_n immediate_o add_v do_v likewise_o pertain_v to_o the_o gospel_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v the_o like_a antithesis_n be_v also_o in_o these_o say_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n bathe_v eternal_a life_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n be_v not_o condemn_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o these_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a voice_n or_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o they_o not_o only_o contain_v most_o sweet_a promise_n concern_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o righteousness_n before_o god_n and_o concern_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o that_o by_o faith_n embrace_v the_o mediator_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o likewise_o contain_v most_o severe_a threaten_n reprove_v and_o condemn_v this_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o disbelieve_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o mediator_n and_o leave_v under_o this_o eternal_a condemnation_n all_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o his_o son_n thus_o pezelius_n who_o there_o also_o show_v that_o flacius_n do_v abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o luther_n and_o wrest_v his_o word_n to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o threaten_n of_o its_o own_o but_o that_o it_o only_o borrow_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n as_o mr._n g._n say_v after_o his_o master_n flacius_n 2._o two_o the_o whole_a synod_n of_o dort_n and_o that_o be_v the_o delegate_n from_o all_o the_o best_a reform_a church_n bear_v witness_n to_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v its_o own_o threaten_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o their_o 14_o canon_n concern_v the_o five_o head_n of_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n perseverance_n 313._o perseverance_n quemadmodum_fw-la autem_fw-la deo_fw-la placuit_fw-la opus_fw-la hoc_fw-la suum_fw-la gratiae_fw-la per_fw-la praedicationem_fw-la evangelii_n in_fw-la nobis_fw-la inchoare_fw-la ita_fw-la per_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la auditum_fw-la lectionem_fw-la meditationem_fw-la adhortationes_fw-la minas_fw-la promissa_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la per_fw-la usum_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la illud_fw-la conservat_fw-la continuat_fw-la &_o perficit_fw-la act._n synod_n dordrac_n part._n 1._o pag._n 313._o but_o as_o it_o please_v god_n to_o begin_v in_o we_o this_o work_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n so_o he_o preserve_v continue_v and_o perfect_v it_o by_o the_o hear_n read_v and_o meditate_v by_o the_o exhortation_n threaten_n and_o promise_n of_o the_o same_o gospel_n and_o also_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o foresay_a 14_o canon_n which_o be_v subscribe_v by_o the_o whole_a synod_n without_o exception_n now_o this_o be_v such_o a_o testimony_n for_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o defend_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v its_o own_o threaten_n as_o i_o think_v shall_v be_v of_o more_o weight_n with_o true_a protestant_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o that_o erroneous_a person_n flacius_n illyricus_n and_o the_o few_o disciple_n that_o he_o may_v have_v in_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n 3._o 3_o the_o reverend_a and_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o dutch_a annotation_n bear_v testimony_n to_o this_o truth_n witness_v their_o annotation_n on_o rom._n 2.6_o who_o shall_v recompense_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n this_o say_v they_o may_v well_o be_v apply_v also_o to_o the_o recompense_a according_a to_o the_o promise_n and_o threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o most_o clear_a irrefragable_a testimony_n for_o in_o these_o word_n compare_v with_o what_o go_v before_o concern_v recompensing_a even_o heathen_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n and_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n they_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o gospel_n as_o distinct_a from_o and_o as_o oppose_v to_o the_o law_n have_v its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n according_a to_o which_o christian_n shall_v be_v recompense_v 4._o 4thly_a the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a pool_n in_o his_o annotation_n on_o deut._n 29._o do_v in_o a_o remarkable_a instance_n bear_v witness_n to_o this_o truth_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o wicked_a person_n of_o who_o it_o be_v there_o write_v v._o 19_o that_o when_o he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o curse_n he_o bless_v himself_o in_o his_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n to_o add_v drunkenness_n to_o thirst_n be_v one_o of_o those_o who_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o threaten_n see_v pool_n annotation_n on_o the_o 21_o verse_n of_o the_o 29_o of_o deutronomy_n where_o upon_o these_o word_n the_o lord_n shall_v separate_v he_o to_o evil_n accord_n to_o all_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o say_v express_o that_o he_o to_o wit_n the_o lord_n intimate_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n make_v with_o they_o have_v not_o only_a blessing_n belong_v to_o it_o as_o this_o foolish_a person_n imagine_v but_o curse_n also_o to_o the_o transgressor_n of_o it_o here_o mr._n pool_n say_v that_o that_o foolish_a person_n imagine_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v only_a blessing_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o this_o be_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o foolish_a man_n imagine_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v only_a promise_n o●_n blessing_n but_o no_o threaten_n of_o curse_n belong_v to_o it_o 5._o 5thly_a the_o judicious_a hutcheson_n in_o his_o exposition_n on_o john_n gospel_n give_v express_a testimony_n to_o this_o truth_n witness_v those_o formal_a word_n of_o he_o on_o the_o 47._o verse_n of_o the_o 12_o chapter_n of_o john_n gospel_n p._n 256._o albeit_o the_o gospel_n be_v glad_a tiding_n of_o joy_n and_o contain_v cordial_n and_o remedy_n against_o all_o curse_n and_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o it_o contain_v also_o threaten_n against_o despiser_n as_o terrible_a as_o any_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n these_o word_n do_v so_o plain_o show_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n have_v threaten_n of_o its_o own_o distinct_a from_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n that_o i_o need_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v their_o meaning_n for_o it_o be_v self-evident_a that_o they_o have_v that_o meaning_n and_o can_v have_v no_o other_o 6._o 6thly_a mr._n rutherford_n be_v again_o express_v in_o his_o covenant_n of_o life_n open_v for_o the_o same_o truth_n that_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v threaten_n witness_v his_o own_o formal_a word_n part_n 1_o page_n 92._o as_o the_o command_n and_o threaten_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n lie_v on_o a_o real_a obligation_n upon_o such_o as_o be_v only_o external_o in_o covenant_n either_o to_o obey_v or_o suffer_v so_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o covenant_n impose_v a_o engagement_n and_o obligation_n upon_o such_o to_o believe_v the_o promise_n now_o if_o there_o be_v threaten_n of_o the_o covenent_n of_o grace_n then_o be_v there_o threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n also_o for_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v all_o one_o see_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o pool_n annotation_n the_o note_n on_o heb._n 12.29_o together_o with_o the_o explication_n of_o 2_o thes_n 1.8_o 9_o 7._o 7thly_a and_o last_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a dr._n owen_n above_o all_o other_o do_v full_o and_o clear_o give_v testimony_n unto_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v its_o own_o proper_a threaten_n distinct_a from_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n his_o word_n be_v as_o follow_v as_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o promise_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v enwrap_v in_o these_o word_n he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v 2._o save_v dr._n owen_n on_o heb._n 4_o v._o 1_o 2._o pag._n 180._o vol._n 2._o mark_n 16.16_o so_o that_o of_o all_o these_o threaten_n i._n e._n the_o sum_n of_o all_o these_o threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v in_o those_o that_o follow_v he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o a_o like_a summary_n of_o gospel-promise_n and_o threaten_n we_o have_v john_n 3.36_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o and_o threaten_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v frequent_o scatter_v up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n see_v rom._n 2.8_o 9_o 2_o thes_n 1.6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o 1_o pet._n 4.17_o 18._o and_o these_o threaten_n may_v be_v so_o far_o call_v evangelical_n in_o as_o much_o as_o
before_o where_o he_o thus_o write_v 199._o write_v a●que_fw-la h●ec_fw-la universa_fw-la in_o una_fw-la persona_fw-la christi_fw-la unici_fw-la mediatoris_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o hominum_fw-la ita_fw-la continentur_fw-la &_o nodo_fw-la indissolubili_fw-la juncta_fw-la &_o connexa_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la covatur_fw-la unum_fw-la ex_fw-la illis_fw-la christo_fw-la adimere_fw-la conetur_fw-la christum_fw-la solvere_fw-la quam_fw-la esse_fw-la notam_fw-la certissimam_fw-la spiritus_fw-la antichristi_fw-la johannes_n apostolus_fw-la &_o dilectus_fw-la discipulus_fw-la domini_fw-la docet_fw-la in_o prima_fw-la sva_fw-la catholica_fw-la ●pist●a_fw-la coque_fw-la crimine_fw-la antichristianismi_fw-la &_o summi_fw-la sacrilegii_fw-la tenentur_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeresiarchae_fw-la &_o eorum_fw-la sectatores_fw-la pertinaces_fw-la qui_fw-la schismate_fw-la impio_fw-la imprimis_fw-la christum_fw-la divellere_fw-la conati_fw-la sunt_fw-la quod_fw-la nullo_n mo_z so_fw-mi potest_fw-la fieri_fw-la bibliander_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la pag._n 198_o 199._o and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o contain_v and_o join_v and_o connect_v together_o by_o a_o undissoluble_a knot_n in_o the_o one_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n that_o whosoever_o endeavour_v to_o take_v one_o of_o they_o from_o christ_n he_o endeavour_v to_o destroy_v christ_n which_o to_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n the_o apostle_n john_n and_o belove_a disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n teach_v we_o in_o his_o first_o general_a epistle_n and_o of_o this_o crime_n of_o antichristianism_n and_o of_o the_o high_a sacrilege_n be_v guilty_a all_o author_n or_o inventor_n of_o heresy_n and_o their_o obstinate_a follower_n who_o by_o a_o ungodly_a schism_n do_v principal_o endeavour_v to_o divide_v christ_n which_o can_v no_o way_n be_v do_v thus_o the_o learned_a and_o pious_a bibliander_n i_o hope_v therefore_o my_o reverend_a brother_n will_v join_v with_o we_o and_o for_o the_o future_a acknowledge_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o lord_n and_o judge_n too_o do_v belong_v to_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o that_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la because_o he_o be_v mediator_n and_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n for_o as_o the_o dutch_a annotator_n have_v it_o on_o 1_o cor._n 15.25_o he_o must_v reign_v as_o king_n that_o be_v accomplish_v his_o kingly_a office_n as_o mediator_n etc._n etc._n in_o short_a as_o i_o hope_v we_o shall_v so_o i_o wish_v we_o may_v all_o agree_v in_o that_o of_o salvian_n a_o ancient_n and_o zealous_a writer_n of_o the_o five_o century_n cognosce_fw-la century_n nos_fw-la ita_fw-la judicandum_fw-la humanum_fw-la genus_fw-la a_o christo_fw-la dicimus_fw-la ut_fw-la tamen_fw-la etiam_fw-la nunc_fw-la omne_fw-la deum_fw-la prout_fw-la rationabile_fw-la putat_fw-la regere_fw-la ac_fw-la dispensare_fw-la credamus_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la in_o futuro_fw-la judicio_fw-la judicaturum_fw-la affirmemus_fw-la ut_fw-la tamen_fw-la semper_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la saeculo_fw-la judicasse_fw-la doceamus_fw-la dum_fw-la enim_fw-la semper_fw-la gubernat_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la judicat_fw-la quia_fw-la guberuatio_fw-la ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la judicium_fw-la salvian_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr gubernation_n dei_fw-la pag._n 15._o vid._n etiam_fw-la lib._n 2._o pag._n 55._o ubi_fw-la haec_fw-la habet_fw-la unde_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la solatium_fw-la arbitror_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la tuorum_fw-la considerari_fw-la actus_fw-la nostros_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la non_fw-la putas_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la &_o aspici_fw-la te_fw-la a_o christo_fw-la semper_fw-la intellige_fw-la &_o puniendum_fw-la forsitan_fw-la propediem_fw-la esse_fw-la cognosce_fw-la we_o so_o say_v that_o mankind_n will_v be_v judge_v by_o christ_n as_o that_o yet_o we_o believe_v also_o that_o god_n now_o at_o present_a do_v rule_v and_o dispense_v all_o thing_n as_o he_o thing_n reasonable_a or_o sit_v and_o let_v we_o so_o affirm_v that_o christ_n will_v judge_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o be_v to_o come_v hereafter_o as_o notwithstanding_o to_o teach_v also_o that_o he_o have_v always_o judge_v in_o this_o world_n for_o whilst_o god_n do_v always_o govern_v he_o do_v always_o judge_n also_o because_o the_o very_a govern_v act_n itself_o of_o god_n and_o so_o of_o christ_n the_o mediatorial_n king_n be_v judgement_n thus_o salvian_n and_o i_o think_v this_o may_v suffice_v for_o answer_n to_o mr._n g_n three_o objection_n 4._o obj._n last_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n himself_o in_o john_n 3.18_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o say_v page_z 55._o he_o be_v confident_a we_o will_v have_v regard_n to_o these_o word_n answer_n indeed_o his_o confidence_n in_o this_o be_v well_o ground_v for_o we_o real_o have_v as_o we_o ought_v a_o very_a great_a regard_n to_o these_o and_o all_o the_o other_o word_n of_o our_o most_o bless_a and_o glorious_a lord_n and_o they_o have_v a_o command_a power_n over_o we_o to_o induce_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o with_o faith_n and_o love_n but_o what_o then_o must_v we_o therefore_o have_v regard_n to_o mr._n g's_o consequence_n which_o he_o draw_v from_o they_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n that_o do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v and_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o declare_v that_o i_o reject_v his_o consequence_n which_o be_v that_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v no_o threatening_n since_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only-begotten_a son_n of_o god_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o unbeliever_n be_v already_o condemn_v by_o the_o old_a law_n of_o work_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o he_o be_v condemn_v again_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n i_o answer_v that_o a_o man_n who_o live_v under_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o remain_v still_o in_o unbelief_n be_v already_o condemn_v both_o by_o law_n and_o gospel_n by_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o also_o by_o the_o new_a so_o long_o as_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o unbelief_n as_o i_o show_v before_o and_o it_o do_v not_o become_v we_o to_o say_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o need_v not_o to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n twice_o when_o we_o know_v that_o he_o have_v twice_o do_v it_o especial_o when_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o though_o the_o same_o person_n be_v twice_o over_o condemn_v yet_o it_o be_v in_o different_a respect_n and_o for_o two_o different_a cause_n first_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o old_a law_n of_o work_n for_o not_o keep_v it_o perfect_o and_o personal_o so_o as_o never_o to_o break_v it_o either_o by_o original_n or_o actual_a sin_n and_o thus_o all_o unbeliever_n in_o the_o world_n be_v condemn_v even_a heathen_n that_o never_o hear_v the_o joyful_a sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o never_o have_v a_o gospel-off_a of_o mercy_n upon_o the_o term_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n second_o he_o be_v condemn_v also_o by_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a covenant_n &_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o not_o accept_v the_o gospel-off_a of_o mercy_n for_o not_o receive_v and_o apply_v to_o himself_o the_o remedy_n tender_v to_o he_o in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n here_o this_o unbeliever_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o sin_n which_o the_o foresay_a heathen_n who_o have_v only_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o sin_n which_o be_v direct_o and_o immediate_o against_o the_o save_a remedy_n merciful_o provide_v and_o offer_v he_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n for_o condemn_v he_o again_o by_o the_o gospel-covenant_n i_o say_v for_o condemn_v he_o to_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o punishment_n than_o that_o of_o mere_a heathen_n who_o be_v guilty_a only_o of_o sin_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o be_v guilty_a of_o no_o sin_n against_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o at_o all_o guilty_a of_o any_o sin_n in_o neglect_v or_o refuse_v to_o receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o salvation_n offer_v through_o he_o in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n our_o saviour_n say_v in_o this_o very_a text_n that_o the_o unbeliever_n who_o be_v guilty_a of_o positive_a unbelief_n against_o the_o gospel_n be_v condemn_v already_o not_o only_o and_o mere_o because_o he_o have_v break_v god_n natural_a moral_a law_n but_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o then_o as_o it_o be_v to_o obviate_v mr._n g_n objection_n he_o add_v immediate_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil._n see_v what_o be_v quote_v before_o in_o the_o remark_n on_o mr._n g's_o six_o chapter_n out_o of_o mr._n hutcheson_n exposition_n on_o john_n 3._o v._o 18.19_o as_o for_o mr._n
old_a and_o so_o can_v not_o then_o belong_v to_o the_o old_a law_n or_o covenant_n of_o work_n therefore_o since_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v now_o some_o positive_a precept_n different_a from_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o first_o old_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o obedience_n require_v by_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v partly_o also_o different_a from_o the_o obedience_n require_v by_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o old_a law_n of_o work_n but_o now_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o obedience_n require_v by_o the_o say_v two_o covenant_n as_o the_o two_o condition_n of_o their_o respective_a covenant_n so_o they_o differ_v formal_o in_o kind_a and_o not_o mere_o in_o degree_n for_o they_o proceed_v from_o different_a principle_n they_o have_v different_a formal_a motive_n and_o serve_v to_o different_a end_n and_o purpose_n the_o most_o perfect_a legal_a obedience_n require_v as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n be_v the_o very_a righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o man_n be_v to_o have_v be_v justify_v and_o to_o have_v live_v by_o that_o covenant_n if_o he_o have_v keep_v it_o but_o now_o the_o sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n require_v as_o a_o condition_n on_o our_o part_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n promise_v of_o glorification_n and_o consummate_v salvation_n be_v not_o any_o the_o least_o part_n of_o that_o meritorious_a righteousness_n for_o which_o alone_o we_o obtain_v possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o consummate_v salvation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o promise_n themselves_o of_o the_o two_o covenant_n they_o also_o be_v specifical_o different_a because_o they_o have_v different_a impulsive_a and_o move_a cause_n of_o their_o first_o make_v and_o be_v perform_v for_o different_a and_o formal_a fundamental_a reason_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n it_o be_v indeed_o of_o god_n free_a goodness_n and_o gracious_a condescension_n that_o he_o promise_v a_o reward_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n on_o condition_n of_o perfect_a obedience_n but_o in_o the_o second_o and_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v of_o his_o rich_a mercy_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o promise_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n on_o condition_n of_o our_o sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n and_o perseverance_n in_o faith_n and_o holiness_n to_o the_o end_n so_o that_o they_o have_v different_a impulsive_a cause_n of_o their_o first_o make_v and_o be_v so_o make_v they_o be_v at_o last_o perform_v for_o different_a formal_a motive_n and_o reason_n if_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o work_n have_v be_v keep_v the_o promise_n of_o ●●●e_a will_v have_v be_v perform_v and_o make_v good_a to_o man_n for_o his_o own_o personal_a obedience_n as_o his_o righteousness_n his_o only_a righteousness_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o now_o the_o gospel_n or_o new_a covenant-promise_a of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n be_v perform_v and_o make_v good_a to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n not_o for_o their_o own_o personal_a sincere_a obedience_n but_o only_o for_o the_o most_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o they_o so_o that_o as_o the_o impulsive_a cause_n of_o make_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o formal_a motive_n and_o fundamental_a reason_n of_o perform_v the_o say_v several_a promise_n of_o the_o two_o covenant_n do_v great_o differ_v and_o therefore_o the_o promise_n themselves_o differ_v in_o kind_n now_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n that_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v amen_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 1.20_o thus_o i_o have_v answer_v his_o first_o argument_n at_o large_a and_o hence_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o his_o consequence_n be_v inconsequent_a and_o will_v not_o hold_v to_o wit_n that_o upon_o our_o principle_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n will_v be_v a_o covenant_n of_o work_n for_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o two_o covenant_n differ_v specifical_o and_o in_o kind_n and_o that_o though_o both_o require_v obedience_n and_o work_n yet_o they_o be_v much_o different_a from_o one_o another_o and_o in_o order_n to_o far_o different_a end_n and_o purpose_n the_o work_v require_v by_o the_o first_o and_o old_a covenant_n be_v legal_a work_n that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o only_a righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o man_n be_v to_o be_v justify_v and_o to_o live_v but_o the_o work_v require_v by_o the_o second_o new_a and_o gospel-covenant_n be_v evangelical_n work_v which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v save_v and_o glorify_v thus_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o do_v not_o absurd_o confound_v the_o two_o covenant_n of_o law_n and_o gospel_n but_o he_o draw_v silly_a consequence_n from_o our_o principle_n which_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o understand_v and_o build_v castle_n in_o the_o air_n which_o tumble_v down_o for_o want_n of_o a_o solid_a foundation_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o it_o be_v that_o he_o wrest_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o ought_v careful_o to_o be_v avoid_v as_o that_o which_o may_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o some_o other_o destruction_n if_o not_o of_o our_o own_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o wrest_v both_o in_o p._n 56._o and_o 63._o be_v that_o in_o rom._n 14.6_o where_o to_o make_v it_o serve_v his_o purpose_n he_o suppose_v 1._o that_o in_o the_o word_n than_o be_v it_o no_o more_o of_o work_n by_o the_o relative_a it_o must_v necessary_o be_v mean_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 2._o he_o suppose_v that_o by_o the_o say_a word_n than_o be_v it_o no_o more_o of_o work_n must_v needs_o be_v mean_v then_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n require_v no_o sort_n of_o obedience_n nor_o any_o kind_n of_o work_n in_o order_n to_o any_o gospel_n end_n and_o purpose_n 3._o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o work_v there_o exclude_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o only_o meritorious_a work_n but_o any_o sort_n of_o command_a duty_n though_o no_o way_n meritorious_a nor_o conceive_v so_o to_o be_v and_o then_o from_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n thus_o pervert_v he_o infer_v his_o conclusion_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o flat_a contradiction_n to_o rom._n 11.16_o if_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v any_o conditional_a promise_n and_o if_o it_o require_v any_o duty_n and_o obedience_n or_o any_o sort_n of_o work_n at_o all_o i_o free_o grant_v that_o this_o consequence_n be_v good_a from_o the_o foresay_a three_o supposition_n but_o i_o utter_o deny_v all_o the_o three_o supposition_n and_o i_o know_v my_o r._n b._n can_v prove_v they_o to_o eternity_n if_o he_o think_v he_o can_v let_v he_o try_v his_o skill_n for_o i_o put_v he_o to_o it_o but_o withal_o i_o advise_v he_o to_o take_v heed_n what_o he_o do_v god_n will_v not_o be_v mock_v nor_o suffer_v his_o word_n to_o be_v abuse_v without_o control_n if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o suppose_v the_o three_o thing_n aforesaid_a i_o answer_v that_o he_o do_v and_o must_v suppose_v they_o or_o else_o he_o gross_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o wrest_v and_o wring_v out_o of_o they_o a_o sense_n that_o be_v never_o in_o they_o for_o understand_v the_o apostle_n word_n as_o he_o mean_v they_o and_o they_o make_v nothing_o for_o his_o purpose_n at_o all_o nor_o will_v they_o bear_v the_o inference_n that_o he_o deduce_v from_o they_o to_o make_v this_o appear_v consider_v 1._o that_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n assirm_v there_o to_o be_v of_o grace_n and_o deny_v to_o be_v of_o work_n be_v not_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n of_o which_o he_o do_v not_o there_o speak_v but_o it_o be_v either_o the_o election_n or_o the_o reserve_n of_o the_o remnant_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o forego_n verse_n 2_o consider_v that_o by_o say_v it_o be_v of_o grace_n and_o not_o of_o work_n he_o mean_v that_o grace_n and_o not_o work_n be_v the_o impulsive_a move_a cause_n of_o the_o say_a election_n or_o of_o the_o rescrve_n of_o a_o remnant_n at_o that_o time_n but_o he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o mean_a that_o because_o the_o covenant_n be_v of_o grace_n therefore_o it_o require_v no_o work_n no_o obedience_n nor_o duty_n at_o all_o 3._o consider_v that_o the_o work_v vvi_a he_o exclude_v be_v only_o meritorious_a work_n because_o they_o be_v such_o work_n as_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o and_o destructive_a of_o grace_n now_o my_o judgement_n be_v that_o the_o particle_n it_n in_o our_o translation_n of_o v._o 6._o refer_v to_o the_o word_n election_n in_o v._o 5._o and_o then_o the_o sense_n be_v as_o the_o dutch_a annotator_n on_o rom._n 11.6_o give_v it_o we_o thus_o and_n if_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n namely_o that_o those_o be_v elect_v to_o
all_o the_o nation_n from_o peru_n to_o japan_n on_o condition_n they_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v and_o repent_v i_o answer_v that_o consequence_n be_v false_a no_o such_o thing_n do_v follow_v from_o the_o aforesaid_a antecedent_n unless_o god_n promulgate_v the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o those_o people_n and_o nation_n without_o exception_n as_o he_o have_v promulgate_v it_o to_o we_o in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o positive_a constitution_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o positive_a law_n not_o knowable_a by_o the_o mere_a light_n of_o nature_n it_o do_v not_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o to_o be_v subject_a and_o obedient_a unto_o it_o unless_o it_o be_v sufficient_o promulgate_v to_o he_o either_o then_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o same_o be_v sufficient_o promulgate_v to_o all_o the_o beforementioned_a people_n and_o nation_n or_o else_o you_o must_v let_v go_v that_o consequence_n as_o utter_o inconsequent_a this_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v sensible_a of_o and_o therefore_o you_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n have_v promulgate_v the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n without_o exception_n a_o bold_a undertake_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o proof_n why_o thus_o it_o be_v if_o god_n in_o give_v his_o moral_a law_n to_o all_o reasonable_a creature_n say_v universal_o to_o angel_n and_o man_n do_v this_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n if_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a law_n god_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v here_o be_v my_o r._n brother_n argument_n but_o i_o hearty_o wish_v for_o his_o own_o credit_n he_o have_v suppress_v it_o and_o never_o suffer_v it_o to_o see_v the_o light_n for_o i_o think_v such_o a_o ridiculous_a weak_a argument_n be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o any_o learned_a author_n and_o to_o make_v the_o weakness_n of_o it_o appear_v i_o answer_v 1._o that_o his_o supposition_n from_o whence_o he_o infer_v his_o position_n be_v not_o true_a if_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o moral-natural-law_n only_o material_o consider_v before_o god_n put_v it_o into_o the_o form_n of_o a_o covenant_n by_o add_v to_o it_o the_o conditional_a promise_n if_o you_o do_v this_o you_o shall_v live_v in_o that_o case_n by_o give_v unto_o man_n the_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n without_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n god_n have_v say_v unto_o he_o do_v this_o which_o those_o precept_n require_v but_o he_o have_v not_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o shall_v live_v if_o thou_o do_v this_o my_o r._n brother_n may_v remember_v that_o he_o himself_o in_o pag._n 50._o affirm_v that_o adam_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v existence_n be_v present_o bind_v to_o obey_v god_n in_o all_o that_o he_o will_v command_v he_o though_o he_o have_v make_v no_o promise_n to_o he_o of_o any_o reward_n and_o if_o adam_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v god_n in_o all_o that_o he_o will_v command_v he_o then_o cerrain_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v he_o in_o all_o that_o he_o do_v command_v he_o though_o he_o have_v make_v no_o promise_n to_o he_o of_o any_o reward_n but_o i_o hope_v mr._n g._n will_v not_o say_v that_o adam_n be_v bind_v also_o to_o believe_v actual_o that_o he_o shall_v live_v for_o any_o determinate_a time_n without_o a_o conditional_a promise_n of_o life_n to_o he_o if_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o obedience_n for_o if_o god_n will_v he_o may_v have_v annihilate_v adam_n again_o even_o after_o he_o have_v be_v perfect_o obedient_a for_o a_o time_n and_o before_o he_o have_v commit_v any_o the_o least_o sin_n i_o say_v god_n may_v have_v do_v this_o by_o his_o absolute_a sovereignty_n if_o he_o have_v not_o engage_v himself_o not_o to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n to_o adam_n for_o god_n give_v of_o life_n with_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n to_o adam_n do_v not_o of_o itself_o without_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n necessary_o oblige_v he_o not_o to_o annihilate_v he_o before_o and_o without_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n god_n by_o his_o absolute_a power_n and_o sovereign_n freewill_n may_v have_v annihilate_v or_o not_o annihilate_v adam_n and_o therefore_o in_o give_v the_o moral_a law_n to_o adam_n without_o the_o premise_v of_o life_n god_n do_v not_o say_v to_o he_o do_v this_o and_o thou_o shall_v live_v he_o say_v indeed_o to_o he_o do_v this_o but_o he_o do_v not_o thereby_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o shall_v live_v if_o thou_o do_v this_o and_o without_o god_n say_v to_o he_o by_o promise_n thou_o shall_v live_v if_o thou_o do_v this_o adam_n can_v have_v no_o infallible_a assurance_n that_o god_n will_v not_o use_v his_o power_n and_o sovereign_n freewill_n in_o annihilate_v he_o he_o can_v not_o by_o all_o that_o god_n have_v do_v for_o he_o in_o create_v he_o and_o concreat_v in_o he_o the_o principle_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v any_o infallible_a assurance_n that_o he_o will_v continue_v to_o he_o the_o happy_a life_n he_o have_v give_v he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v afterward_o prefer_v he_o to_o a_o better_a that_o be_v to_o a_o heavenly_a and_o eternal_a life_n the_o do_v of_o this_o depend_v on_o god_n freewill_n and_o therefore_o adam_n assurance_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v depend_v upon_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n will_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o man_n that_o if_o he_o never_o sin_v he_o shall_v never_o die_v but_o live_v happy_o sorever_o and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v so_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la for_o in_o create_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n god_n give_v he_o the_o principle_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n but_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v that_o god_n give_v he_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n till_o some_o time_n after_o that_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o as_o it_o be_v write_v gen._n 2.16_o 17._o in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o cate_a thereof_o thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v in_o which_o word_n the_o contrary_a promise_n be_v imply_v but_o two_o if_o mr._n g._n say_v that_o by_o god_n give_v unto_o man_n the_o moral_a law_n he_o mean_v god_n give_v he_o the_o moral_a law_n formal_o as_o a_o covenant_n with_o its_o federal_a sanction_n of_o threaten_v and_o promise_n then_o indeed_o i_o grant_v that_o by_o give_v unto_o adam_n the_o moral_a law_n as_o a_o federal_a law_n god_n say_v unto_o he_o do_v this_o and_o thou_o shall_v live_v but_o if_o thou_o do_v it_o not_o thou_o shall_v die_v but_o then_o though_o god_n say_v this_o to_o adam_n by_o give_v he_o that_o federal_a law_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o clear_a that_o he_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n at_o this_o day_n to_o all_o adam_n posterity_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a heathen_n by_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n i_o do_v grant_v that_o together_o with_o the_o humane_a nature_n god_n give_v the_o first_o principle_n and_o precept_n of_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n unto_o all_o mankind_n that_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a heathen_n yea_o that_o he_o give_v also_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n to_o their_o infant_n i_o say_v he_o give_v they_o in_o power_n but_o not_o in_o act_n but_o that_o god_n give_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n the_o same_o promise_n which_o he_o give_v at_o first_o unto_o adam_n and_o that_o he_o say_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o they_o do_v this_o and_o thou_o shall_v live_v keep_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o thou_o shall_v live_v eternal_o let_v he_o prove_v this_o at_o his_o leisure_n it_o will_v not_o suffice_v to_o say_v that_o god_n virtual_o and_o constructive_o make_v the_o say_a promise_n to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v seminal_o and_o federal_o in_o adam_n for_o though_o that_o be_v very_o true_a and_o we_o know_v it_o by_o the_o write_a word_n or_o we_o shall_v never_o have_v know_v it_o in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n yet_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n for_o now_o all_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o truth_n of_o mr._n g's_o word_n which_o suppose_v that_o god_n in_o give_v his_o moral_a law_n to_o all_o reasonable_a creature_n say_v universal_o to_o man_n do_v this_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v now_o do_v god_n ever_o say_v this_o universal_o to_o all_o mankind_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n and_o do_v he_o say_v so_o at_o this_o day_n and_o
do_v he_o say_v it_o so_o clear_o as_o that_o they_o can_v understand_v that_o promise_n of_o life_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o without_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n let_v my_o reverend_a brother_n prove_v this_o and_o i_o be_o satisfy_v as_o to_o that_o matter_n but_o 2._o i_o answer_v that_o his_o position_n which_o he_o infer_v from_o the_o foresay_a supposition_n to_o wit_n that_o ergo_fw-la god_n in_o give_v the_o gospel_n law_n to_o some_o men_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o the_o most_o barbarous_a heathen_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v be_v not_o only_o notorious_o false_a as_o consider_v absolute_o in_o itself_o but_o likewise_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v relative_o as_o have_v respect_n unto_o and_o as_o infer_v from_o the_o say_a supposition_n it_o be_v so_o visible_o inconsequential_a and_o illogical_a that_o i_o admire_v my_o r._n brother_n do_v not_o perceive_v it_o for_o what_o man_n of_o any_o competent_a measure_n of_o learning_n be_v so_o void_a of_o reason_n as_o deliberate_o to_o think_v and_o say_v that_o because_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o as_o to_o its_o principle_n and_o precept_n be_v natural_a and_o by_o nature_n light_n know_v to_o all_o even_o to_o the_o heathen_n rom._n 2.14_o 15._o be_v sufficient_o promulgate_v to_o all_o mankind_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n therefore_o by_o parity_n of_o reason_n the_o positive_a gospel-law_n of_o grace_n believe_v in_fw-la christ_n crucify_a and_o thou_o shall_v live_v which_o be_v supernatural_a and_o can_v possible_o be_v know_v but_o by_o supernatural_a revelation_n rom._n 10.14_o be_v likewise_o sufficient_o promulgate_v to_o all_o mankind_n without_o exception_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n who_o have_v not_o and_o who_o never_o have_v that_o supernatural_a revelation_n by_o which_o alone_o it_o can_v be_v know_v for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v but_o think_v that_o that_o man_n be_v forsake_v of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n who_o deliberate_o and_o serious_o think_v and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o parity_n of_o reason_n between_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o foresay_a two_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o grace_n and_o that_o because_o the_o one_o to_o wit_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v and_o must_v be_v sufficient_o promulgate_v to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n therefore_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o supernatural_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v and_o must_v be_v likewise_o sufflcient_o promulgate_v to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n who_o never_o have_v the_o foresay_a supernatural_a revelation_n by_o which_o alone_o it_o can_v be_v know_v and_o since_o it_o be_v palpable_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o parity_n of_o reason_n between_o the_o two_o case_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o consequential_a argue_v from_o the_o universal_a promulgation_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n to_o prove_v the_o universal_a promulgation_n of_o the_o supernatural_a law_n of_o grace_n mr._n g._n may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o assirm_v that_o the_o two_o amaze_a absurdity_n which_o he_o mention_n will_v natural_o spring_v from_o hence_o for_o it_o be_v plain_o ridiculous_a to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o they_o both_o natural_o spring_n from_o his_o foresay_a argument_n or_o that_o they_o natural_o spring_v from_o god_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v now_o that_o this_o may_v clear_o appear_v i_o will_v set_v down_o my_o r._n brother_n own_o word_n pag._n 57_o l._n 9.10_o etc._n etc._n from_o this_o say_v he_o two_o amaze_a absurdity_n will_v natural_o spring_n the_o one_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v by_o this_o his_o new_a law_n promise_v pardon_n and_o life_n on_o condition_n they_o believe_v on_o his_o son_n to_o people_n who_o never_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o such_o a_o person_n as_o christ_n and_o to_o who_o ear_n not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o sound_n of_o his_o name_n ever_o arrive_v these_o be_v his_o own_o express_a word_n and_o in_o they_o be_v contain_v the_o first_o amaze_a absurdity_n and_o i_o ingenuous_o confess_v with_o my_o mouth_n what_o i_o believe_v in_o my_o heart_n that_o what_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v a_o amaze_a absurdity_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n shall_v promise_v pardon_n and_o life_n on_o condition_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o people_n who_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n at_o all_o i._n e._n to_o who_o christ_n be_v never_o supernatural_o reveal_v at_o all_o but_o with_o all_o i_o must_v say_v that_o i_o be_o amaze_v to_o find_v mr._n g._n affirm_v that_o the_o say_v amaze_a absurdity_n do_v natural_o spring_n from_o this_o that_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o if_o he_o will_v prove_v what_o he_o here_o affirm_v he_o will_v amaze_v i_o yet_o more_o the_o thing_n than_o he_o have_v to_o prove_v be_v that_o which_o he_o affirm_v to_o wit_n that_o from_o god_n speak_v general_o upon_o supposition_n that_o he_o do_v speak_v general_o by_o the_o gospel-new-law_n to_o all_o man_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v there_o will_v natural_o spring_n this_o consequence_n that_o god_n by_o the_o say_a gospel-new-law_n promise_v life_n on_o condition_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o people_n who_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n that_o be_v in_o few_o word_n but_o of_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o meaning_n from_o god_n speak_v general_o by_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n concern_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o life_n through_o he_o it_o follow_v natural_o that_o god_n do_v not_o by_o the_o gospel_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n concern_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o life_n through_o he_o i_o do_v my_o r._n b._n no_o wrong_a by_o fix_v upon_o he_o a_o consequence_n of_o my_o feign_n i_o do_v abhor_v to_o do_v such_o a_o thing_n assure_o it_o be_v not_o of_o my_o feign_n but_o it_o be_v frame_v in_o his_o own_o head_n and_o be_v print_v with_o his_o name_n prefix_v to_o it_o i_o appeal_v to_o his_o own_o word_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o now_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o amaze_a absurdity_n let_v he_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o consequence_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v all_o amaze_v at_o his_o acumen_fw-la as_o of_o one_o who_o can_v conjure_v quiàlibet_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la and_o demonstrate_v by_o a_o natural_a consequence_n that_o because_o god_n have_v general_o promulgate_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o man_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o general_o promulgate_v the_o cospel_n to_o all_o men._n but_o reverend_a sir_n i_o hope_v upon_o second_o thought_n you_o will_v see_v how_o you_o run_v yourself_o into_o the_o brier_n by_o misrepresent_v the_o truth_n and_o by_o endeavour_v to_o render_v it_o odious_a to_o your_o ignorant_a follower_n and_o i_o wish_v you_o may_v be_v so_o ingenuous_a as_o to_o confess_v for_o the_o undeceive_n of_o the_o people_n that_o our_o principle_n be_v not_o such_o as_o some_o take_v they_o to_o be_v and_o that_o no_o such_o absurdity_n as_o be_v pretend_v do_v natural_o spring_n from_o they_o for_o my_o part_n i_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v that_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v live_v i_o publish_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o world_n in_o that_o very_a book_n which_o this_o brother_n now_o write_v against_o see_v apol._n pag._n 200._o but_o if_o i_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n i_o shall_v from_o it_o infer_v the_o quite_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o you_o infer_v and_o shall_v say_v now_o from_o this_o opinion_n if_o it_o be_v true_a there_o will_v natural_o spring_v this_o other_o truth_n that_o all_o man_n general_o without_o exception_n have_v hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o person_n as_o christ_n and_o such_o a_o religion_n as_o that_o call_v christian_a in_o short_a you_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o in_o my_o judgement_n god_n have_v not_o promulgate_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n by_o speak_v universal_o to_o they_o all_o and_o say_v that_o if_o they_o do_v all_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o therefore_o many_o be_v invincible_o and_o inculpable_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n because_o god_n have_v no_o way_n reveal_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n to_o they_o unto_o this_o day_n nor_o do_v he_o either_o by_o precept_n command_v they_o or_o by_o promise_n encourage_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n this_o be_v common_o call_v a_o negative_a infidelity_n which_o be_v no_o sin_n
in_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o be_v most_o invincible_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n and_o be_v under_o no_o obligation_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o because_o the_o gospel-law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o can_v only_o be_v know_v by_o supernatural_a revelation_n be_v not_o at_o all_o reveal_v and_o make_v know_v to_o they_o but_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o other_o enormous_a sin_n against_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o which_o they_o be_v just_o condemn_v rom._n 2.12_o and_o this_o show_v that_o my_o r._n brother_n second_v amaze_a absurdity_n do_v not_o concern_v i_o for_o whether_o it_o do_v or_o do_v not_o natural_o spring_v from_o god_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n and_o say_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o you_o shall_v live_v it_o do_v not_o touch_v i_o and_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o maintain_v for_o these_o two_o plain_a reason_n first_o because_o i_o do_v utter_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n from_o which_o it_o be_v say_v natural_o to_o spring_v i_o deny_v that_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n speak_v general_o to_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n without_o exception_n of_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n and_o command_v they_o all_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o life_n if_o they_o do_v believe_v in_o he_o second_o for_o the_o consequent_a which_o be_v say_v to_o spring_v natural_o from_o the_o say_a antecedent_n i_o disow_v it_o also_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n contrary_a to_o his_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n promise_n pardon_v to_o all_o man_n upon_o the_o impossible_a condition_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o say_v this_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a i_o say_v there_o may_v be_v many_o million_o of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n who_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n to_o who_o god_n do_v not_o promise_n pardon_v of_o sin_n upon_o the_o impossible_a condition_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n and_o hence_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o by_o my_o principle_n i_o be_o under_o no_o obligation_n either_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n to_o join_v with_o my_o r._n brother_n in_o deny_v that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v any_o conditional_a promise_n or_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n to_o join_v with_o the_o arminian_o in_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o universal_a sufficient_a grace_n i._n e._n as_o mr._n g._n express_v it_o that_o all_o man_n have_v sufficient_a mean_n afford_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n give_v help_n enough_o to_o enable_v they_o to_o believe_v if_o they_o will_v and_o whenever_o themselves_o please_v i_o thank_v god_n i_o can_v by_o my_o principle_n walk_v safe_o in_o the_o middle_a way_n between_o these_o two_o extreme_n and_o not_o incidere_fw-la in_o scyllam_fw-la cupiens_fw-la virare_fw-la charybdin_n and_o i_o think_v it_o have_v become_v mr._n g._n to_o have_v be_v more_o modest_a than_o to_o have_v past_o such_o a_o censure_n upon_o our_o most_o able_a and_o judicious_a divine_n who_o have_v maintain_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n as_o that_o they_o can_v not_o defend_v the_o truth_n against_o the_o arminian_o but_o upon_o their_o principle_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n they_o ought_v all_o to_o have_v turn_v arminian_o for_o this_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o whitaker_n ames_n twiss_n our_o british_a divine_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n rutherford_n rivet_n spanhem_n turretin_n isaac_n junius_n triglandius_n pool_n and_o innumerable_a more_o who_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n be_v all_o blind_a and_o do_v not_o see_v the_o mischievous_a consequence_n of_o their_o opinion_n which_o consequence_n if_o they_o have_v follow_v they_o themselves_o must_v all_o have_v turn_v arminian_o and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v right_o confute_v the_o arminian_n error_n but_o young_a mr._n goodwin_n be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v above_o they_o all_o enlighten_v to_o see_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v no_o conditional_a promise_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o be_v qualify_v to_o be_v our_o champion_n against_o those_o heretic_n who_o be_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n for_o ames_n twiss_n rutherford_n spanhem_n durham_n etc._n etc._n because_o these_o old_a weak_a man_n be_v fond_a of_o one_o arminian_n opinion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n which_o have_v a_o inseparable_a connexion_n with_o the_o whole_a arminian_n system_n disc_n pag._n 58._o obj._n 3_o three_o he_o argue_v thus_o against_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n the_o scripture_n urge_v by_o my_o reverend_a brother_n do_v not_o signify_v that_o god_n pass_v his_o word_n to_o all_o man_n by_o a_o new_a law_n establish_v among_o they_o that_o if_o they_o obey_v it_o and_o believe_v and_o repent_v they_o shall_v assure_o be_v save_v for_o god_n always_o speak_v the_o purpose_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o none_o of_o his_o word_n contradict_v his_o heart_n but_o he_o never_o decree_v either_o absolute_o or_o conditional_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v eternal_o save_v i_o answer_v that_o my_o r._n brother_n objection_n as_o here_o set_v down_o in_o his_o own_o express_a word_n do_v not_o at_o all_o reach_v i_o nor_o make_v against_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o defend_v for_o i_o never_o say_v that_o god_n have_v pass_v his_o word_n to_o all_o man_n by_o a_o new_a law_n establish_v among_o they_o that_o if_o they_o obey_v it_o and_o believe_v and_o repent_v they_o shall_v assure_o be_v save_v i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o say_v this_o that_o in_o effect_n i_o have_v plain_o say_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o apol._n pag._n 200._o l._n 21.22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o there_o my_o express_a formal_a word_n be_v that_o there_o be_v heathen_n who_o never_o hear_v nor_o can_v hear_v of_o the_o gospel_n for_o want_v of_o a_o objective_a revelation_n of_o it_o now_o by_o these_o word_n i_o certain_o mean_v and_o do_v still_o mean_a to_o signify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o god_n have_v not_o pass_v his_o word_n to_o all_o man_n even_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n by_o a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n i._n e._n by_o the_o gospel_n establish_v among_o they_o that_o if_o they_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o shall_v assure_o be_v save_v this_o objection_n than_o i_o may_v dismiss_v as_o impertinent_a and_o not_o militate_v against_o i_o who_o be_o not_o such_o a_o vniversalist_n as_o mr._n g._n will_v make_v people_n believe_v that_o i_o be_o though_o i_o have_v declare_v the_o contrary_a and_o any_o body_n will_v think_v that_o i_o shall_v know_v my_o own_o mind_n better_o than_o another_o man_n especial_o man_n who_o know_v not_o my_o principle_n but_o by_o my_o book_n unless_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o by_o believe_v the_o false_a report_n of_o his_o good_a friend_n i_o hope_v that_o for_o the_o future_a my_o r._n b._n will_v be_v so_o just_a as_o to_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o my_o principle_n from_o my_o print_a book_n and_o not_o from_o the_o report_n of_o the_o accuser_n but_o it_o may_v be_v my_o r._n brother_n will_v say_v that_o though_o i_o be_v no_o such_o a_o universalist_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o i_o hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n have_v conditional_a promise_n and_o that_o the_o conditional_a promise_n be_v to_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n even_o to_o the_o non-elect_a to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o which_o i_o say_v again_o that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o most_o certain_a that_o such_o be_v my_o judgement_n and_o i_o be_o not_o singular_a in_o it_o for_o as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o apology_n it_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o divine_n mr._n rutherford_n say_v if_o the_o former_a sense_n be_v intend_v as_o how_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v preach_v to_o you_o a_o offer_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v in_o the_o preach_v gospel_n to_o you_o 87.88_o you_o covenant_n of_o life_n open_v part_n 1._o chap._n 13._o pag._n 87.88_o then_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o the_o promise_n be_v to_o all_o the_o reprobate_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n whether_o they_o believe_v or_o not_o for_o christ_n be_v preach_v and_o promise_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v preach_v to_o simon_n magus_n to_o judas_n and_o all_o the_o hypocrite_n who_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n to_o all_o the_o pharisee_n as_o be_v clear_a mat._n 13.20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o act._n 13.44_o 45_o 46._o act._n 18.5_o 6._o mat._n 21.43_o 1_o pet._n 2.7_o 8._o and_o again_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 90._o
entitative_o consider_v so_o as_o to_o be_v dependent_a and_o hang_v in_o suspense_n no_o such_o matter_n nor_o do_v any_o such_o thing_n follow_v from_o god_n make_v conditional_a promise_n it_o be_v only_o conditional_a respective_o terminative_o and_o objective_o and_o that_o be_v all_o which_o follow_v from_o god_n make_v conditional_a promise_n and_o willing_a the_o thing_n promise_v conditional_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n with_o a_o absolute_a independent_a will_n do_v will_n that_o if_o man_n true_o believe_v and_o repent_v they_o shall_v be_v pardon_v and_o save_v whosoever_o they_o be_v but_o not_o pardon_v and_o save_v if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o repent_v 2._o we_o apply_v the_o same_o distinction_n to_o the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n of_o the_o objection_n and_o grant_v that_o there_o can_v be_v a_o conditional_a will_n in_o god_n that_o be_v a_o will_n in_o itself_o and_o subjective_o or_o entitative_o conditional_a and_o so_o as_o to_o be_v in_o itself_o dependent_a and_o to_o hang_v in_o suspense_n but_o then_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v absolute_a independent_a and_o determinate_a it_o itself_o can_v be_v respective_o terminative_o and_o objective_o conditional_a in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v this_o distinction_n be_v approve_v and_o use_v by_o dr._n ames_n as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 105_o 106._o and_o by_o our_o british_a divine_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n as_o from_o their_o collegiate_n suffrage_n i_o prove_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 114._o so_o do_v dr._n twiss_n approve_v it_o witness_v what_o he_o write_v against_o corvinus_n his_o word_n be_v 355._o be_v neque_fw-la enim_fw-la negamus_fw-la decreta_fw-la dei_fw-la quoad_fw-la res_fw-la volitas_fw-la dici_fw-la posse_fw-la conditionata_fw-la quatenus_fw-la scilicet_fw-la neque_fw-la vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la nisi_fw-la sub_fw-la conditione_n fidei_fw-la conferenda_fw-la sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o corvin_n defence_n arminii_n contra_fw-la tilen_v p._n 355._o for_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n may_v be_v call_v conditional_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v to_o wit_n as_o neither_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v give_v but_o upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o his_o english_a book_n both_o against_o hoard_n and_o other_o arminian_o and_o also_o against_o mr._n cotton_n and_o as_o this_o distinction_n be_v approve_v by_o those_o great_a divine_n so_o be_v it_o by_o all_o other_o learned_a man_n that_o i_o know_v who_o right_o understand_v these_o matter_n see_v ainsworth_n censure_n upon_o the_o anabaptist_n dialogue_n etc._n etc._n p._n 10._o where_o he_o say_v god_n be_v will_v always_o lay_v no_o such_o necessity_n see_v he_o will_v some_o thing_n conditional_o which_o be_v not_o effect_v unless_o the_o condition_n be_v observe_v as_o he_o will_v a_o sinner_n life_n not_o death_n conditional_o if_o he_o return_v to_o god_n he_o will_v the_o destruction_n of_o niniveh_n but_o conditional_o except_o they_o repent_v other_o thing_n god_n will_v absolute_o and_o those_o must_v needs_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o none_o resist_v or_o hinder_v his_o absolute_a will_n isa_n 46.10_o 11._o job_n 23.13_o psal_n 33.10_o 11._o so_o much_o suffice_v for_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o grand_a objection_n object_n 5._o p._n 58._o five_o mr._n g._n object_n that_o if_o the_o conditional_a promise_n be_v to_o all_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o if_o they_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v save_v then_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n we_o must_v say_v that_o the_o conditional_a threaten_v be_v to_o all_o that_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o they_o shall_v be_v eternal_o damn_v i_o answer_v and_o what_o absurdity_n be_v in_o this_o that_o all_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n who_o do_v not_o yet_o believe_v be_v threaten_v with_o eternal_a damnation_n if_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o unbelief_n for_o understand_v the_o conditional_a threaten_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o conditional_a promise_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n that_o as_o the_o conditional_a promise_n be_v to_o all_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o conditional_a threaten_v be_v to_o all_o in_o general_n and_o to_o every_o one_o in_o particular_a john_n 3.36_o and_o 8.24_o mark_v 16.15_o 16._o but_o mr._n goodwin_n say_v no_o the_o conditional_a threaten_v be_v not_o to_o all_o nor_o yet_o to_o any_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o i_o pray_v why_o so_o to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o none_o be_v threaten_v with_o death_n if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v be_v because_o the_o threaten_v be_v not_o denounce_v against_o man_n for_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n but_o for_o not_o perfect_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o work_n as_o he_o have_v prove_v before_o whereunto_o i_o reply_v that_o i_o have_v also_o answer_v he_o before_o and_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_n and_o here_o i_o must_v advise_v he_o to_o take_v better_a heed_n what_o he_o write_v for_o the_o future_a and_o not_o to_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n in_o express_a term_n the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v john_n 3.18_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v mr._n g._n say_v no_o it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v because_o he_o have_v not_o perfect_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o work_v now_o choose_v you_o whether_o you_o will_v believe_v the_o scripture_n contradict_v he_o or_o believe_v he_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n obj._n 6._o six_o out_o of_o what_o he_o write_v in_o pag._n 57_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v form_v against_o god_n make_v conditional_a promise_n to_o the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n if_o god_n promise_v they_o pardon_n on_o condition_n that_o they_o believe_v by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n deprive_v as_o they_o be_v without_o his_o all-conquering_a grace_n he_o act_v in_o a_o way_n repugnant_a to_o his_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n for_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o believe_v by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n without_o his_o all-conquering_a grace_n and_o to_o promise_v they_o pardon_n upon_o such_o a_o condition_n as_o he_o know_v to_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o perform_v will_v be_v a_o illude_v and_o mock_v of_o they_o 57_o they_o mr._n g's_o discourse_n p._n 57_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v offer_v food_n to_o a_o wretch_n who_o have_v not_o a_o limb_n whole_a starve_v in_o a_o dungeon_n on_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v come_v up_o and_o receive_v it_o and_o yet_o shall_v refuse_v to_o put_v forth_o a_o finger_n to_o give_v he_o the_o least_o lift_n in_o such_o a_o case_n that_o merciless_a man_n will_v but_o mock_v and_o make_v a_o sport_n of_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o poor_a wretch_n ●ust_z so_o if_o god_n shall_v promise_v pardon_n to_o the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n on_o condition_n that_o they_o believe_v by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n which_o they_o can_v do_v and_o shall_v withal_o refuse_v to_o put_v forth_o his_o finger_n to_o help_v they_o he_o shall_v but_o mock_v they_o and_o make_v a_o sport_n of_o their_o misery_n which_o to_o do_v be_v repugnant_a to_o his_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o therefore_o god_n by_o the_o gospel_n make_v no_o conditional_a promise_n to_o the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n i_o answer_v this_o objection_n show_v that_o mr._n goodwin_n be_v better_a at_o declairn_a than_o at_o fair_a argue_v and_o close_a reason_n and_o seem_v to_o intimate_v he_o to_o be_v of_o the_o man_n mind_n who_o say_v flectere_fw-la si_fw-la nequeo_fw-la superos_fw-la acheronta_fw-la movebo_fw-la for_o this_o argument_n if_o it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o argument_n be_v fetch_v from_o hell_n and_o borrow_v from_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v from_o the_o arminian_o who_o if_o mr._n g._n have_v not_o wrong_v they_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n must_v needs_o be_v incarnate_a devil_n for_o he_o say_v their_o opinion_n tear_v the_o volume_n of_o god_n word_n to_o piece_n and_o un-god_n god_n himself_o they_o pull_v he_o out_o of_o his_o throne_n and_o strike_v the_o sceptre_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o snatch_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o head_n this_o be_v certain_o more_o than_o all_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n can_v do_v but_o if_o mr._n goodwin_n say_v true_a and_o do_v not_o slander_v the_o arminian_o they_o have_v do_v it_o they_o have_v un-godded_n god_n himself_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o go_v down_o to_o that_o arminian_n hell_n to_o borrow_v a_o argument_n from_o those_o worst_a of_o devil_n to_o defend_v and_o secure_v the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n from_o be_v impeach_v by_o the_o calvinian_a doctrine_n of_o conditional_a
promise_n in_o the_o gospel-covenant_n but_o now_o let_v i_o ask_v this_o r._n b._n a_o few_o question_n as_o 1._o be_v it_o not_o now_o every_o whit_n as_o impossible_a if_o not_o more_o impossible_a for_o the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o work_n most_o perfect_o as_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n sincere_o 2._o do_v not_o mr._n g._n himself_o hold_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o say_a impossibility_n god_n now_o require_v of_o they_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o work_n under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a death_n and_o misery_n 3._o do_v he_o not_o hold_v also_o that_o god_n by_o the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n do_v promise_v they_o life_n and_o happiness_n upon_o condition_n that_o they_o most_o perfect_o obey_v that_o law_n and_o keep_v that_o covenant_n of_o work_n this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v his_o judgement_n from_o what_o he_o write_v in_o chap._n 7._o pag._n 56._o compare_v with_o what_o he_o quote_v with_o approbation_n out_o of_o melancton_n in_o chap._n 6._o pag._n 29.30_o concern_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o law_n as_o vvn_n from_o the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n now_o if_o this_o be_v so_o that_o according_a to_o mr._n g._n godpromise_v to_o the_o non-elect_a by_o the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n mat._n 19.17_o rom._n 10.5_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v not_o indeed_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o life_n and_o happiness_n on_o condition_n that_o they_o most_o perfect_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v mr._n gi'_v s._n judgement_n i_o demand_v 4._o whether_o it_o be_v not_o as_o evident_o repugnant_a to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o as_o plain_o a_o mock_n of_o those_o wretched_a man_n to_o promise_v they_o eternal_a life_n and_o happiness_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n upon_o the_o impossible_a condition_n that_o they_o most_o perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o work_n as_o it_o be_v to_o promise_v they_o pardon_v and_o salvation_n by_o the_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n on_o the_o impossible_a condition_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n so_o that_o my_o r._n b._n his_o argument_n militate_v against_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o answer_v it_o as_o we_o be_v unless_o he_o deny_v the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o law_n as_o he_o do_v those_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o when_o once_o i_o know_v that_o he_o do_v deny_v both_o i_o shall_v cease_v from_o retort_v his_o own_o argument_n upon_o he_o and_o shall_v take_v another_o way_n of_o deal_n with_o he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o first_o answer_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o this_o arminian_n objection_n be_v sufficient_o answer_v in_o the_o apology_n out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n of_o dr._n owen_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o of_o dr._n twiss_n for_o there_o it_o be_v show_v 1._o that_o as_o for_o the_o non-elect_a to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n god_n do_v not_o require_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n without_o any_o help_n without_o his_o put_v forth_o so_o much_o as_o his_o finger_n to_o help_v they_o for_o together_o with_o the_o gospel-command_a to_o believe_v they_o receive_v more_o commongrace_n more_o light_a and_o power_n from_o the_o lord_n than_o they_o make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o and_o as_o dr._n owen_n say_v apol._n pag._n 23._o and_o pag._n 114.115_o where_o real_a conversion_n be_v not_o attain_v it_o be_v always_o from_o the_o interposition_n of_o a_o act_n of_o wilfulness_n and_o stubbornness_n in_o those_o enlighten_v and_o convict_v they_o do_v not_o sincere_o improve_v what_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o faint_v not_o mere_o for_o want_v of_o strength_n to_o precede_v but_o by_o a_o free_a act_n of_o their_o own_o will_n they_o refuse_v the_o grace_n which_o be_v further_o tender_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o gospel_n 2._o there_o it_o be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o dr._n twiss_n where_o he_o answer_v this_o same_o objection_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v borrow_v from_o the_o arminian_o that_o as_o for_o the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n their_o inability_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a physical_a impotency_n but_o it_o be_v a_o moral_a impotency_n jer._n 6.10_o which_o have_v its_o immediate_a foundation_n in_o and_o its_o next_o rise_n from_o their_o own_o will_n so_o that_o if_o they_o earnest_o will_v believe_v than_o they_o can_v believe_v but_o they_o can_v believe_v because_o they_o will_v not_o whereas_o the_o inability_n of_o the_o poor_a wretch_n of_o who_o mr._n g._n speak_v and_o to_o who_o he_o compare_v the_o unconvert_v be_v not_o at_o all_o a_o moral_a impotency_n but_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a physical_a natural_a impotency_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o man_n be_v own_o will_n that_o cause_v he_o to_o refuse_v wilful_o to_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o dungeon_n in_o which_o he_o be_v a_o starve_a but_o that_o which_o hinder_v he_o from_o come_v up_o be_v the_o natural_a weakness_n of_o his_o limb_n which_o be_v all_o suppose_a to_o be_v break_v so_o that_o the_o poor_a wound_a man_n can_v come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o dungeon_n to_o receive_v the_o food_n that_o be_v offer_v he_o suppose_v he_o be_v never_o so_o earnest_o willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o do_v it_o now_o dr._n twiss_n show_v that_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o impotency_n between_o impotency_n moral_a and_o impotency_n mere_o physical_a that_o impotency_n moral_n be_v high_o culpable_a and_o deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v because_o it_o be_v wilful_a and_o affect_v whereas_o impotency_n mere_o physical_a be_v not_o culpable_a at_o all_o but_o be_v whole_o excusable_a and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o shameful_a thing_n in_o the_o arminian_o to_o confound_v these_o two_o impotency_n to_o wit_n moral_a and_o natural_a impotency_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n see_v for_o this_o the_o apol._n 109.110_o where_o the_o express_a formal_a word_n of_o dr._n twiss_n be_v quote_v at_o large_a if_o then_o mr._n g._n have_v a_o mind_n to_o dispute_v against_o this_o distinction_n i_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v remember_v that_o he_o dispute_v not_o so_o much_o against_o i_o as_o against_o dr._n twiss_n and_o in_o the_o doctor_n judgement_n he_o do_v a_o thing_n which_o will_v have_v a_o shameful_a issue_n to_o confound_v impotency_n moral_a with_o impotency_n natural_a as_o he_o plain_o do_v 3._o i_o answer_v that_o what_o mr._n g._n suppose_v to_o strengthen_v his_o arminian_n objection_n be_v manifest_o false_a to_o wit_n that_o god_n always_o command_v the_o non-elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o believe_v by_o their_o mere_a natural_a power_n without_o any_o help_n since_o he_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o put_v forth_o his_o finger_n to_o help_v they_o i_o say_v this_o be_v false_a because_o 1._o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n which_o say_v that_o god_n spirit_n shall_v not_o always_o strive_v with_o such_o man_n gen._n 6.3_o according_a to_o our_o translation_n and_o that_o plain_o imply_v that_o for_o a_o time_n god_n spirit_n do_v strive_v with_o they_o and_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v not_o be_v say_v that_o god_n spirit_n strive_v with_o they_o to_o hinder_v they_o but_o rather_o to_o help_v they_o so_o in_o prov._n 1.23_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n say_v to_o such_o man_n turn_v you_o at_o my_o reproof_n behold_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n unto_o you_o and_o i_o will_v make_v know_v my_o word_n unto_o you_o here_o be_v not_o only_o a_o command_n to_o turn_v unto_o god_n but_o a_o promise_n also_o of_o some_o help_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o turn_v and_o then_o it_o follow_v immediate_o in_o the_o 24._o verse_n because_o i_o have_v call_v and_o you_o refuse_v i_o have_v stretch_v out_o my_o hand_n and_o no_o man_n regard_v etc._n etc._n in_o which_o word_n the_o lord_n himself_o say_v that_o he_o stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o such_o man_n but_o master_n goodwin_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o put_v out_o his_o finger_n to_o help_v they_o for_o he_o compare_v the_o lord_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o a_o merciless_a man_n who_o offer_v food_n to_o a_o poor_a wretch_n starve_v in_o a_o dungeon_n with_o all_o his_o limb_n break_v on_o condition_n that_o he_o ●ome_v up_o and_o receive_v it_o and_o yet_o he_o refuse_v to_o put_v forth_o a_o finger_n to_o give_v he_o the_o least_o list_n thus_o mr._n g._n represent_v god_n to_o the_o world_n upon_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o calvinist_n whereas_o god_n in_o
offend_v and_o incense_v against_o we_o that_o be_v the_o poor_a minister_n thereof_o as_o if_o it_o be_v our_o own_o gospel_n and_o the_o law_n of_o our_o own_o will_n which_o we_o propound_v unto_o you_o but_o know_v you_o this_o whosoever_o you_o be_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n jesus_n our_o saviour_n that_o in_o our_o person_n you_o be_v offend_v with_o all_o and_o against_o who_o you_o rebel_n in_o despise_v that_o gospel_n we_o teach_v unto_o you_o know_v you_o also_o that_o in_o your_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o that_o gospel_n which_o we_o preach_v unto_o you_o you_o be_v not_o subject_a and_o obedient_a unto_o we_o but_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n unto_o your_o own_o lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o require_v only_o this_o obedience_n at_o your_o hand_n tie_v the_o everlasting_a salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n thereunto_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n then_o see_v that_o christ_n will_v come_v in_o flame_a fire_n to_o be_v avenge_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v not_o obey_v his_o gospel_n let_v the_o terror_n of_o that_o fire_n make_v we_o run_v through_o water_n and_o fire_n rather_o than_o disobey_v the_o same_o thus_o bradshaw_n that_o learned_a and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n i_o wish_v that_o mr._n goodwin_n and_o i_o may_v both_o of_o we_o believe_v and_o live_v and_o preach_v according_a to_o the_o import_n of_o that_o text_n of_o paul_n and_o this_o exposition_n of_o it_o by_o mr._n bradshaw_n then_o shall_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v precept_n threaten_n and_o conditional_a promise_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v prove_v and_o defend_v against_o the_o objection_n of_o some_o brethren_n who_o though_o they_o deny_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n yet_o i_o hope_v do_v not_o live_v in_o disobedience_n to_o its_o precept_n for_o though_o the_o principle_n of_o many_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v better_o than_o their_o practice_n yet_o i_o must_v charitable_o believe_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o brethren_n be_v better_a than_o their_o principle_n remark_n and_o animadversion_n on_o his_o 8_o chapter_n the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o one_a he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n urge_v by_o i_o in_o the_o apology_n and_o in_o the_o 2d_o to_o answer_v the_o testimony_n of_o father_n and_o protestant_n writer_n and_o according_o i_o shall_v assign_v two_o section_n to_o my_o reply_n sect_n i._o in_o the_o content_n of_o his_o eight_o chapter_n he_o say_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n that_o in_o the_o apology_n i_o urge_v some_o text_n of_o scripture_n as_o express_o give_v the_o name_n of_o a_o new_a law_n to_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o i_o challenge_v and_o defy_v he_o to_o show_v any_o passage_n in_o the_o whole_a apol._n from_o beginning_n to_o end_n in_o which_o i_o say_v that_o any_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n do_v express_o give_v the_o name_n of_o new_a law_n to_o the_o gospel_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o do_v express_o give_v the_o name_n of_o new_a law_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o i_o never_o urge_v one_o text_n to_o that_o purpose_n i_o say_v indeed_o in_o pag._n 22._o lin_v 16.17_o that_o the_o scripture_n express_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n of_o grace_n a_o law_n but_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o call_v it_o a_o new-law_n what_o i_o say_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v a_o new-law_n be_v this_o that_o our_o brethren_n shall_v not_o be_v displease_v with_o we_o because_o we_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new-law_n since_o they_o know_v if_o it_o be_v not_o their_o own_o fault_n apol._n p._n 22._o l._n 41.42_o 43_o 44._o that_o we_o call_v it_o the_o new-law_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n than_o as_o we_o call_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o new-covenant_n from_o which_o word_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o i_o do_v not_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new-law_n because_o i_o think_v the_o scripture_n call_v it_o so_o express_o for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o because_o i_o take_v the_o gospel-law_n for_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v express_o call_v the_o new-covenant_n and_o i_o think_v that_o without_o offence_n we_o may_v call_v the_o gospel-law_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o new-law_n in_o the_o same_o and_o in_o no_o other_o sense_n than_o as_o we_o call_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o new-covenant_n for_o since_o in_o our_o judgement_n the_o gospel-law_n and_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v express_o call_v the_o new-covenant_n what_o just_a cause_n of_o offence_n can_v there_o be_v in_o call_v the_o gospel-law_n the_o new-law_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o we_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n the_o new-covenant_n and_o we_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o this_o by_o find_v that_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n hold_v the_o new-law_n and_o the_o new-covenant_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o they_o therefore_o call_v the_o gospel-law_n a_o new-law_n because_o they_o find_v that_o the_o scripture_n express_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o new-covenant_n no_o man_n can_v fair_o and_o honest_o deny_v this_o who_o read_v and_o understand_v the_o write_n of_o justin_n martyr_n ireneus_fw-la tertullian_n and_o cyprian_n etc._n etc._n who_o do_v all_o call_v the_o gospel_n in_o its_o last_o full_a and_o clear_a edition_n since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o new-covenant_n and_o the_o new-law_n as_o by_o two_o name_n of_o the_o same_o signification_n yea_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v a_o old_a tradition_n even_o among_o the_o jew_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o lord_n will_v make_v a_o new-covenant_n with_o his_o people_n that_o be_v a_o new-law_n i_o say_v it_o seem_v there_o be_v such_o a_o tradition_n among_o the_o jew_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v what_o paulus_n fagius_n quote_v out_o of_o their_o writer_n for_o after_o he_o have_v cite_v their_o exposition_n of_o canticle_n the_o 2d_o chap._n v._o 10.11_o 12._o refer_v it_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n he_o add_v their_o descant_n on_o the_o word_n of_o the_o 12_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v the_o time_n of_o the_o sing_n of_o bird_n be_v come_v but_o they_o render_v the_o time_n of_o prune_v be_v come_v the_o word_n be_v deuteronomium_fw-la be_v advenit_fw-la enim_fw-la tempus_fw-la ut_fw-la redimatur_fw-la israel_n advenit_fw-la tempus_fw-la ut_fw-la amputetur_fw-la praeputium_fw-la de_fw-la quo_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la deut._n 30._o chap._n etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d et_fw-la circumcidet_fw-la dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la tuus_fw-la cor_fw-la tuum_fw-la et_fw-la cor_fw-la seminis_fw-la ad_fw-la diligendum_fw-la dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la tuum_fw-la et_fw-la lex_fw-la convertetur_fw-la ad_fw-la novitatem_fw-la et_fw-la renovabitur_fw-la israel_n sicut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la hierem._n 31._o et_fw-fr scindam_fw-la cum_fw-la domo_fw-la israel_n et_fw-la cum_fw-la domo_fw-la juda_n pactum_fw-la novum_fw-la hactenus_fw-la traditio_fw-la paul_n fagius_n in_o annot_n in_o caput_fw-la 10._o v._n 16._o paraphrascos_n chald_v onkeli_n in_o deuteronomium_fw-la for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o israel_n shall_v be_v redeem_v the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o the_o foreskin_n shall_v be_v out_o off_o concern_v which_o it_o be_v write_v in_o deut._n 30._o and_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v circumcise_v thy_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o thy_o seed_n to_o love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o newness_n and_o israel_n shall_v be_v renew_v as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o jerem._n 31._o and_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o with_o the_o house_n of_o judah_n a_o new-covenant_n that_o be_v a_o now-law_n thus_o far_o the_o tradition_n and_o it_o have_v be_v well_o if_o they_o have_v never_o have_v a_o worse_a tradition_n my_o design_n in_o this_o be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o since_o 1._o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n as_o be_v now_o confess_v 2._o since_o the_o gospel-law_n be_v the_o gospel-covenant_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n 3._o since_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v express_o call_v the_o new-covenant_n in_o scripture_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o four_o place_n by_o good_a consequence_n that_o without_o any_o just_a cause_n of_o offence_n we_o may_v very_o well_o call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n the_o new-law_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o we_o find_v it_o call_v in_o scripture_n the_o new-covenant_n even_o although_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n express_o call_v the_o new-law_n as_o it_o
it_o be_v that_o justin_n take_v occasion_n to_o mention_v the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o foresay_a discourse_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o answer_v he_o thus_o begin_v there_o never_o be_v o_o trypho_n nor_o ever_o will_v be_v another_o god_n beside_o he_o who_o create_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o we_o have_v no_o other_o god_n than_o you_o none_o but_o that_o same_o god_n who_o bring_v your_o father_n out_o of_o egypt_n nor_o do_v we_o trust_v in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o but_o in_o he_o in_o who_o you_o trust_v also_o to_o wit_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob._n and_o we_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v not_o by_o moses_n nor_o by_o the_o law_n to_o wit_n of_o moses_n but_o i_o have_v read_v o_o trypho_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o latter_a or_o after-law_n and_o a_o testament_n or_o covenant_n etc._n etc._n as_o these_o word_n and_o what_o follow_v they_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o apol._n p._n 24._o this_o new-law_n or_o covenant_n justin_n say_v all_o man_n must_v keep_v that_o will_v be_v save_v then_o allude_v to_o isa_n 42.6_o he_o say_v christ_n be_v give_v to_o be_v this_o eternal_a and_o latter-law_n unto_o we_o and_o a_o sure_a covenant_n after_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o law_n nor_o precept_n nor_o commandment_n how_o that_o passage_n of_o justin_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v i_o have_v show_v before_o then_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o isaiah_n and_o jeremiah_n that_o christ_n be_v to_o come_v and_o that_o through_o he_o god_n will_v make_v this_o new_a and_o last_o law_n or_o covenant_n with_o his_o church_n consist_v jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o since_o god_n be_v to_o do_v thus_o he_o conclude_v from_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n from_o idol_n to_o faith_n in_o the_o crucify_a jesus_n and_o from_o their_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o perseverance_n in_o faith_n and_o holiness_n to_o the_o death_n that_o the_o messiah_n be_v already_o come_v and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o new-law_n and_o covenant_n which_o the_o christian_n live_v under_o and_o according_a to_o the_o term_n whereof_o they_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v through_o christ_n believe_v on_o for_o say_v justin_n we_o be_v the_o true_a spiritual_a israel_n the_o spiritual_a progeny_n of_o jacob_n and_o isaac_n and_o abraham_n who_o in_o his_o uncircumcision_n by_o faith_n obtain_v a_o good_a testimony_n from_o god_n and_o be_v bless_v and_o call_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n even_o we_o who_o be_v bring_v near_o unto_o god_n by_o this_o crucify_a christ_n this_o he_o confirm_v from_o isaiah_n 55._o v._o 3.4_o 5._o then_o tell_v they_o this_o very_a law_n you_o jew_n disgrace_n and_o vilify_v his_o new_a and_o holy_a covenant_n where_o he_o manifest_o distinguish_v the_o covenant_n from_o the_o lord_n himself_o neither_o do_v you_o to_o this_o day_n receive_v it_o nor_o repent_v of_o your_o evil_a deed_n the_o legislator_n be_v come_v and_o present_v and_o you_o see_v he_o not_o the_o poor_a receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o blind_a see_v but_o you_o do_v not_o understand_v then_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o need_v another_o spiritual_a circumcision_n and_o sabbath_n and_o unleavened_a bread_n and_o wash_n that_o god_n be_v not_o like_o they_o please_v with_o those_o external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n but_o that_o now_o by_o the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n he_o call_v they_o to_o true_a evangelical_n repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o alone_o can_v wash_v away_o sin_n and_o expiate_v the_o guilt_n of_o it_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o cite_v those_o scripture_n mention_v by_o mr._n g._n he_o stop_v not_o there_o but_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v the_o jew_n that_o their_o external_n rite_n wash_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o type_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o inward_a spiritual_a wash_v and_o purification_n of_o god_n people_n by_o the_o blood_n spirit_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o he_o exhort_v trypho_n and_o his_o company_n to_o faith_n and_o repentance_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o new-covenant_n and_o that_o he_o do_v in_o the_o word_n of_o isaiah_n chap._n 55._o from_o v._o 3._o to_o the_o end_n now_o this_o be_v not_o the_o old_a law_n and_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o the_o new_a law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o justin_n in_o the_o word_n of_o isaiah_n preach_v to_o these_o jew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pag._n 231._o this_o be_v that_o very_a thing_n which_o this_o new_a lawgiver_n judge_n fit_a and_o meet_v to_o require_v of_o you_o from_o the_o premise_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o justin_n do_v not_o think_v the_o new-law_n or_o covenant_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o to_o require_v nothing_o of_o we_o at_o all_o for_o there_o and_o through_o the_o whole_a dialogue_n he_o show_v that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o evangelical_n obedience_n be_v require_v by_o the_o gospel-law_n and_o covenant_n and_o say_v express_o that_o this_o covenant_n all_o man_n must_v keep_v that_o will_v obtain_v possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o answer_v the_o jew_n objection_n and_o show_v that_o christian_n have_v ground_n to_o hope_v for_o mercy_n and_o salvation_n though_o they_o keep_v not_o the_o old_a sinaitical_a covenant_n because_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n a_o new-law_n and_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o they_o keep_v and_o keep_v it_o they_o be_v sure_a to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n through_o the_o blood_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o surety_n of_o that_o new_a and_o better_a covenant_n that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o justin_n be_v evident_a by_o what_o i_o quote_v out_o of_o he_o before_o in_o my_o remark_n on_o mr._n gi'_v s._n seven_o chapter_n by_o what_o i_o have_v here_o relate_v concern_v the_o jew_n objection_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o it_o which_o be_v the_o true_a occasion_n of_o his_o mention_v the_o new_a law_n and_o covenant_n and_o by_o what_o he_o write_v in_o pag._n 243._o 263_o 323_o 327._o i_o may_v now_o pass_v from_o justin_n to_o a_o vindication_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o cyprian_a from_o the_o exception_n make_v against_o they_o by_o mr._n g._n if_o another_o reverend_a brother_n in_o his_o nibling_n at_o our_o apol._n have_v not_o pretend_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o book_n on_o rom._n 4._o that_o i_o impertinent_o quote_v justin_n martyr_n his_o word_n in_o pag._n 35._o be_v these_o i_o shall_v say_v mr._n c._n only_a instance_n his_o first_o citation_n out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n and_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o be_v judge_v by_o any_o of_o the_o subscriber_n that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v it_o if_o justin_n intend_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o recommend_v the_o christian_a constitution_n and_o prove_v it_o preferable_a to_o the_o moysaicall_a for_o he_o say_v this_o new_a law_n be_v posterior_n to_o moses_n his_o law_n but_o the_o apologist_n new_a law_n have_v be_v ever_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n thus_o mr._n c._n who_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v before_o i_o pass_v any_o further_o i_o answer_v then_o thus_o that_o justin_n intend_v the_o recommend_v of_o the_o christian_a constitution_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o prove_v it_o preferable_a to_o the_o moysaicall_a be_v never_o deny_v by_o i_o though_o i_o deny_v that_o he_o intend_v no_o more_o than_o the_o recommend_v of_o it_o in_o mr._n c._n his_o sense_n for_o i_o do_v and_o do_v most_o firm_o believe_v that_o that_o be_v part_n of_o his_o design_n and_o the_o other_o part_n of_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v against_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o new_a law_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v now_o to_o be_v keep_v as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o christian_a constitution_n and_o that_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o as_o such_o be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o in_o its_o moysaicall_a constitution_n or_o form_n of_o administration_n be_v not_o now_o necessary_a as_o trypho_n pretend_v but_o then_o good_a sir_n consider_v that_o in_o prosecution_n of_o that_o design_n he_o express_o call_v the_o christian_a constitution_n of_o it_o as_o such_o a_o new-law_n and_o covenant_n of_o the_o great_a or_o most_o excellent_a authority_n of_o all_o which_o all_o man_n now_o must_v keep_v whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o will_v obtain_v possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o god_n now_o i_o appeal_v to_o all_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n if_o withal_o they_o have_v but_o common_a honesty_n whether_o this_o citation_n be_v not_o very_o pertinent_a to_o my_o purpose_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o
believe_v that_o he_o be_v not_o much_o more_o mistake_v in_o number_v how_o often_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v throughout_o the_o whole_a book_n he_o that_o mistake_v in_o reckon_v eight_o sure_o be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v in_o reckon_v 97_o nay_o since_o he_o put_v the_o 8_o into_o the_o 97_o to_o make_v up_o his_o full_a number_n he_o must_v be_v mistake_v in_o that_o number_n 97_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o number_n 8._o and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v he_o may_v be_v much_o more_o mistake_v in_o the_o make_n up_o of_o his_o whole_a number_n but_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o insist_v upon_o this_o any_o long_o and_o then_o for_o the_o other_o how_o seldom_o justin_n call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n whether_o more_o than_o four_o time_n i_o will_v not_o insist_v upon_o that_o neither_o though_o therein_o he_o be_v mistake_v also_o but_o i_o answer_v 2._o that_o suppose_v it_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v as_o it_o be_v not_o true_a nay_o suppose_v justin_n have_v call_v the_o gospel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o testament_n not_o only_o ninety_o seven_o time_n but_o ninety_o seven_o hundred_o time_n and_o have_v but_o twice_o call_v it_o a_o new-law_n yet_o that_o will_v make_v nothing_o against_o we_o but_o will_v make_v for_o we_o and_o will_v full_o answer_v the_o main_a end_n for_o which_o we_o cite_v the_o testimony_n of_o justin_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v against_o our_o accuser_n that_o new-law_n be_v not_o a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a ill_a meaning_n for_o here_o we_o see_v that_o above_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o justin_n use_v the_o word_n and_o call_v it_o a_o new-law_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o our_o other_o witness_n add_v that_o it_o be_v of_o grace_n a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v 3._o ans_fw-fr what_o do_v mr._n c._n mean_v by_o say_v that_o justin_n call_v it_o so_o often_o a_o testament_n and_o but_o seldom_o a_o law_n without_o the_o explicatory_a word_n testament_n add_v will_v he_o make_v simple_a people_n believe_v that_o justin_n martyr_n write_v in_o english_a and_o use_v the_o english_a word_n testament_n so_o often_o i_o hope_v he_o do_v not_o design_n any_o such_o thing_n why_o what_o then_o be_v the_o mystery_n why_o thus_o it_o be_v justin_n write_v in_o greek_a and_o the_o word_n he_o so_o often_o use_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o it_o seem_v mr._n c._n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o noun_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d always_o signify_v a_o testament_n a_o absolute_a testament_n or_o promise_v without_o any_o condition_n but_o that_o it_o never_o signify_v a_o covenant_n a_o conditional_a covenant_n or_o promise_v of_o a_o benefit_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v perform_v the_o condition_n prescribe_v in_o the_o covenant_n but_o be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o who_o it_o may_v concern_v that_o if_o this_o be_v his_o design_n it_o be_v no_o good_a one_o for_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o always_o signify_v a_o testament_n in_o his_o sense_n but_o it_o real_o signify_v both_o a_o testament_n and_o a_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o to_o obviate_v such_o cavil_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 24._o l._n 37_o 38._o in_o translate_n the_o first_o testimony_n out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n i_o do_v twice_o render_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d testament_n or_o covenant_n whereby_o the_o world_n may_v see_v i_o use_v no_o little_a trick_n of_o art_n but_o downright_a honesty_n in_o cite_v and_o translate_n justin_n whereas_o it_o seem_v my_o reverend_a brother_n will_v have_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v translate_v testament_n only_o and_o not_o covenant_n at_o all_o and_o this_o make_v some_o suspect_n that_o there_o may_v be_v person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o care_v as_o little_a for_o the_o word_n covenant_n as_o for_o the_o word_n law_n and_o it_o may_v be_v will_v be_v glad_a if_o people_n be_v bring_v to_o believe_v that_o new-covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o ill-meaning_n as_o well_o as_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n but_o i_o demand_v of_o mr._n c._n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o covenant_n a_o conditional_a covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o israel_n in_o the_o day_n when_o he_o take_v they_o by_o the_o hand_n to_o lead_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n if_o he_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v as_o i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v and_o if_o any_o shall_v deny_v it_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n and_o not_o a_o absolute_a testament_n only_o for_o in_o heb._n 8._o v._o 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o word_n that_o be_v use_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v that_o moysaicall_a covenant_n and_o then_o in_o v._o 10._o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o no_o other_o be_v use_v also_o to_o signify_v the_o new_a and_o better_a covenant_n in_o its_o last_o edition_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o the_o gospel-church_n through_o christ_n incarnate_a in_o like_a manner_n the_o same_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d berith_n be_v use_v in_o jeremich_n 31._o v._o 32._o to_o signify_v the_o moysaicall_a sinai-covenant_n and_o in_o v._o 31_o 33._o it_o be_v use_v to_o signify_v the_o say_a new_a and_o better_a covenant_n in_o its_o last_o and_o most_o excellent_a form_n of_o administration_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o moysaicall_a sinai-covenant_n be_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n otherwise_o how_o do_v the_o people_n break_v it_o jer._n 31._o v._n 32._o therefore_o both_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n a_o covenant_n which_o prescribe_v a_o duty_n and_o condition_n and_o promise_v a_o benefit_n to_o they_o who_o perform_v the_o prescribe_a condition_n and_o consequent_o from_o the_o bare_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o can_v no_o more_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o gospel-covenant_n be_v a_o absolute_a testament_n without_o any_o condition_n than_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v from_o the_o bare_a signification_n of_o the_o same_o word_n that_o the_o moysaicall_a sinai-covenant_n be_v a_o absolute_a testament_n without_o any_o condition_n for_o the_o same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v both_o the_o covenant_n now_o than_o if_o the_o say_v moysaicall_a covenant_n be_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n to_o the_o israelite_n though_o it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v both_o a_o covenant_n and_o a_o testament_n why_o may_v not_o the_o evangelical_n new_a covenant_n be_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o christian_n though_o it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v both_o a_o covenant_n and_o a_o testament_n and_o since_o such_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o willing_a to_o be_v inform_v by_o my_o reverend_a brother_n how_o justin_n martyr_n can_v reasonable_o be_v think_v to_o have_v add_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o testament_n as_o explicatory_a of_o the_o word_n law_n to_o trypho_n the_o jew_n and_o to_o teach_v he_o that_o by_o law_n he_o mean_v nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a testament_n whenas_o by_o what_o i_o have_v say_v it_o plain_o appear_v that_o justin_n and_o trypho_n both_o believe_v that_o both_o the_o word_n hebrew_a and_o greek_a signify_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o a_o federal-law_n and_o that_o justin_n believe_v this_o be_v evident_a both_o by_o his_o quote_v jer._n 31._o v._n 31_o 32._o in_o that_o very_a page_n against_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o by_o his_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o as_o he_o be_v quote_v in_o the_o apology_n p._n 24._o he_o say_v that_o all_o man_n whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o will_v obtain_v possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o god_n must_v now_o keep_v this_o covenant_n or_o testament_n which_o be_v of_o the_o great_a authority_n of_o all_o if_o all_o man_n must_v keep_v it_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o not_o obtain_v possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o most_o excellent_a and_o of_o the_o great_a authority_n of_o all_o than_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n which_o prescribe_v some_o duty_n to_o christian_n so_o that_o their_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_a benefit_n be_v suspend_v till_o they_o through_o grace_n perform_v the_o
say_a duty_n from_o all_o which_o i_o may_v safe_o conclude_v that_o justin_n believe_v the_o christian_a constitution_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v not_o only_o a_o new_a testament_n but_o a_o new-covenant_n also_o and_o a_o new-law_n of_o grace_n and_o this_o he_o affirm_v that_o all_o man_n may_v know_v it_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o powerful_a grace_n of_o god_n which_o follow_v or_o accompany_v it_o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o may_v evident_o appear_v not_o only_o to_o the_o subscriber_n but_o to_o all_o other_o intelligent_a reader_n that_o justin_n martyr_n be_v very_o pertinent_o cite_v in_o the_o apology_n and_o that_o both_o the_o r._n brethren_n exception_n against_o his_o testimony_n be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o and_o have_v but_o give_v i_o a_o occasion_n to_o set_v the_o truth_n in_o a_o clear_a light_n as_o for_o mr._n c._n his_o wish_v that_o i_o have_v not_o attempt_v to_o prove_v the_o new-law_n out_o of_o the_o father_n since_o daille_n who_o be_v better_o acquaint_v with_o they_o say_v it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o make_v they_o judge_n in_o many_o of_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n and_o yet_o the_o late_a question_n concern_v the_o new-law_n be_v a_o more_o nice_a point_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o free_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v nothing_o if_o compare_v with_o the_o great_a daille_n in_o that_o or_o any_o other_o part_n of_o learning_n yet_o i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o learn_v of_o daille_n and_o he_o teach_v i_o that_o though_o we_o be_v not_o to_o make_v they_o judge_n in_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n yet_o we_o may_v make_v very_o good_a use_n of_o they_o as_o he_o instance_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o father_n english_a translation_n pag._n 183._o 184_o 185_o 186_o 187._o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o pag._n 187._o he_o say_v there_o sometime_o arise_v such_o troublesome_a spirit_n as_o will_v needs_o broach_v doctrine_n devise_v of_o their_o own_o head_n which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o ground_a upon_o any_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o say_v therefore_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_n may_v very_o proper_o and_o seasonable_o be_v make_v use_n of_o against_o the_o impudence_n of_o these_o man_n by_o show_v that_o the_o father_n be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o any_o such_o fancy_n as_o these_o man_n propose_v to_o the_o world_n and_o if_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v we_o ought_v then_o certain_o to_o conclude_v that_o no_o such_o doctrine_n be_v ever_o preach_v to_o mankind_n either_o by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n or_o by_o his_o apostle_n for_o what_o probability_n be_v there_o that_o those_o holy_a doctor_n of_o former_a age_n from_o who_o hand_n christianity_n have_v be_v derive_v down_o to_o we_o shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v reveal_v and_o recommend_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o important_a and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o daille_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o my_o r._n brother_n quite_o mistake_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o apology_n do_v not_o allege_v those_o father_n as_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o right_n but_o as_o witness_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n so_o it_o be_v express_o declare_v pag._n 24._o of_o the_o apology_n in_o those_o follow_a word_n to_o prove_v this_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o fact_n there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o to_o show_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o credible_a witness_n who_o live_v many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o the_o word_n to_o wit_n new-law_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o new_a but_o be_v use_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o meaning_n long_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n for_o the_o proof_n whereof_o we_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o those_o few_o ancient_a father_n and_o we_o be_v still_o persuade_v upon_o good_a ground_n that_o they_o speak_v home_o to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n and_o do_v prove_v the_o accuser_n to_o have_v assert_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o say_v confident_o in_o print_n that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n 3._o ans_fw-fr we_o think_v it_o be_v very_o seasonable_a and_o high_o incumbent_a upon_o we_o to_o bring_v forth_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n and_o other_o orthodox_n divine_v who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n long_o before_o we_o have_v a_o be_v when_o we_o be_v public_o accuse_v in_o print_n either_o through_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n both_o of_o use_v new_a word_n and_o of_o preach_v a_o new_a and_o heretical_a gospel_n and_o thereby_o if_o possible_a to_o convince_v our_o brethren_n that_o they_o be_v quite_o out_o and_o that_o we_o be_v no_o such_o person_n as_o they_o proclaim_v we_o to_o be_v that_o we_o use_v no_o other_o word_n nor_o preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n than_o what_o have_v be_v use_v and_o preach_v by_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a orthodox_n divine_v who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n many_o year_n before_o we_o without_o be_v suspect_v or_o accuse_v of_o preach_v a_o new-gospel_n and_o so_o much_o for_o vindication_n of_o the_o pertinency_n of_o the_o citation_n out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n in_o the_o next_o place_n mr._n goodwin_n undertake_v to_o show_v that_o my_o citation_n out_o of_o cyprian_a be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o 1._o though_o say_v he_o cyprian_n in_o his_o 11_o epistle_n speak_v frequent_o of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o he_o thereby_o mean_v only_o that_o due_a discipline_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a that_o cyprian_a there_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n mean_v christ_n law_n of_o discipline_n institute_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o than_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o the_o say_a law_n of_o discipline_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel-law_n for_o it_o be_v a_o adjunct_n or_o appendix_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n in_o its_o christian_a constitution_n or_o form_n of_o administration_n hence_o dr._n ames_n say_v that_o holy_a discipline_n institute_v by_o christ_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n his_o word_n be_v 12._o be_v sicut_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la pars_fw-la regni_fw-la christi_fw-la sic_fw-la etiam_fw-la eadem_fw-la ratione_fw-la est_fw-la pars_fw-la evangelii_n neque_fw-la igitur_fw-la totum_fw-la christi_fw-la regnum_fw-la neque_fw-la totum_fw-la evangelium_fw-la recipiunt_fw-la qui_fw-la rejiciunt_fw-la disciplinam_fw-la ames_n medul_a theolog._n lib._n 1._o chap._n 37._o thes_n 12._o but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n so_o also_o in_o the_o same_o respect_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o they_o who_o reject_v discipline_n do_v neither_o receive_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o whole_a gospel_n thus_o dr._n ames_n and_o the_o late_a reverend_a mr._n gale_n who_o be_v mr._n goodwin_n master_n say_v in_o his_o idea_n theologiae_n chap._n 8._o sect._n 3._o pag._n 175._o that_o by_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v mean_v the_o gospel-law_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n etc._n etc._n 2._o his_o exception_n against_o my_o other_o citation_n out_o of_o cyprian_n first_o book_n to_o quirinus_n where_o in_o his_o 10_o and_o 13_o chapter_n he_o express_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new-law_n and_o a_o new-yoke_n be_v that_o he_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o the_o new-law_n than_o what_o justin_n martyr_n do_v that_o be_v a_o new-doctrine_n and_o institution_n of_o grace_n ans_fw-fr 1._o here_o mr._n g._n confess_v that_o by_o new-law_n cyprian_n mean_v as_o much_o as_o justin_n martyr_n and_o no_o more_o but_o i_o have_v clear_o prove_v from_o justin_n martyr_n own_o word_n that_o by_o new-law_n he_o mean_v the_o new-covenant-law_n which_o have_v precept_n as_o well_o as_o promise_n and_o by_o its_o precept_n oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n therefore_o cyprian_n by_o new-law_n mean_v the_o new-covenant-law_n which_o have_v precept_n as_o well_o as_o promise_n and_o by_o its_o precept_n oblige_v we_o to_o duty_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noon_n from_o those_o three_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n whereby_o cyprian_n prove_v that_o a_o new-law_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o be_v give_v for_o two_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n isa_n 2.3_o and_o mic._n 4.2_o express_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n as_o mr._n goodwin_n himself_o confess_v and_o the_o 3d_o text_n to_o wit_n mat._n 17.5_o contain_v in_o it_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a precept_n of_o the_o evangelical_n new-law_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o word_n be_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o
well_o please_v hear_v you_o he_o and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o precept_n oblige_v to_o duty_n there_o never_o be_v a_o precept_n either_o in_o law_n or_o gospel_n with_o what_o conscience_n then_o mr._n g._n who_o know_v this_o can_v endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o cyprian_a by_o new-law_n mean_v nothing_o but_o a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n that_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o man_n at_o all_o i_o know_v not_o let_v he_o look_v to_o that_o but_o this_o i_o know_v that_o if_o i_o myself_o shall_v put_v such_o a_o sense_n upon_o the_o foresay_a word_n of_o cyprian_a i_o shall_v by_o so_o do_v not_o only_o put_v away_o a_o good_a conscience_n but_o i_o shall_v also_o put_v off_o all_o sense_n of_o shame_n all_o the_o excuse_n that_o i_o can_v make_v for_o my_o reverend_a brother_n be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v he_o be_v in_o too_o much_o haste_n and_o do_v not_o take_v time_n to_o consider_v and_o weigh_v cyprian_n proof_n particular_o his_o proof_n from_o mat._n 17.5_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n which_o have_v not_o only_o promise_v but_o precept_n 3._o i_o answer_v that_o cyprian_a say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new-yoke_n and_o prove_v it_o by_o psal_n 2._o v._n 1.2_o 3._o and_o mat._n 11.28_o 29_o 30._o but_o christ_n yoke_n signify_v not_o only_o the_o promise_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o also_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v obey_v as_o be_v show_v before_o and_o therefore_o cyprian_n hold_v the_o gospel-law_n and_o covenant_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v both_o promise_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o also_o precept_n to_o be_v obey_v but_o mr._n g._n object_n that_o by_o cyprian_n word_n as_o i_o myself_o have_v quote_v they_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n which_o require_v any_o duty_n at_o all_o for_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v another_o administration_n and_o that_o by_o it_o the_o old_a yoke_n shall_v be_v make_v null_n and_o void_a ans_fw-fr a_o wonderful_a profound_a argument_n this_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o in_o cyprian_n judgement_n the_o gospel_n be_v not_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o have_v any_o precept_n because_o it_o be_v a_o administration_n or_o a_o disposition_n as_o the_o word_n in_o cyprian_a be_v lib._n 1._o ad_fw-la quirinum_fw-la cap._n 11._o and_o as_o it_o be_v cite_v apol._n pag._n 25._o but_o i_o pray_v sir_n why_o may_v there_o not_o be_v a_o administration_n or_o disposition_n of_o a_o precept_n as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o promise_n and_o why_o may_v there_o not_o be_v a_o administration_n or_o disposition_n both_o of_o precept_n and_o promise_n be_v there_o not_o plain_o both_o precept_n and_o promise_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v write_v act_n 7.53_o that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n receive_v the_o law_n by_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n but_o do_v not_o keep_v it_o but_o say_v mr._n g._n according_a to_o cyprian_a by_o the_o new-law_n of_o grace_n the_o old_a intolerable_a yoke_n of_o ceremonial_a legal_a observance_n be_v remove_v ergo_fw-la it_o have_v no_o precent_fw-la oblige_v to_o duty_n wonderful_a acuteness_n but_o however_o i_o will_v venture_v to_o deny_v the_o consequence_n and_o put_v mr._n g._n to_o prove_v it_o for_o i_o want_v faith_n to_o believe_v whatever_o he_o say_v mere_o because_o he_o say_v it_o and_o here_o i_o can_v believe_v he_o because_o with_o bless_a cyprian_a i_o believe_v god_n the_o father_n himself_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v you_o he_o so_o much_o for_o vindication_n of_o the_o citation_n out_o of_o cyprian_a in_o the_o 3d_o place_n he_o come_v to_o holy_a augustin_n disc_n p._n 65._o and_o say_v that_o i_o force_v he_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n for_o the_o gospel-covenant's_a be_v a_o new-law_n ans_fw-fr dear_a sir_n by_o your_o own_o imprudent_a meddle_v with_o thing_n that_o you_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v thorough_o study_v nor_o to_o understand_v you_o force_v i_o contrary_a to_o my_o inclination_n often_o to_o contradict_v you_o and_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a which_o you_o say_v and_o in_o this_o place_n particular_o i_o be_o force_v by_o you_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o it_o be_v most_o untrue_a that_o i_o force_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a augustin_n for_o i_o cite_v he_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n new-law_n be_v not_o new_a word_n but_o of_o ancient_a usage_n in_o the_o christian-church_n above_o 12_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o the_o testimony_n which_o i_o quote_v out_o of_o his_o book_n of_o grace_n and_o free_a will_n chap._n 18._o do_v as_o clear_o prove_v this_o as_o ever_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v or_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o humane_a testimony_n for_o he_o express_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new-law_n and_o he_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o new-law_n of_o grace_n and_o moreover_o he_o testify_v more_o than_o i_o cite_v he_o for_o i_o cite_v he_o only_o to_o testify_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v in_o old_a time_n call_v a_o new-law_n and_o he_o over_o and_o above_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v a_o new-law_n by_o which_o precept_n be_v give_v unto_o men._n this_o his_o word_n testify_v without_o the_o least_o force_n or_o violence_n offer_v to_o they_o but_o it_o be_v mr._n g._n who_o will_v force_v augustin_n word_n to_o make_v they_o say_v what_o he_o never_o mean_v yea_o to_o make_v he_o deny_v what_o he_o express_o affirm_v first_o he_o force_v augustins_n word_n to_o make_v they_o say_v what_o he_o never_o mean_v for_o whereas_o augustin_n say_v that_o precept_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n by_o the_o new-law_n he_o will_v force_v he_o to_o say_v only_o that_o precept_n be_v give_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n disc_n p._n 66._o l._n 1._o 2_o 3._o that_o this_o be_v a_o force_n put_v on_o his_o word_n seem_v very_o evident_a by_o this_o that_o augustin_n by_o the_o new-law_n do_v not_o mean_v the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o which_o one_o may_v find_v both_o the_o old_a and_o new-law_n but_o he_o certain_o mean_v the_o gospel_n itself_o or_o the_o new-covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o its_o christian_a constitution_n or_o form_n of_o administration_n just_a as_o by_o the_o old-law_n he_o do_v not_o mean_v only_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o which_o according_a to_o he_o the_o old-law_n be_v open_o reveal_v and_o the_o new-law_n or_o gospel_n lie_v hide_v and_o veil_v but_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o old-law_n the_o old-covenant_n or_o the_o covenant_n in_o its_o old_a constitution_n and_o legal_a form_n of_o administration_n 2._o he_o force_v augustine_n word_n to_o make_v he_o deny_v what_o he_o express_o affirm_v for_o holy_a augustin_n express_o affirm_v that_o even_o the_o old-law_n have_v promise_n his_o word_n quote_v by_o i_o apol._n pag._n 25._o be_v that_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v come_v in_o the_o new-law_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o old-law_n but_o mr._n goodwin_n in_o his_o discourse_n p._n 65._o l._n 31._o 32_o 33._o force_v he_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o old-law_n have_v any_o promise_n for_o say_v he_o that_o great_a light_n of_o his_o age_n make_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o new_a and_o old-law_n to_o be_v that_o the_o old-law_n consist_v whole_o in_o precept_n and_o command_n etc._n etc._n now_o he_o that_o hold_v that_o the_o old-law_n consist_v whole_o in_o precept_n and_o command_n do_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la hold_v that_o the_o old-law_n have_v no_o promise_n by_o this_o i_o know_v assure_o that_o mr._n g._n do_v not_o understand_v the_o principle_n of_o augustin_n and_o write_v of_o he_o know_v not_o well_o what_o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o paragraph_n of_o his_o have_v rescue_v rom._n 3.27_o from_o it_o be_v pervert_v meaning_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o than_o i_o have_v say_v before_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o that_o text._n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o intelligent_a reader_n to_o judge_n between_o he_o and_o i_o and_o to_o determine_v according_a to_o evidence_n which_o of_o we_o have_v pervert_v that_o text._n he_o that_o dare_v pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n i_o wonder_v not_o though_o he_o endeavour_v to_o pervert_v though_o shameful_o enough_o every_o humane_a word_n and_o testimony_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o he_o 4thly_a mr._n g._n except_v against_o the_o testomony_n of_o salvian_n as_o not_o make_v for_o i_o because_o say_v he_o it_o prove_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o christian-law_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n be_v dishonour_v by_o some_o man_n abuse_n it_o to_o licentiousness_n i_o answer_v that_o salvian_n testimony_n prove_v all_o that_o it_o be_v bring_v for_o and_o that_o be_v
promise_v unto_o his_o elect_n and_o perfect_v in_o they_o the_o prescribe_a condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n these_o be_v gomarus_n his_o own_o word_n true_o translate_v which_o together_o with_o his_o 30_o position_n that_o next_o follow_v in_o order_n do_v sufficient_o refute_v mr_n gi'_v his_o gloss_n and_o may_v make_v he_o blush_v for_o so_o gross_o abuse_v that_o great_a man_n and_o most_o zealous_a anti-arminian_n four_o mr._n g._n have_v pass_v over_o the_o testimony_n of_o dr._n andrews_n the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o winchester_n comes_z in_o the_o last_o place_n to_o dr._n twiss_n and_o pretend_v by_o a_o short_a answer_n to_o take_v off_o his_o testimony_n and_o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o his_o short_a answer_n be_v that_o all_o which_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o the_o word_n of_o dr_n twiss_n be_v only_o this_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o set_v and_o state_v order_n in_o our_o salvation_n according_a to_o which_o he_o proceed_v i_o reply_v that_o this_o answer_n be_v short_a indeed_o and_o that_o be_v no_o fault_n at_o all_o but_o the_o fault_n of_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v most_o false_a as_o do_v most_o evident_o appear_v by_o dr._n twiss_n his_o own_o express_a and_o formal_a word_n quote_v at_o large_a in_o the_o apology_n i_o appeal_v to_o any_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n that_o can_v read_v and_o understand_v english_a if_o withal_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o common_a honesty_n and_o ingenuity_n whether_o 1._o dr._n twiss_n do_v not_o say_v that_o in_o the_o very_a gospel_n there_o be_v a_o positive_a law_n according_a to_o which_o god_n proceed_v in_o his_o deal_n with_o men._n 2._o that_o the_o say_v positive_a law_n be_v not_o only_o a_o law_n to_o god_n himself_o but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o positive_a law_n to_o we_o appoint_v unto_o we_o a_o set_n and_o state_v order_n of_o walk_v and_o prescribe_v a_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o through_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v salvation_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n only_o 3._o that_o the_o say_a order_n be_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n a_o conditional_a order_n with_o respect_n to_o we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o to_o observe_v the_o conditional_a order_n and_o to_o perform_v the_o condition_n in_o order_n to_o obtain_v the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n promise_v conditional_o in_o the_o gospel_n these_o three_o thing_n be_v so_o evident_a by_o the_o word_n of_o dr_n twiss_n that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o use_v further_o reason_v to_o make_v they_o more_o evident_a and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v forbear_v do_v it_o at_o present_a and_o only_o refer_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o understanding_n conscientious_a reader_n who_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o peruse_v my_o citation_n out_o of_o twiss_n thus_o i_o have_v clear_o vindicate_v all_o the_o citation_n that_o mr._n goodwin_n have_v except_v against_o and_o endeavour_v to_o elude_v and_o have_v show_v that_o they_o stand_v in_o full_a force_n and_o do_v very_o pertinent_o prove_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o proof_n whereof_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o the_o apology_n and_o that_o his_o exception_n be_v so_o poor_a and_o mean_a yea_o false_a and_o foul_a that_o he_o have_v do_v more_o prudent_o and_o have_v better_a consult_v his_o own_o credit_n and_o reputation_n as_o a_o ingenuous_a man_n and_o a_o scholar_n if_o he_o have_v do_v by_o all_o my_o witness_n as_o he_o do_v by_o dr._n andrews_n pass_v they_o all_o over_o and_o say_v nothing_o to_o they_o at_o all_o but_o before_o he_o make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o eight_o chapter_n he_o undertake_v in_o p._n 68_o to_o instruct_v minister_n how_o to_o deal_v with_o a_o poor_a die_a sinner_n and_o 1._o when_o a_o minister_n come_v to_o visit_v a_o sinner_n on_o his_o deathbed_n that_o have_v live_v in_o lewdness_n to_o that_o time_n of_o his_o sickness_n mr._n g._n will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o advise_v and_o exhort_v and_o in_o the_o lord_n name_n to_o command_v and_o beseech_v such_o a_o sinner_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o his_o obtain_n salvation_n through_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o father_n the_o meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n no_o though_o the_o minister_n know_v that_o the_o man_n have_v live_v to_o that_o day_n in_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n yet_o he_o must_v have_v a_o care_n that_o he_o do_v not_o exhort_v he_o to_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o repentance_n towards_o god_n he_o must_v not_o tell_v he_o that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v both_o duty_n indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o require_v of_o he_o by_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o therefore_o that_o if_o now_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n and_o if_o now_o he_o do_v not_o repent_v unfeigned_o of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o grace_n to_o enable_v he_o so_o to_o do_v he_o will_v be_v undo_v for_o ever_o but_o that_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n if_o he_o now_o cry_v to_o god_n mighty_o for_o grace_n to_o help_v he_o in_o time_n of_o need_n and_o through_o grace_n now_o at_o last_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n in_o heart_n and_o affection_n his_o many_o and_o great_a sin_n shall_v be_v pardon_v and_o his_o soul_n shall_v be_v save_v through_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n this_o must_v not_o the_o minister_n do_v because_o this_o will_v fright_v the_o wicked_a man_n and_o make_v he_o think_v that_o the_o minister_n be_v send_v he_o to_o hell_n well_o but_o what_o must_v the_o minister_n do_v then_o why_o that_o mr._n g._n tell_v we_o in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o his_o advice_n you_o may_v take_v thus_o poor_a sinner_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n god_n require_v neither_o faith_n nor_o repentance_n of_o thou_o he_o require_v no_o duty_n of_o thou_o at_o all_o by_o the_o gospel_n for_o that_o be_v all_o promise_n absolute_a promise_n but_o if_o god_n have_v decree_v to_o save_v thou_o he_o have_v blessing_n in_o store_n for_o thou_o and_o all_o blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v inseparable_o link_v together_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v one_o and_o all_o of_o they_o never_o trouble_v thy_o head_n then_o about_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o repent_v of_o thy_o sin_n for_o these_o be_v duty_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v not_o of_o thou_o but_o look_v thou_o on_o faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o blessing_n give_v not_o as_o duty_n require_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o lay_v thy_o hand_n on_o thy_o heart_n if_o thou_o find_v the_o blessing_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n there_o than_o all_o be_v well_o and_o thou_o may_v be_v assure_v of_o thy_o interest_n in_o all_o other_o blessing_n this_o it_o seem_v be_v his_o way_n of_o visit_v the_o sick_a and_o thus_o he_o will_v instruct_v other_o minister_n to_o visit_v they_o and_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v himself_o he_o have_v by_o this_o sufficient_o answer_v that_o part_n of_o our_o apology_n in_o page_n 32_o 33._o which_o relate_v to_o this_o matter_n but_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n i_o be_o content_a without_o add_v one_o word_n more_o of_o reply_n to_o refer_v it_o unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o intelligent_a and_o godly_a reader_n remark_n on_o his_o 9th_o chapter_n mr._n goodwin_n design_n in_o this_o his_o last_o chapter_n be_v to_o make_v simple_a unlearned_a people_n believe_v that_o our_o opinion_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a covenant_n or_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n do_v too_o much_o agree_v with_o the_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n opinion_n concern_v the_o new_a law_n and_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v very_o dangerous_a to_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o that_o opinion_n first_o because_o as_o he_o say_v the_o papist_n do_v in_o that_o opinion_n lay_v the_o sure_a foundation_n for_o that_o dear_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o merit_n of_o work_n second_o because_o the_o arminian_o and_o socinian_o do_v zealous_o espouse_v it_o as_o a_o most_o effectual_a engine_n to_o overthrow_v justification_n by_o the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n whether_o this_o be_v altogether_o true_a or_o not_o be_v not_o my_o present_a business_n to_o inquire_v if_o they_o real_o do_v what_o mr._n g._n charge_v they_o with_o they_o certain_o do_v a_o very_a ill_a thing_n and_o we_o be_v for_n far_o from_o agree_v with_o they_o therein_o that_o we_o utter_o detest_v and_o abhor_v it_o and_o
promise_v aught_o to_o perform_v his_o promise_n in_o point_n of_o faithfulness_n which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o universal_a justice_n but_o he_o be_v not_o always_o bind_v so_o to_o do_v in_o regard_n of_o particular_a justice_n nor_o be_v this_o the_o necessary_a effect_n of_o a_o promise_n that_o he_o who_o have_v perform_v the_o condition_n annex_v to_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v right_a to_o demand_v the_o thing_n promise_v as_o a_o reward_n due_a to_o he_o on_o the_o account_n of_o justice_n for_o what_o if_o i_o shall_v promise_v a_o poor_a man_n that_o i_o will_v give_v he_o a_o alm_n if_o he_o will_v come_v and_o call_v on_o i_o at_o my_o house_n sure_o that_o promise_n will_v not_o make_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o alm_n nor_o will_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o promise_n become_v a_o act_n of_o particular_a justice_n or_o a_o retribution_n of_o a_o reward_n as_o of_o due_a debt_n thus_o essenius_n answer_v that_o argument_n of_o bellarmin_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n and_o mr._n g_n argument_n be_v in_o effect_n the_o very_a same_o there_o need●_n no_o other_o answer_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o and_o before_o he_o have_v so_o public_o make_v use_n of_o this_o poor_a popish_a argument_n he_o shall_v have_v consider_v the_o import_n of_o the_o five_o article_n of_o the_o 16_o chapter_n of_o our_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n where_o it_o be_v say_v express_o that_o we_o can_v by_o our_o best_a work_n merit_v pardon_n of_o sin_n or_o eternal_a life_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a disproportion_n that_o be_v between_o they_o and_o the_o glory_n to_o come_v and_o the_o infinite_a distance_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o god_n who_o by_o they_o we_o can_v neither_o profit_n nor_o satisfy_v for_o the_o debt_n of_o our_o former_a sin_n but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o we_o can_v we_o have_v do_v but_o our_o duty_n and_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n and_o because_o as_o they_o be_v good_a they_o proceed_v from_o his_o spirit_n and_o as_o they_o be_v wrought_v by_o we_o they_o be_v defile_v and_o mix_v with_o so_o much_o weakness_n and_o imperfection_n that_o they_o can_v endure_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n if_o my_o r._n brother_n have_v consider_v understand_v and_o believe_v this_o part_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n he_o will_v never_o have_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o merit_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o dueness_n of_o a_o reward_n to_o some_o work_n do_v for_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n teach_v we_o that_o many_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o work_n meritorious_a beside_o the_o reward_n be_v be_v due_a to_o it_o 1._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o there_o be_v a_o proportion_n between_o the_o work_n do_v and_o the_o blessing_n or_o reward_n promise_v 2._o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o infinite_a distance_n between_o man_n the_o worker_n and_o god_n the_o rewarder_n 3._o that_o the_o work_v do_v be_v profitable_a unto_o god_n for_o who_o it_o be_v do_v 4._o that_o before_o our_o work_n can_v merit_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n they_o must_v be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o the_o debt_n of_o sin_n 5._o that_o our_o work_n be_v not_o due_a to_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o command_n require_v they_o 6._o that_o the_o work_n be_v our_o own_o do_v by_o our_o own_o strength_n 7._o that_o they_o be_v most_o perfect_a and_o do_v as_o well_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v these_o be_v the_o condition_n necessary_a to_o make_v a_o work_n meritorious_a of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o what_o deserve_v mr._n g's_o question_n what_o be_v merit_n but_o when_o the_o reward_n be_v due_a to_o some_o work_n do_v but_o to_o be_v hiss_v at_o and_o yet_o for_o his_o information_n that_o he_o may_v hereafter_o know_v my_o principle_n better_a than_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o my_o judgement_n to_o speak_v strict_o the_o reward_n be_v not_o due_a to_o the_o work_n nor_o to_o the_o worker_n for_o the_o vvork_n sake_n and_o yet_o i_o hold_v the_o reward_n to_o be_v due_a but_o to_o who_o and_o for_o who_o i_o answer_v the_o reward_n to_o wit_n of_o eternal_a life_n it_o be_v due_a to_o the_o penitent_a believer_n in_o who_o heart_n christ_n dwell_v by_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v due_a to_o he_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n who_o be_v faithful_a and_o can_v lie_v and_o it_o be_v due_a to_o he_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n who_o as_o he_o have_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n so_o he_o have_v merit_v for_o we_o all_o the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n from_o first_o to_o last_o now_o this_o be_v my_o hypothesis_n found_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o agreeable_a to_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n as_o i_o have_v full_o and_o clear_o prove_v in_o the_o foresay_a remark_n on_o my_o reverend_a brother_n discourse_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o refer_v it_o to_o all_o man_n of_o understanding_n sobriety_n and_o conscience_n to_o judge_n whether_o this_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o merit_n of_o work_v be_v real_o include_v in_o my_o hypothesis_n at_o last_o be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o can_v never_o prove_v that_o our_o principle_n agree_v with_o the_o popish_a arminian_n and_o socinian_n doctrine_n as_o he_o have_v assert_v in_o the_o content_n of_o his_o 9th_o chapter_n he_o give_v over_o his_o accuse_v we_o false_o and_o conclude_v with_o counsel_n and_o advice_n to_o forbear_v such_o phrase_n and_o mode_n of_o speech_n as_o by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o very_o ill_a purpose_n and_o that_o be_v to_o lay_v aside_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n new_a law_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o be_o very_o willing_a to_o be_v counsel_v and_o advise_v by_o those_o that_o be_v wise_a than_o myself_o and_o though_o i_o remember_v something_o of_o the_o fox_n in_o the_o apologue_n yet_o i_o will_v agree_v with_o my_o reverend_a brother_n that_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o will_v forbear_v call_v the_o gospel-covenant_n absolute_o and_o simple_o a_o new_a law_n without_o any_o explicatory_a addition_n provide_v 1._o that_o he_o and_o his_o friend_n for_o who_o he_o write_v will_v confess_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v prove_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a ill-meaning_n provide_v 2._o that_o as_o i_o shall_v not_o use_v the_o adjective_n new_a when_o i_o call_v the_o gospel_n covenant_n a_o law_n or_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n so_o he_o will_v himself_o use_v the_o word_n law_n and_o call_v the_o gospel_n by_o that_o name_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v and_o not_o be_v offend_v with_o we_o for_o call_v it_o a_o law_n and_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o for_o believe_v with_o mr._n pool_n on_o isa_n 2.3_o that_o it_o be_v frequent_o call_v a_o law_n because_o it_o have_v the_o nature_n and_o power_n of_o a_o law_n etc._n etc._n and_o with_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n that_o it_o be_v sometime_o call_v a_o law_n because_o it_o have_v also_o its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n provide_v also_o that_o he_o will_v with_o we_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n and_o mr._n pool_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n 3_o provide_v that_o my_o agree_n not_o to_o use_v the_o adjective_n new_a when_o i_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n and_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n shall_v not_o be_v construe_v to_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o if_o i_o thereby_o signify_v that_o i_o account_v it_o unlawful_a to_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n for_o i_o do_v not_o so_o account_v it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a i_o hold_v it_o very_o lawful_a to_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o call_v it_o a_o new_a covenant_n the_o reason_n why_o i_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n be_v these_o 1._o because_o though_o the_o phrase_n be_v not_o whole_o and_o verbatim_o find_v in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n yea_o the_o one_o half_a of_o it_o the_o no●n_a substantive_n law_n be_v express_o in_o scripture_n and_o the_o other_o half_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n as_o join_v to_o to_o the_o word_n law_n and_o be_v express_o in_o scripture_n as_o join_v with_o the_o equivalent_a word_n covenant_n 2._o because_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a time_n
be_v not_o also_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v of_o we_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n see_v tit._n 2.11_o 12._o 2._o i_o come_v to_o particular_a testimony_n which_o i_o shall_v brief_o examine_v and_o give_v they_o particular_a answer_n and_o one_a whereas_o my_o r._n brother_n give_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n to_o be_v this_o that_o god_n not_o for_o our_o merit_n but_o on_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n justifyes_n those_o who_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o perfect_a definition_n that_o it_o be_v no_o accurate_a description_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o promise_n to_o give_v a_o new_a heart_n and_o to_o work_v faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o the_o elect_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n witness_v ezek_n 36.26_o 27._o john_n 6.45_o act_n 5.31_o heb._n 8.10_o nor_o be_v here_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v another_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_o john_n 2.25_o 2._o i_o answer_v that_o to_o take_v this_o testimony_n bare_o as_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o mr._n goodwin_n it_o must_v be_v right_o understand_v otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v find_v to_o contradict_v our_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n chap._n 18._o art_n 3._o where_o it_o be_v express_o deny_v that_o assurance_n do_v so_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n yea_o i_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v find_v to_o contradict_v melancthon_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o principal_a composer_n of_o that_o augustan_n confession_n for_o in_o his_o common_a place_n he_o so_o define_v justify_v faith_n as_o to_o make_v such_o assurance_n to_o be_v but_o the_o immediate_a consequent_a effect_n of_o it_o whereas_o he_o place_v the_o essence_n of_o it_o in_o a_o firm_a certain_a assent_n to_o the_o general_a promise_n a_o cordial_a receive_n of_o christ_n and_o trust_v in_o he_o for_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n his_o own_o word_n be_v fidei_fw-la be_v sit_fw-la igitur_fw-la haec_fw-la definitio_fw-la fides_n est_fw-la assentiri_fw-la universo_fw-it verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la nobis_fw-la proposito_fw-la &_o quidem_fw-la promissioni_fw-la gratuitae_fw-la reconciliationis_fw-la donatae_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la estque_fw-la fiducia_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la dei_fw-la promissae_fw-la propter_fw-la christum_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la nam_fw-la fiducia_fw-la est_fw-la motus_fw-la in_o voluntate_fw-la necessario_fw-la respondens_fw-la assensioni_fw-la estque_fw-la fides_fw-la virtus_fw-la apprehendens_fw-la &_o applicans_fw-la promissiones_fw-la &_o quietans_fw-la corda_fw-la melanct._n in_o loc_n commun_n loco_fw-la de_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la fidei_fw-la let_v this_o then_o be_v the_o definition_n faith_n be_v to_o assent_v unto_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n propose_v unto_o we_o and_o particular_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o reconciliation_n or_o justification_n free_o give_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n and_o it_o be_v a_o trust_n in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n promise_v for_o christ_n the_o mediator_n sake_n for_o trust_n be_v a_o motion_n in_o the_o will_n necessary_o answer_v unto_o assent_n i'faith_o also_o be_v a_o virtue_n apprehend_v and_o apply_v the_o promise_n and_o quiet_v heart_n here_o we_o see_v melancthon_n hold_v the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v to_o be_v a_o actual_a and_o not_o mere_o a_o habitual_a or_o seminal_a faith_n and_o he_o judicious_o ascribe_v three_o act_n to_o it_o as_o also_o do_v our_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n wherein_o he_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o actual_a faith_n 1_o a_o act_n whereby_o we_o assent_v unto_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n especial_o to_o the_o gospel-promise_n of_o free_a justification_n through_o christ_n 2._o a_o act_n whereby_o we_o receive_v and_o apply_v the_o promise_n and_o god_n mercy_n through_o christ_n therein_o 3_o a_o act_n whereby_o we_o trust_v to_o the_o promise_n and_o to_o god_n mercy_n through_o christ_n therein_o and_o then_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o be_v that_o thereby_o it_o quiet_v our_o heart_n whence_o i_o infer_v that_o to_o make_v this_o definition_n of_o faith_n consistent_a with_o the_o augustan_n confession_n by_o the_o believe_v aforesaid_a that_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n must_v be_v understand_v a_o believe_a that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n but_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o trust_v in_o only_a for_o that_o end_n without_o this_o favourable_a interpretation_n that_o aushurgh_n confession_n as_o cite_v by_o my_o r._n brother_n will_v be_v find_v to_o contradict_v our_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v more_o exact_a and_o perfect_a and_o even_o to_o contradict_v melancthon_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o first_o compiler_n of_o the_o say_v augsburg_n confession_n 3._o if_o my_o r._n brother_n have_v due_o consider_v what_o in_o the_o apology_n pag._n 88_o 89._o i_o quote_v at_o large_a out_o of_o the_o 20_o article_n of_o that_o augsburg_n confession_n which_o be_v certain_o subscribe_v both_o by_o luther_n and_o calvin_n and_o i_o think_v by_o most_o of_o our_o first_o reformer_n beyond_o the_o sea_n he_o may_v have_v be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v quote_v that_o confession_n against_o i_o in_o this_o controversy_n for_o there_o it_o say_v express_o 1._o that_o the_o gospel_n require_v repentance_n 2._o that_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v universal_a as_o the_o preach_n of_o repentance_n be_v universal_a and_o 3._o that_o the_o gospel_n command_v all_o to_o believe_v and_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n now_o here_o my_o reverend_a brother_n whole_a book_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o augustan_n confession_n 2._o in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o quote_v melancthons_n apology_n for_o the_o say_a confession_n and_o make_v he_o describe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v proper_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o justification_n on_o christ_n account_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a lame_a imperfect_a description_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v indeed_o proper_o a_o part_n but_o it_o be_v far_o from_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o gospel_n the_o promise_n of_o take_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o stone_n and_o give_v a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o other_o thing_n also_o be_v proper_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3._o in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o quote_v luther_n little_a treatise_n of_o christian_a liberty_n 29._o disc_n p._n 29._o and_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o luther_n divide_v the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n into_o two_o part_n to_o wit_n into_o precept_n and_o promise_n and_o the_o precept_n he_o entitle_v pure_o to_o the_o law_n but_o define_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o so_o to_o be_v only_o a_o complete_a systeme_n of_o gracious_a promise_n and_o then_o he_o cite_v the_o express_a word_n of_o luther_n which_o be_v as_o follow_v therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n yes_o and_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o if_o luther_n as_o mr._n g._n say_v do_v there_o divide_v the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n into_o two_o part_n to_o wit_n precept_n and_o promise_n and_o entitle_v all_o the_o precept_n pure_o to_o the_o law_n and_o refer_v all_o promise_n to_o the_o gospel_n than_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noon_n day_n that_o he_o be_v mistake_v and_o that_o his_o division_n of_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n into_o those_o two_o part_n be_v very_o lame_a and_o defective_a for_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n beside_o precept_n and_o promise_n there_o be_v 1._o history_n 2._o prophecy_n 3._o mysterious_a doctrine_n 4._o threaten_n which_o as_o such_o be_v neither_o precept_n nor_o promise_n 5._o beside_o evangelical_n promise_v there_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n mere_a legal_a promise_n which_o must_v belong_v to_o the_o law_n and_o can_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o my_o r._n brother_n do_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o page_n 29._o cite_v melancthon_n distinguish_v between_o gratuitous_a promise_n or_o promise_v of_o grace_n and_o promise_n that_o be_v not_o gratuitous_a or_o of_o grace_n now_o if_o there_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n promise_v that_o be_v not_o of_o grace_n sure_o they_o must_v belong_v to_o the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o the_o gospel_n if_o as_o mr._n g._n hold_v the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o pure_a doctrine_n and_o mere_a promise_n or_o promise_n of_o grace_n two_o i_o answer_v that_o though_o luther_n do_v indeed_o say_v that_o the_o
necessary_a simple_o necessary_a yea_o and_o antecedent_o necessary_a in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n his_o argument_n be_v distribute_v into_o three_o class_n some_o of_o they_o prove_v its_o necessity_n other_o prove_v its_o antecedency_n all_o together_o strong_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v antecedent_o necessary_a in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o pardon_n this_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o pag._n 249_o 250._o 3._o he_o inquire_v whether_o repentance_n may_v be_v call_v a_o condition_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n and_o answer_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v call_v a_o condition_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o faith_n be_v call_v one_o for_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a condition_n whereby_o we_o close_v with_o the_o covenant_n and_o whereby_o we_o close_v with_o receive_v and_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n as_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o covenant-promise_a but_o then_o he_o say_v that_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v call_v and_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n necessary_a with_o faith_n concomitant_o in_o the_o same_o subject_n to_o qualify_v and_o dispose_v it_o in_o a_o congruous_a suitable_a way_n to_o receive_v pardon_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n alone_o this_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o pag._n 253_o 254_o 255_o 256._o and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v and_o have_v open_o profess_v to_o the_o world_n in_o our_o apology_n so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o hair_n breadth_n of_o difference_n between_o his_o judgement_n and_o i_o except_o it_o be_v in_o the_o word_v of_o it_o and_o this_o manifest_o appear_v from_o our_o call_a repentance_n the_o condition_n or_o mean_n which_o only_o qualify_v and_o dispose_v the_o subject_a for_o receive_v pardon_n by_o faith_n alone_o whereas_o we_o call_v faith_n the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n whereby_o we_o receive_v and_o apply_v the_o object_n to_o wit_n the_o promise_n and_o christ_n with_o his_o righteousness_n as_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o promise_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o mr._n durham_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o we_o as_o to_o this_o matter_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o just_o bring_v he_o in_o to_o witness_v for_o we_o i_o will_v have_v quote_v his_o own_o word_n but_o they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o will_v swell_v my_o discourse_n to_o such_o a_o bulk_n that_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o book_n and_o page_n where_o he_o will_v see_v if_o he_o be_v in_o any_o doubt_n that_o i_o have_v faithful_o give_v his_o sense_n in_o few_o word_n our_o four_o witness_n shall_v be_v the_o famous_a confession_n of_o faith_n compose_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o reform_a divine_n of_o poland_n lithuania_n and_o the_o province_n thereon_o depend_v together_o with_o divine_n from_o germany_n and_o which_o they_o give_v in_o at_o tear_v in_o the_o year_n 1645_o unto_o the_o lutheran_n and_o popish_a doctor_n all_o assemble_v there_o to_o confer_v about_o religion_n for_o several_a month_n together_o their_o word_n be_v these_o poenitentiâ_fw-la these_o non_fw-la controvertitur_fw-la hîc_fw-la a_o ad_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la requiratur_fw-la conuersio_fw-la mentis_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o interna_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la dum_fw-la dolore_fw-la detestatio_fw-la asserimuus_fw-la enim_fw-la talem_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la ut_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la conditionem_fw-la ad_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la remissionem_fw-la requisitam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_o utroque_fw-la testamento_fw-la qua_fw-la peccator_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la eam_fw-la meretur_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la efficit_fw-la solum_fw-la meritum_fw-la &_o satisfactio_fw-la christi_fw-la cum_fw-la eam_fw-la nobis_fw-la fide_fw-la viva_fw-la applicamus_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la eam_fw-la praerequisita_fw-la conditio_fw-la impletur_fw-la quâ_fw-la aptus_fw-la fit_a at_o divinam_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la consequendam_fw-la confession_n doctrinae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la reformatarum_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la poloniae_fw-la maguo_fw-la ducatu_fw-la lithuaniae_fw-la annexisque_fw-la regni_fw-la provinciis_fw-la in_o colloquio_fw-la thoruniensi_fw-la exhibit_v d._n 1._o septembris_fw-la a._n d._n 1645._o cap._n 6._o de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la sect._n de_fw-fr poenitentiâ_fw-la 1._o it_o be_v not_o controvert_v here_o whether_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o god_n and_o the_o inward_a detestation_n of_o sin_n with_o sorrow_n be_v require_v unto_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o we_o assert_v that_o as_o a_o perpetual_a condition_n unto_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n such_o a_o repentance_n be_v require_v under_o both_o testament_n whereby_o a_o sinner_n do_v not_o indeed_o merit_v it_o for_o the_o alone_a merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n do_v that_o when_o we_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o by_o a_o lively_a faith_n but_o by_o it_o the_o pre-required_n condition_n be_v perform_v whereby_o he_o be_v make_v fit_a and_o dispose_v to_o obtain_v the_o divine_a mercy_n thus_o that_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o many_o learned_a judicious_a divine_n who_o draw_v it_o up_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n with_o we_o that_o repentance_n be_v pre-required_n and_o always_o be_v pre-required_n as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n whereby_o a_o sinner_n be_v qualify_v and_o make_v meet_v to_o receive_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n i_o can_v bring_v more_o testimony_n both_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o write_n of_o holy_a sound_v and_o orthodox_n minister_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o confirmation_n and_o elucidation_n of_o this_o truth_n but_o i_o have_v be_v too_o large_a already_o upon_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o this_o may_v supper_n abundant_o suffice_v to_o show_v that_o though_o the_o natural_a moral_a law_n oblige_v all_o mankind_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o one_o sort_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n yet_o there_o be_v another_o sort_n of_o they_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n faith_n and_o repentance_n unto_o which_o the_o evangelical_n law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n do_v only_o by_o itself_o immediate_o oblige_v we_o and_o the_o moral_a natural_a law_n oblige_v we_o to_o they_o but_o mediate_o only_a and_o by_o consequence_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o oblige_v we_o to_o observe_v all_o god_n positive_a law_n which_o it_o please_v he_o at_o any_o time_n to_o enact_v for_o we_o consider_v eighthly_a that_o under_o the_o gospel_n god_n have_v make_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o his_o moral_a natural_a law_n and_o to_o all_o his_o positive_a law_n which_o be_v in_o force_n and_o not_o abrogate_a one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n take_v in_o its_o latitude_n he_o have_v make_v our_o performance_n of_o such_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o his_o law_n a_o condition_n necessary_a to_o qualify_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o obtain_v full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o happiness_n in_o heavenly_a glory_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o meritorious_a righteousness_n only_o 1._o for_o clear_v of_o this_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o first_o federal_a law_n of_o work_n give_v and_o prescribe_v unto_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v distinguish_v 1._o there_o be_v the_o preceptive_a part_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o minatory_a sanction_n 3._o the_o promissory_a sanction_n 1._o there_o be_v the_o preceptive_a part_n which_o oblige_v to_o duty_n and_o except_v the_o positive_a precept_n of_o sanctisy_v or_o keep_v holy_a to_o god_n the_o seven_o day_n precise_o in_o order_n from_o the_o creation_n and_o of_o not_o eat_v the_o forbid_v fruit_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o preceptive_a part_n of_o that_o law_n of_o work_n be_v in_o force_n still_o and_o oblige_v mankind_n to_o a_o ever_o sinless_a obedience_n de_fw-fr futuro_fw-la 2._o there_o be_v the_o minatory_a sanction_n or_o threaten_v which_o bind_v over_o transgressor_n to_z suffer_v the_o punishment_n threaten_v and_o this_o be_v still_o in_o force_n with_o respect_n to_o all_o impenttent_a unbeliever_n they_o be_v all_o while_o they_o continue_v in_o that_o state_n under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o first_o break_a law_n and_o covenant_n and_o be_v liable_a to_o a_o further_a degree_n of_o the_o same_o punishment_n for_o every_o sin_n which_o they_o shall_v commit_v in_o this_o world_n yet_o by_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v a_o door_n of_o hope_n to_o get_v out_o of_o this_o state_n open_v through_o christ_n unto_o those_o to_o who_o god_n send_v it_o 3._o there_o be_v the_o promissory_a sanction_n or_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n unto_o those_o who_o keep_v the_o precept_n without_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o now_o this_o be_v not_o in_o force_n since_o the_o fall_n so_o as_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v oblige_v ex_fw-la intention_n dei_fw-la to_o believe_v or_o hope_v that_o he_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n by_o his_o keep_v the_o preceptive_a part_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n or_o